Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: The Manchester Man
Author: Banks, G. Linnaeus (George Linnaeus), Mrs.
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Manchester Man" ***

Transcriber’s Notes:

The spelling, hyphenation, punctuation and accentuation are as the
original, except for apparent typographical errors which have been
corrected.

  Italic text is denoted _thus_.
  Bold text is denoted =thus=.



MRS. BANKS’S NOVELS.

THE MANCHESTER MAN.



[Illustration: THE FIGHT IN THE COLLEGE YARD.]



  THE MANCHESTER MAN.

  BY

  MRS. G. LINNÆUS BANKS.

  _Author of “God’s Providence House, Glory,” &c._

  Tenth Edition.

  [Illustration: OLD MARKET STREET.]

  Manchester:
  ABEL HEYWOOD & SON, 56 & 58, OLDHAM STREET,

  London:
  SIMPKIN, MARSHALL, HAMILTON, KENT & CO., LIMITED.
  STATIONERS’ HALL COURT.

  1897.



CONTENTS.


  CHAPTER.      PAGE.

  I.       The Flood      1

  II.      No One Knows      7

  III.     How the Rev. Joshua Brookes and Simon Clegg interpreted
             a Shakesperian Text      14

  IV.      Mischief      22

  V.       Ellen Chadwick      28

  VI.      To Martial Music      36

  VII.     The Reverend Joshua Brookes      43

  VIII.    The Blue-Coat School      49

  IX.      The Snake      56

  X.       First Antagonism      64

  XI.      The Blue-Coat Boy      71

  XII.     The Gentleman      80

  XIII.    Simon’s Pupil      85

  XIV.     Jabez goes out into the World      91

  XV.      Apprenticeship      98

  XVI.     In War and Peace      105

  XVII.    In the Warehouse      113

  XVIII.   Easter Monday      121

  XIX.     Peterloo      128

  XX.      Action and Reaction      139

  XXI.     Wounded      146

  XXII.    Mr. Clegg      153

  XXIII.   In the Theatre Royal      161

  XXIV.    Madame Broadbent’s Fan      166

  XXV.     Retrospective      173

  XXVI.    On the Portico Steps      181

  XXVII.   Manhood      188

  XXVIII.  Once in a Life      194

  XXIX.    On Ardwick Green Pond      201

  XXX.     Blind      210

  XXXI.    Coronation Day      217

  XXXII.   Evening: Indoors and Out      225

  XXXIII.  Clogs      233

  XXXIV.   Birds of a Feather      240

  XXXV.    At Carr Cottage      246

  XXXVI.   The Lover’s Walk      254

  XXXVII.  A Ride on a Rainy Night      262

  XXXVIII. Defeated      269

  XXXIX.   Like Father, Like Son      276

  XL.      With all His Faults      283

  XLI.     Marriage      290

  XLII.    Blows      298

  XLIII.   Partnership      307

  XLIV.    Man and Beast      316

  XLV.     Wounds Inflicted and Endured      325

  XLVI.    The Mower with His Scythe      333

  XLVII.   The Last Act      340



THE MANCHESTER MAN.



CHAPTER THE FIRST.[1]

THE FLOOD.


When Pliny lost his life, and Herculaneum was buried, Manchester was
born. Whilst lava and ashes blotted from sight and memory fair and
luxurious Roman cities close to the Capitol, the Roman soldiery of
Titus, under their general Agricola, laid the foundations of a distant
city which now competes with the great cities of the world. Where now
rise forests of tall chimneys, and the hum of whirling spindles, spread
the dense woods of Arden; and from the clearing in their midst rose
the Roman castrum of Mamutium,[2] which has left its name of Castle
Field as a memorial to us. But where their summer camp is said to have
been pitched, on the airy rock at the confluence of the rivers Irk and
Irwell, sacred church and peaceful college have stood for centuries,
and only antiquaries can point to Roman possession, or even to the
baronial hall which the Saxon lord perched there for security.

And only an antiquary or a very old inhabitant can recall Manchester
as it was at the close of the last century, and shutting his eyes upon
railway-arch, station, and esplanade, upon Palatine buildings, broad
roadways, and river embankments, can see the Irk and the Irwell as they
were when the Cathedral was the Collegiate Church, with a diminutive
brick wall round its ancient graveyard. Then the irregular-fronted rows
of quaint old houses which still, under the name of Half Street, crowd
upon two sides of the churchyard, with only an intervening strip of a
flagged walk between, closed it up on a third side, and shut the river
(lying low beneath) from the view, with a huddled mass of still older
dwellings, some of which were thrust out of sight, and were only to be
reached by flights of break-neck steps of rock or stone, and like their
hoary fellows creeping down the narrow roadway of Hunt’s Bank, overhung
the Irwell, and threatened to topple into it some day.

The Chetham Hospital or College still looks solidly down on the Irk
at the angle of the streams; the old Grammar School has been suffered
to do the same; and—thanks to the honest workmen who built for our
ancestors—the long lines of houses known as Long Millgate are for the
most part standing, and on the river side have resisted the frequent
floods of centuries.

In 1799 that line was almost unbroken, from the College (where it
commenced at Hunt’s Bank Bridge) to Red Bank. The little alley by the
Town Mill, called Mill-brow, which led down to the wooden Mill Bridge,
was little more of a gap than those narrow entries or passages which
pierced the walls like slits here and there, and offered dark and
perilous passage to courts and alleys, trending in steep incline to the
very bed of the Irk. The houses themselves had been good originally,
and were thus cramped together for defence in perilous times, when
experience taught that a narrow gorge was easier held against warlike
odds than an open roadway.

Ducie Bridge had then no existence, but Tanners’ Bridge—no doubt a
strong wooden structure like that at Mill-brow—accessible from the
street only by one of those narrow steep passages, stood within a few
yards of its site, and had a place on old maps so far back as 1650.
Its name is expressive, and goes to prove that the tannery on the
steep banks of the Irk, behind the houses of Long Millgate opposite to
the end of Miller’s Lane, was a tannery at least a century and a half
before old Simon Clegg worked amongst the tan-pits, and called William
Clough master.

To this sinuous and picturesque line of houses, the streams with
their rocky and precipitous banks will have served in olden times as
a natural defensive moat (indeed it is noticeable that old Manchester
kept pretty much within the angle of its rivers), and in 1799, from
one end of Millgate to the other, the dwellers by the waterside looked
across the stream on green and undulating uplands, intersected by
luxuriant hedgerows, a bleachery at Walker’s Croft, and a short terrace
of houses near Scotland Bridge, denominated Scotland, being the sole
breaks in the verdure.

Between the tannery and Scotland Bridge, the river makes a sharp bend;
and here, at the elbow, another mill, with its corresponding dam, was
situated. The current of the Irk, if not deep, is strong at all times,
though kept by its high banks within narrow compass. But when, as is
not unseldom the case, there is a sudden flushing of water from the
hill-country, it rises, rises, rises, stealthily, though swiftly, till
the stream overtops its banks, washes over low-lying bleach-crofts,
fields, and gardens, mounts foot by foot over the fertile slopes,
invades the houses, and, like a mountain-robber sweeping from his
fastness on a peaceful vale, carries his spoil with him, and leaves
desolation and wailing behind.

Such a flood as this, following a heavy thunder-storm, devastated the
valley of the Irk, on the 17th of August, 1799.

Well was it then for the tannery and those houses on the bank of the
Irk which had their foundations in the solid rock, for the waters
surged and roared at their base and over pleasant meadows—a wide-spread
turbulent sea, with here and there an island of refuge, which the day
before had been a lofty mound.

The flood of the previous Autumn, when a coach and horses had been
swept down the Irwell, and men and women were drowned, was as nothing
to this. The tannery yard, high as it was above the bed of the Irk, and
solid as was its embankment, was threatened with invasion. The surging
water roared and beat against its masonry, and licked its coping with
frothy tongue and lip, like a hungry giant, greedy for fresh food. Men
with thick clogs and hide-bound legs, leathern gloves and aprons, were
hurrying to and fro with barrows and bark-boxes for the reception of
the valuable hides which their mates, armed with long-shafted hooks and
tongs, were dragging from the pits pell-mell, ere the advancing waters
should encroach upon their territory, and empty the tan-pits for them.

Already the insatiate flood bore testimony to its ruthless greed. Hanks
of yarn, pieces of calico, hay, uptorn bushes, planks, chairs, boxes,
dog-kennels, and hen-coops, a shattered chest of drawers, pots and
pans, had swept past, swirling and eddying in the flood, which by this
time spread like a vast lake over the opposite lands, and had risen
within three feet of the arch of Scotland Bridge, and hardly left a
trace where the mill-dam chafed it commonly.

Too busy were the tanners, under the eye of their master, to stretch
out hand or hook to arrest the progress of either furniture or live
stock, though beehives and hen-coops, and more than one squealing
pig, went racing with the current, now rising towards the footway of
Tanner’s Bridge.

Every window of every house upon the banks was crowded with anxious
heads, for flooded Scotland rose like an island from the watery waste,
and their own cellars were fast filling. There had been voices calling
to each other from window to window all the morning; but now from
window to window, from house to house, rang one reduplicated shriek,
which caused many of the busy tanners to quit their work, and rush to
the water’s edge. To their horror, a painted wooden cradle, which had
crossed the deeply-submerged dam in safety, was floating foot-foremost
down to destruction, with an infant calmly sleeping in its bed; the
very motion of the waters having seemingly lulled it to sounder repose!

“Good Lord! It’s a choilt!” exclaimed Simon Clegg, the eldest tanner in
the yard. “Lend a hand here, fur the sake o’ th’ childer at whoam.”

Half a dozen hooks and plungers were outstretched, even while he spoke;
but the longest was lamentably too short to arrest the approaching
cradle in its course, and the unconscious babe seemed doomed. With
frantic haste Simon Clegg rushed on to Tanner’s Bridge, followed by
a boy; and there, with hook and plunger, they met the cradle as it
drifted towards them, afraid of over-balancing it even in their attempt
to save. It swerved, and almost upset; but Simon dexterously caught his
hook within the wooden hood, and drew the frail bark and its living
freight close to the bridge. The boy, and a man named Cooper, lying
flat on the bridge, then clutched at it with extended hands, raised it
carefully from the turbid water, and drew it safely between the open
rails to the footway, amidst the shouts and hurrahs of breathless and
excited spectators.

The babe was screaming terribly. The shock when the first hook stopped
the progress of the cradle had disturbed its dreams, and its little fat
arms were stretched out piteously as strange faces looked down upon it
instead of the mother’s familiar countenance. Wrapping the patchwork
quilt around it to keep it from contact with his wet sleeves and apron,
Simon tenderly as a woman, lifted the infant in his rough arms, and
strove to comfort it, but in vain. His beard of three days growth was
as a rasp to its soft skin, and the closer he caressed, the more it
screamed. The men from the tannery came crowding round him.

“What dost ta mean to do wi’ th’ babby?” asked the man Cooper of old
Simon. “Aw’d tak’ it whoam to my missis, but th’ owd lass is nowt to
be takken to, an’ wur cross as two sticks when oi only axed fur mi
baggin to bring to wark wi’ mi this mornin’,” added he, with rueful
remembrance of the scolding wife on his hearth.

“Neay, lad, aw’ll not trust th’ poor choilt to thy Sally. It ’ud be
loike chuckin’ it out o’ th’ wayter into th’ fire (Hush-a-by, babby).
Aw’ll just take it to ar’ Bess, and hoo’ll cuddle it up, and gi’ it
summat to sup, till we find its own mammy,” answered Simon, leaving the
bridge. “Bring the kayther[3] alung, Jack,” (to the boy) “Bess’ll want
it. We’n noan o’ that tackle at ar place. Hush-a-by, hush-a-by, babby.”

But the little thing, missing its natural protector, and half
stifled in the swathing quilt, only screamed the louder; and Simon,
notwithstanding his kind heart, was truly glad when his daughter Bess,
who had witnessed the rescue from their own window, met him at the
tannery gate, and relieved him of his struggling charge.

“Si thi, Bess! here’s a God-send fur thi—a poor little babby fur thi to
tend an’ be koind to, till them it belungs to come a-seekin’ fur it,”
said he to the young woman; “but thah mun give it summat better than
cowd wayter—it’s had too mich o’ that a’ready.”

“That aw will, poor darlin’!” responded she, kissing the babe’s velvet
cheeks as, sensible of a change of nurses, it nestled to her breast.
“Eh! but there’ll be sore hearts for this blessed babby, somewheere.”
And she turned up the narrow passage which led at once from the
tan-yard and the bridge, stilling and soothing the little castaway as
adroitly as an experienced nurse.

“Neaw, luk thi, lad,” Simon remarked to Cooper; “is na it fair
wonderful heaw that babby taks to ar Bess? But it’s just a way hoo has,
an’ theere is na a fractious choilt i’ a’ ar yard but’ll be quiet wi’
Bess.”

Cooper looked after her, nodded an assent, and sighed, as if he wished
some one in another yard had the same soothing way with her.

But the voice of the raging water had not stilled like that of the
rescued infant. Back went the two men to their task, and worked away
with a will to carry hides, bark and implements to places of security.
And as they hurried to and fro with loads on back or barrow, up, up,
inch by inch, foot by foot, the swelling flood rose still higher,
till, lapping the foot-bridge, curling over the embankment, it drove
the sturdy tanners back, flung itself into the pits, and, in many a
swirling eddy, washed tan and hair and skins into the common current.

Not so much, however, went into its seething caldron as might have
been, had the men worked with less vigour; and, quick to recognise the
value of ready service, Mr. Clough led his drenched and weary workmen
to the “Skinner’s Arms,” in Long Millgate, and ordered a supply of ale
and bread and cheese to be served out to them.

At the door of the public-house, where he left the workmen to the
enjoyment of this impromptu feast, he encountered Simon Clegg. The kind
fellow had taken a hasty run to his own tenement, “just to see heaw ar
Bess an’ th’ babby get on;” and he brought back the intelligence that
it was “a lad, an’ as good as goold.”

“Oh, my man, I’ve been too much occupied to speak to you before,” cried
Mr. Clough. “I saw you foremost in the rescue of that unfortunate
infant, and shall not forget it. Here is a crown for your share in the
good deed. I suppose that was the child’s mother you gave it to?”

Simon was a little man, but he drew back with considerable native
dignity.

“Thenk yo’, measter, all th’ same, but aw connot tak’ brass fur just
doin’ my duty. Aw’d never ha slept i’ my bed gin that little un had bin
dreawned, an’ me lookin’ on loike a stump. Neay; that lass wur Bess,
moi wench. We’n no notion wheer th’ lad’s mother is.”

Mr. Clough would have pressed the money upon him, but he put it back
with a motion of his hand.

“No, sir; aw’m a poor mon, a varry poor mon, but aw connot tak’ money
fur savin’ a choilt’s life. It’s agen’ mi conscience. I’ll tak’ mi
share o’ the bread an’ cheese, an’ drink yo’r health i’ a sup o’ ale,
but aw cudna’ tak’ that brass if aw wur deein’.”

And Simon, giving a scrape with his clog, and a duck of his head, meant
for a bow, passed his master respectfully, and went clattering up the
steps of the “Skinners’ Arms,” leaving the gentleman standing there,
and looking after him in mingled astonishment and admiration.



CHAPTER THE SECOND.

NO ONE KNOWS.


When the scurrying water, thick with sand and mud, and discoloured with
dye stuffs, which floated in brightly-tinted patches on its surface,
filled the arch of Scotland Bridge, and left only the rails of Tanners’
Bridge visible, the inundation reached its climax; but a couple of days
elapsed before the flood subsided below the level of the unprotected
tannery-yard, and until then neither Simon Clegg nor his mates could
resume their occupations.

There was a good deal of lounging about Long Millgate and the doors of
the “Queen Anne” and “Skinners’ Arms,” of heavily-shod men, in rough
garniture of thick hide—armoury against the tan and water in which
their daily bread was steeped.

But in all those two days no anxious father, no white-faced mother,
had run from street to street, and house to house, to seek and claim a
rescued living child. No, not even when the week had passed, though the
story of his “miraculous preservation” was the theme of conversation at
the tea-tables of gentility and in the bar-parlours of taverns; was the
gossip of courts and alleys, highways and byways; and though echo, in
the guise of a “flying stationer,” caught it up and spread it broadcast
in catchpenny sheets, far beyond the confines of the inundation.

This was the more surprising as no dead bodies had been washed down the
river, and no lives were reported “lost.” Had the child no one to care
for it?—no relative to whom its little life was precious? Had it been
abandoned to its fate, a waif unloved, uncared for?

The house in which Simon Clegg lived was situated at the very end
of Skinners’ Yard, a _cul-de-sac_, to which the only approach was a
dark covered entry, not four feet wide. The pavement of the yard was
natural rock, originally hewn into broad flat steps, but then worn
with water from the skies, and from house-wifely pails, and the tramp
of countless clogs, to a rugged steep incline, asking wary stepping
from the stranger on exploration after nightfall. Gas was, of course,
unknown, but not even an oil-lamp lit up the gloom.

In the sunken basement a tripe-boiler had a number of stone troughs
or cisterns, for keeping his commodities cool for sale. The three
rooms of Simon Clegg were situated immediately above these, two small
bed-rooms overlooking the river and pleasant green fields beyond; the
wide kitchen window having no broader range of prospect than the dreary
and not too savoury yard. Even this view was shut out by a batting
frame, resembling much a long, narrow French bedstead, all the more
that on it was laid a thick bed of raw (that is, undressed) cotton,
freckled with seeds and fine bits of husky pod. Bess was a batter, and
her business was to turn and beat the clotted mass with stout lithe
arms and willow-wands, until the fibres loosened, the seeds and specks
fell through, and a billowy mass of whitish down lay before her. It was
not a healthy occupation: dust and flue released found their way into
the lungs, as well as on to the floor and furniture; and a rosy-cheeked
batter was a myth. Machinery does the work now—but this history deals
with _then_!

During the week dust lay thick on everything; even Bessy’s hair was
fluffy as a bursting cotton pod, in spite of the kerchief tied across
it; but on the Saturday, when she had carried her work to Simpson’s
factory in Miller’s Lane, and came back with her wages, broom and
duster cleared away the film; wax and brush polished up the oak bureau,
the pride and glory of their kitchen; the two slim iron candlesticks,
fender and poker were burnished bright as steel; the three-legged round
deal table was scrubbed white; and then, mounted on tall pattens, she
set about with mop and pail, and a long-handled stone, to cleanse the
flag floor from the week’s impurities.

She had had a good mother, and, to the best of her ability, Bess tried
to follow in her footsteps, and fill the vacant place on her father’s
hearth, and in his heart. Her mother had been dead four years, and
Bess, now close upon twenty, had since then lost two brothers, and
lamented as lost one dearer than a brother—the two former by death, the
other by the fierce demands of war. She had a pale, interesting face,
with dark hair and thoughtful, deep grey eyes, and was, if anything,
too quiet and staid for her years; but when her face lit up she had as
pleasant a smile upon it as one would wish to see by one’s fireside,
and not even her dialect could make her voice otherwise than low and
gentle.

Both her brothers had been considerably younger than herself; and
possibly the fact of having stood _in loco parentis_ to them for
upwards of two years had imparted to her the air of motherliness she
possessed. Certain it is that if a child in the yard scalded itself, or
cut a finger, or knocked the bark off an angular limb, it went crying
to Bessy Clegg in preference to its own mother; and she healed bruises
and quarrels with the same balsam—loving sympathy. She was just the one
to open her arms and heart to a poor motherless babe, and Simon Clegg
knew it.

Old Simon, or old Clegg, he was called, probably because he was graver
and more serious than his fellows, and had never changed his master
since he grew to manhood; certainly not on account of his age, which
trembled on the verge of fifty only. He was a short, somewhat spare
man, with a face deeply lined by sorrow for the loved ones he had lost.
But he had a merry twinkling eye, and was not without a latent vein of
humour. The atmosphere of the tannery might have shrivelled his skin,
but it had not withered his heart; and when he handed the child he had
saved to his daughter, he never stopped to calculate contingencies.

The boy, apparently between two and three months’ old, was dressed in
a long gown of printed linen, had a muslin cap, and an under one of
flannel, all neatly made, but neither in make nor material beyond those
of a respectable working-man’s child; and there was not a mark upon
anything which could give a clue to its parentage.

The painted wooden cradle, which had been to it an ark of safety,
was placed in a corner by the fireplace; and an old bottle, filled
with thin gruel, over the neck of which Bess had tied a loose cap
of punctured wash-leather, was so adjusted that the little one,
deprived of its mother, could lie within and feed itself whilst Bess
industriously pursued her avocations.

These were not times for idleness. There had been bread-riots the
previous winter; food still was at famine prices; and it was all a poor
man could do, with the strictest industry and economy, to obtain a bare
subsistence. So Bess worked away all the harder, because there were
times when babydom was imperative, and would be nursed.

She had put the last garnishing touches to her kitchen on Saturday
night, had taken off her wrapper-brat,[4] put on a clean blue,
bedgown,[5] and substituted a white linen cap for the coloured
kerchief, when her father, who had been to New Cross Market to make his
bargains by himself on this occasion, came into the kitchen, followed
by Cooper, who having helped to save the child, naturally felt an
interest in him.

The iron porridge-pot was on the low fire, and Bess, sifting the
oatmeal into the boiling water with the left hand, whilst with the
other she beat it swiftly with her porridge-stick, was so intent on the
preparation of their supper, she did not notice their entrance until
her father, putting his coarse wicker market-basket down on her white
table, bade Cooper “Coom in an’ tak’ a cheer.”

Instead of taking a chair, the man walked as quietly as his clogs would
let him to the cradle, and looked down on the infant sucking vigorously
at the delusive bottle. Mat Cooper was the _un_happy father of eight,
whose maintenance was a sore perplexity to him; and it may be supposed
he spoke with authority when he exclaimed—

“Whoy, he tak’s t’ th’ pap-bottle as nat’rally as if he’n ne’er had
nowt else!”

And the big man—quite a contrast to Simon—stooped and lifted the babe
from the cradle with all the ease of long practice, and dandled it in
his arms, saying as he did so,

“Let’s hey a look at th’ little chap. Aw’ve not seen the colour o’ his
eyen yet.”

The eyes were grey, so dark they might have passed for black; and there
was in them more than the ordinary inquiring gaze of babyhood.

“Well, thah’rt a pratty lad; but had thah bin th’ fowest[6] i’ o’
Lankisheer, aw’d a-thowt thi mammy’d ha’ speered[7] fur thi afore
this,” added he, sitting down, and nodding to the child, which crowed
in his face.

“Ah! one would ha’ reckoned so,” assented Bess, without turning round.

“What ar’ ta gooin’ to do, Simon, toward fandin’ th’ choilt’s kin?”
next questioned their visitor.

Simon looked puzzled

“Whoy, aw’ve hardly gi’en it a thowt.”

But the question, once started, was discussed at some length. Meanwhile
the porridge destined for two Bess poured into three bowls, placing
three iron spoons beside them, with no more ceremony than, “Ye’ll tak’
a sup wi’ us, Mat.”

Mat apologised, feeling quite assured there was no more than the
two could have eaten; but Simon looked hurt, and the porridge was
appetising to a hungry man; so he handed the baby to the young woman,
took up his spoon, and the broken thread of conversation was renewed at
intervals. What they said matters not so much as what they did.

The next morning being Sunday, Cooper called for Clegg just as the
bells were ringing for church; and the two, arrayed in their best
fustian breeches, long-tailed, deep-cuffed coats, knitted hose,
three-cornered hats, and shoes, only kept for Sunday wear, set out to
seek the parents of the unclaimed infant, nothing doubting that they
were going to carry solace to sorrowing hearts.

Their course lay in the same track as the Irk, now pursuing its course
as smilingly under the bright August sun as though its banks were
not strewed with wreck, and foul with thick offensive mud, and the
woeful devastation were none of its doing. There were fewer houses on
their route than now, and they kept close as possible to the course
of the river, questioning the various inhabitants as they went along.
They had gone through Collyhurst and Blakely without rousing anyone
to a thought beyond self-sustained damage, or gaining a single item
of intelligence, though they made many a detour in quest of it. At a
roadside public-house close to Middleton they sat down parched with
heat and thirst, called for a mug of ale each, drew from their pockets
thick hunks of brown bread and cheese, wrapped in blue and white
check handkerchiefs, and whilst satisfying their hunger, came to the
conclusion that no cradle could have drifted safely so far, crossing
weirs and mill dams amongst uprooted bushes, timber, and household
chattels and that it was best to turn back.

In Smedley Vale, where the flood seemed to have done its worst, and
where a small cottage close to the river lay in ruins, a knot of
people were gathered together talking and gesticulating as if in eager
controversy. As they approached, they were spied by one of the group.

“Here are th’ chaps as fund th’ babby, an’ want’n to know who it
belungs to,” cried he, a youth whom they had interrogated early in the
day.

To tell in brief what Simon and his companion learned by slow
degrees—the hapless child was alone in the world, orphaned by a
succession of misfortunes. The dilapidated cottage had been for some
fifteen months the home of its parents. The father, who was understood
to have come from Crumpsall with his young wife and her aged mother,
had been sent for to attend the death-bed of a brother in Liverpool,
and had never been heard of since. The alarm and trouble consequent
upon his prolonged absence prostrated the young wife and caused not
only the babe’s premature birth, but the mother’s death. The care of
the child had devolved upon the stricken grandmother, who had him
brought up by hand, as Matthew’s sagacity had suggested. She was a
woman far advanced in years, and feeble, but she asked no help from
neighbours or parish, though her poverty was apparent. She kept poultry
and knitted stockings, and managed to eke out a living somehow, but
how, none of those scattered neighbours seemed to know—she had “held
her yead so hoigh” (pursued her way so quietly).

She had been out in her garden feeding her fowls, when the flood came
upon them without warning, swept through the open doors of the cottage,
and carried cradle and everything else before it, leaving hardly a wall
standing. In endeavouring to save the child she herself got seriously
hurt, and was with difficulty rescued. But between grief and fright,
bruises and the drenching, the old dame succumbed, and died on the
Thursday morning, and had been buried by the parish—from which in life
she had proudly kept aloof—that very afternoon, and no one could tell
other name she had borne than Nan.

Bess sobbed aloud when she heard her father’s recital which lost
nothing of its pathos from the homely vernacular in which it was
couched.

“An’ what’s to be done neaw?” asked Cooper, as he sat on one of the
rush-bottomed chairs, sucking the knob of his walking-stick, as if for
an inspiration. “Yo canno’ think o’ keeping th’ choilt, an’ bread an’
meal at sich a proice!”

“Connot oi? Then aw conno’ think o’ aught else. Wouldst ha’ me chuck it
i’ th’ river agen? What dost thah say, Bess?” turning to his daughter,
who had the child on her lap.

“Whoi, th’ poor little lad’s got noather feyther nor mother, an’ thah’s
lost boath o’ thi lads. Mebbe it’s a Godsend, feyther, after o’, as yo
said’n to me,” and she kissed it tenderly.

“Eh, wench!” interposed Matthew, but she went on without heeding him.

“There’s babby clooas laid by i’ lavender i’ thoase drawers as hasna
seen dayleet sin ar Joe wur a toddler, an’ they’ll just come handy. An’
if bread’s dear an’ meal’s dear, we mun just ate less on it arsels, an’
there’ll be moore fur the choilt. He’ll pay yo back, feyther, aw know,
when yo’re too owd to wark.”

“An’ aw con do ’bout ’bacca, lass. If the orphan’s granny wur too
preawd to ax help o’ th’ parish, aw’ll be too preawd to send her pratty
grandchoilt theer.”

An so, to Matthew Cooper’s amazement, it was settled. But the extra
labour and self-denial it involved on the part of Bess, neither Matthew
nor Simon could estimate.

In the midst of the rabid scepticism and Republicanism of the period,
Simon Clegg was a staunch “Church and King” man, and, as a natural
consequence, a stout upholder of their ordinances. Regularly as the
bell tolled in for Sunday morning service, he might be seen walking
reverently down the aisle of the old church, to his place in the
free seats, with his neat, cheerful-looking daughter following him
sometimes, but not always—so regularly that the stout beadle missed him
from his seat the Sunday after the inundation, and meeting him in the
churchyard a week later, sought to learn the why and wherefore.

The beadle of the parish church was an important personage in the eyes
of Simon Clegg; and, somewhat proud of his notice, the little tanner
related the incidents of that memorable flood-week to his querist,
concluding with his adoption of the child.

The official h’md and ha’d, applauded the act, but shook his powdered
head, and added, sagely, that it was a “greeat charge, a varry greeat
charge.”

“Dun yo’ think th’ little un’s bin babtised?” interrogated the beadle.

“Aw conno’ tell; nob’dy couldn’t tell nowt abeawt th’ choilt, ’ut wur
ony use to onybody. Bess an’ me han talked it ower, an’ we wur thinkin
o’ bringin’ it to be kirsened, to be on th’ safe soide loike. Aw reckon
it wouldna do th’ choilt ony harm to be kirsened twoice ower; an’
’twoud be loike flingin’ th’ choilt’s soul to Owd Scrat gin he wur no
kirsened at o’. What dun yo’ thinken’?”

The beadle thought pretty much the same as Simon, and it was finally
arranged that Simon should present the young foundling for baptism in
the course of the week.



CHAPTER THE THIRD.[8]

HOW THE REV. JOSHUA BROOKES AND SIMON CLEGG INTERPRETED A SHAKESPERIAN
TEXT.


Manchester had at that date two eccentric clergymen attached to the
Collegiate Church. The one, Parson Gatliffe, a fine man, a polished
gentleman, an eloquent preacher, but a _bon vivant_ of whom many odd
stories are told. The other, the Reverend Joshua Brookes, a short,
stumpy man (so like to the old knave of clubs in mourning that the
sobriquet of the “Knave of Clubs” stuck to him), was a rough, crusted,
unpolished black-diamond, hasty in temper, harsh in tone, blunt in
speech and in the pulpit, but with a true heart beating under the
angular external crystals; and he was a good liver of another sort than
his colleague.

He was the son of a crippled and not too sober shoemaker, who, when
the boy’s intense desire for learning had attracted the attention and
patronage of Parson Ainscough, went to the homes of several of the
wealthy denizens of the town, to ask for pecuniary aid to send his
son Joshua to college. The youth’s scholarly attainments had already
obtained him an exhibition at the Free Grammar School, which, coupled
with the donations obtained by his father and the helping hand of
Parson Ainscough, enabled him to keep his terms and to graduate at
Brazenose, to become a master in the grammar school in which he had
been taught, and a chaplain in the Collegiate Church.

So conscientious was he in the performance of his sacred duties that,
albeit he was wont to exercise his calling after a peculiarly rough
fashion of his own, he married, christened, buried more people during
his ministry than all the other ecclesiastics put together.

It was to this Joshua Brookes (few ever thought of prefixing the
“Reverend” in referring to him) that Simon Clegg brought “Nan’s” orphan
grandchild to be baptised on Tuesday, the 7th of September, just three
weeks from the date of his involuntary voyage down the flooded Irk.

It had taken the tanner the whole of the week following his
conversation with the beadle to determine the name he should give the
child, and many had been his consultations with Bess on the subject.
That very Sunday he had gone home from church full of the matter, and
lifting his big old Bible from its post of honour on the top of the
bureau (it was his whole library), he sat, after dinner, with his
head in his hands and his elbows on the table, debating the momentous
question.

“Yo’ see, Bess,” said he, “a neame as sticks to one all one’s loife,
is noan so sma’ a matter as some folk reckon. An’ yon’s noan a common
choilt. It is na ev’ry day, no, nor ev’ry year, as a choilt is weshed
down a river in a kayther, an’ saved from th’ very jaws of deeath.[9]
An’ aw’d loike to gi’e un a neame as ’ud mak’ it remember it, an’ thenk
God for his marcifu’ preservation a’ th’ days o’ his loife.”

After a long pause, during which Bess took the baby from the cradle,
tucked a napkin under its chin, and began to feed it with a spoon, he
resumed—

“Yo’ see, Bess, hadna aw bin kirsened Simon, aw moight ha’ bin a
cobbler, or a whitster,[10] or a wayver, or owt else. But feyther could
read tho’ he couldna wroite; an’ as he wur a reed-makker, he towt mi
moi A B C wi’ crookin’ up th’ bits o’ wires he couldna use into th’
shaps o’ th’ letters; an’ when aw could spell sma’ words gradely,[11]
he towt mi to read out o’ this varry book; an’ aw read o’ Simon a
tanner, an’ nowt ’ud sarve mi but aw mun be a tanner too, so tha sees
theer’s summat i’ a neame after o’.”

Bess suggested that he should be called Noah, because Noah was saved in
the ark; but he objected that Noah was an old greybeard, with a family,
and that he knew the flood was coming, and built the ark himself; he
was not “takken unawares in his helplessness loike that poor babby.”

Moses was her next proposition—Bess had learned something of Biblical
lore at the first Sunday-school Manchester could boast, the one in Gun
Street, founded by Simeon Newton in 1788—but Simon was not satisfied
even with Moses.

“Yo’ see, Moses wur put in’ th’ ark o’ bullrushes o’ purpose, an’
noather thee nor mi’s a Pharaoh’s dowter, an’ th’ little chap’s not
loike to be browt oop i’ a pallis.”

Towards the end of the week he burst into the room; “Oi hev it, lass,
oi hev it! We’n co’ the lad ‘Irk;’ nob’dy’ll hev a neame loike that,
and it’ll tell its own story; an’ fur th’ after-neame, aw reckon he mun
tak’ ours.”

Marriages were solemnized in the richly-carved choir of the venerable
old Church, but churchings and baptisms in a large adjoining chapel;
and thither Bess, who carried the baby, was ushered, followed by Simon
and Mat Cooper, who were to act as its other sponsors.

At the door they made way for the entrance of a party of ladies, whom
they had seen alight from sedan-chairs at the upper gate, where a
couple of gentlemen joined them. A nurse followed, with a baby, whose
christening robe, nearly two yards long, was a mass of rich embroidery.
The mother herself—a slight, lovely creature, additionally pale and
delicate from her late ordeal—wore a long, plain-skirted dress of
vari-coloured brocaded silk. A lustrous silk scarf, trimmed with
costly lace, enveloped her shoulders. Her head-dress, a bonnet with a
bag-crown and Quakerish poke-brim, was of the newest fashion, as were
the long kid gloves which covered her arms to the elbows.

The party stepped forward as though precedence was theirs of right even
at the church door, heeding not Simon’s mannerly withdrawal to let them
pass; and the very nurse looked disdainfully at the calico gown of the
baby in the round arms of Bess, a woman in a grey duffel cloak and
old-fashioned flat, broad-brimmed hat.

Is there any thrill, sympathetic or antagonistic, in baby-veins, as
they thus meet there for the first time on their entrance into the
church and the broad path of life? For the first time—but scarcely for
the last.

Already a goodly crowd of mothers, babies, godfathers, and godmothers
had assembled—a crowd of all grades, judging from their exteriors, for
dress had not then ceased to be a criterion; and all ceremonies of this
kind were performed in shoals—not singly.

The Rev. Joshua Brookes, followed by his clerk, came through the door
in the carven screen, between the choir and baptismal chapel, and took
his place behind the altar rails. And now ensued a scene which some
of my readers may think incredible, but which was common enough then,
and there, and is notoriously true. The width of the altar could
scarcely accommodate the number of women waiting to be churched; and
the impatient Joshua assisted the apparitors to marshal them to their
places, with a sharp “You come here! You kneel there! Yon woman’s not
paid!” accompanied by pulls and pushes, until the semi-circle was
filled.

But still the shrinking lady, and another, unused to jostle with rough
crowds, were left standing outside the pale.

Impetuous Joshua had begun the service before all were settled.
“Forasmuch as it hath pleased——”

His quick eye caught the outstanding figures. Abruptly stopping his
exordium, he exclaimed, in his harsh tones, which seemed to intimidate
the lady,

“What are you standing there for? Can’t you find a place? Make room
here!” (pushing two women apart by the shoulder), “thrutch up closer
there! Make haste, and kneel here!” (to the lady, pulling her forward).
“You come here;—make room, will you?” and having pulled and pushed them
into place, he resumed the service.

Presently there was another outburst. There had been a hushing of
whimpering babies, and a maternal smothering of infantile cries, as a
chorus throughout; but one fractious little one screamed right out, and
refused to be comforted. The nervous tremor on that kneeling lady’s
countenance might have told to whom it belonged, had Joshua been a
skilful reader of hearts and faces. His irritable temper got the better
of him. He broke off in the midst of the psalm to call out, “stop that
crying child!” The crying child did not stop. In the midst of another
verse he bawled, “Give that screaming babby the breast!” He went on.
The clerk had pronounced the “Amen” at the end of the psalm; the
chaplain followed, “Let us pray;” but before he began the prayer, he
again shouted, “Take that squalling babby out!”—an order the indignant
nurse precipitately obeyed; and the service ended without further
interruption.

Then followed the christenings, and another marshalling (this time of
godfathers and godmothers, with the infants they presented), in which
the hasty chaplain did his part with hands and voice until all were
arranged to his satisfaction.

It so happened that the tanner’s group and the lady’s group were ranked
side by side. The latter was Mrs. Aspinall, the wife of a wealthy
cotton merchant, who, with two other gentlemen and a lady, stood behind
her, and this time gave her their much-needed support. Indeed, what
with the damp and chillness of the church, and the agitation, the
delicate lady appeared ready to faint.

“Hath this child been already baptised or no?” asked Joshua Brookes,
and was passing on, when Simon’s unexpected response arrested him.

“Aw dunnot know.”

“Don’t know? How’s that? What are you here for?” were questions huddled
one on the other, in a broader vernacular than I have thought well to
put in the mouth of a man so deeply learned.

“Whoi, yo’ see, this is the choilt as wur weshed deawn th’ river wi’
th’ flood in a kayther; an’ o’ belungin’ th’ lad are deead, an’ aw mun
kirsen him to mak’ o’ sure.”

Joshua listened with more patience than might have been expected from
him, and passed on with a mere “Humph!” to ask the same question from
each in succession, before proceeding with the general service. At
length he came to the naming of several infants.

“Henrietta Burdelia Fitzbourne,” was given as the proposed name of a
girl of middle-class parents.

“_Mary_, I baptise thee,” &c., he calmly proceeded, handed the baby
back to the astonished godmother, and passed to the next, regardless of
appeal.

Mrs. Aspinall’s boy took his name of Laurence with a noisy protest
against the sprinkling. Nor was the foundling silent when, having been
duly informed that the boy’s name was to be “_Irk_,” self-willed Joshua
deliberately, and with scarcely a visible pause, went on—

“_Jabez_, I baptise thee in the name,” &c., and so overturned at one
fell swoop, all Simon’s carefully-constructed castle.

Simon attempted to remonstrate, but Joshua Brookes had another
infant in his arms, and was deaf to all but his own business. Such a
substitution of names was too common a practice of his to disturb him
in the least. But Simon had a brave spirit, and stood no more in awe of
Joshua Brookes—“Jotty” as he was called—than of another man. When the
others had gone in a crowd to the vestry to register the baptisms, he
stopped to confront the parson as he left the altar.

“What roight had yo’ to change the neame aw chuse to gi’e that choilt?”

“What right had yo’ to saddle the poor lad with an _Irksome_ name like
that?” was the quick rejoinder.

“Roight! why, aw wanted to gi’e th’ lad a neame as should mak’ him
thankful fur bein’ saved from dreawndin’ to the last deays o’ his
loife.”

“An _Irksome_ name like that would have made him the butt of every
little imp in the gutters, until he’d have been ready to drown himself
to get rid of it. Jabez is an honourable name, man. You go home, and
look through your Bible till you find it.”

Simon was open to conviction; his bright eyes twinkled as a new light
dawned upon them.

The gruff chaplain had brushed past him on his way to the robing-room;
but he turned back, with his right hand in his breeches pocket, and put
a seven-shilling piece in the palm of the tanner, saying:

“Here’s something towards the christening feast of th’ little chap I’ve
stood godfather to. And don’t you forget to look in ‘Chronicles’ for
Jabez; and, above all, see that the lad doesn’t disgrace his name.”

Joshua Brookes had the character, among those who knew him _least_, of
loving money overmuch, and this unwonted exhibition of generosity took
Simon’s breath.

The chaplain was gone before he recovered from his amazement—gone, with
a tender heart softened towards the fatherless child thrown upon the
world, his cynicism rebuked by the true charity of the poor tanner, who
had taken the foundling to his home in a season of woeful dearth.

And, to his credit be it said, the Rev. Joshua Brookes never lost sight
of either Simon or little Jabez. He was wont to throw out words which
he meant to be in season, but his harsh, abrupt manner, as a rule,
neutralized the effect of his impromptu teachings. Now, however, the
seed was thrown in other ground; and, as he intended, Simon’s curiosity
was excited. The Bible was reverently lifted from the bureau as soon as
they reached home, and, after some seeking, the passage was found.

Simon’s reading was nothing to boast of, but Cooper could not read
at all; and in the eyes of his unlettered comrades Clegg shone as
a learned man. He could decipher “black print,” and that, in his
days, amongst his class, was a distinction. Slowly he traced his
fingers along the lines for his own information, and then still
more slowly, with a sort of rest after every word, read out to his
auditors—Bess, Matthew, and Matthew’s wife (there in her best gown and
best temper)—with slight dialectal peculiarities, which need not be
reproduced—

“And Jabez was more honourable than his brethren: and his mother called
his name Jabez, because she bare him with sorrow. And Jabez called on
the God of Israel, saying, O that thou wouldst bless me indeed, and
enlarge my coast, and that thine hand might be with me, and that thou
wouldst keep me from evil, that it may not grieve me! And God granted
him that which he requested.”[12]

“Eh, Simon, mon, owd Jotty wur woiser nor thee. Theere’s a neame fur
a lad to stand by! It’s as good as a leeapin’-pow’[13] that it is, t’
help him ower th’ brucks[14] an’ rucks[15] o’ th’ warld.”

Simon sat lost in thought. At length he raised his head, and remarked
soberly—

“Parson Brookes moight ha’ bin a prophet; th’ choilt’s mother did bear
him wi’ sorrow. The neame fits th’ lad as if it had bin meade fur him.”

“Then aw hope he’s a prophet o’ eawt, feyther, an’ o’ th’ rest’ll come
true in toime,” briskly interjected Bess; adding—“Coom, tay’s ready;”
further appending for the information of their visitors—“Madam Clough
sent the tay an’ sugar, an’ th’ big curran’-loaf, when hoo heeard as
feyther had axed for a holiday fur the kirsenin’; an’ Mester Clough’s
sen some yale [ale], an’ a thumpin’ piece o’ beef.”

“Ay, lass; an, as we’n a’ready a foine kirsenin’ feast, we’n no change
parson’s seven-shillin’ piece, but lay it oop fur th’ lad hissen.”

But the christening feast did not proceed without sundry noisy
demonstrations from Master Jabez. If, as Simon had once hinted, he was
an angel in the house, he flapped his wings and blew his trumpet pretty
noisily at times.

“Eh, lass, aw wish Tum wur here neaw, to enjoy hisself wi’ us. Aw
wonder what he’d say to see yo’ nursin’ a babby so bonnily?”

Simon was munching a huge piece of currant-cake as he uttered this,
after a meditative pause. A look of pain passed over Bessy’s face.
She rarely mentioned the absent Tom, though he was seldom out of her
thoughts.

“Yea, an’ _aw_ wish he wur here!” she echoed with a sigh, the fountain
of which was deep in her own breast. “Aw wonder where he is neaw.”

“Feightin’, mebbe!” suggested her father.

“Killed, mebbe!” was the fearful suggestion of her own heart, and she
was silent for some time afterwards.

But the feast proceeded merrily for all that, and no wonder, where
Charity was president. And there was quite as happy a party under that
humble roof in Skinners’ Yard as that assembled in the grand house
at Ardwick, where Master Laurence Aspinall was handed about in his
embroidered robes for the inspection of guests who cared very little
about him, although they did present him with silver mugs, and spoons,
and corals, and protest to his pale and exhausted mamma that he was the
finest infant in Manchester.



CHAPTER THE FOURTH.

MISCHIEF.


It was a time of distress at home and war abroad. Glory’s scarlet fever
was as rife an epidemic in Manchester as elsewhere. The town bristled
with bayonets; corps of volunteers in showy uniforms, on parade or
exercise, with banners flying, dotted it like spots on a peacock’s
tail; the music of drum and fife drowned the murmurs of discontented
men, the groans of poverty-stricken women, and the cries of famishing
children. All nostrums were prescribed for the evils of famine except
a stoppage of the war. The rich made sacrifices for the poor; pastry
was banished by common consent from the tables of the wealthy in order
to cheapen flour; soup-kitchens were established for the poor, and in
the midst of the general dearth the nineteenth century struggled into
existence.

It was this war-fever which had carried off Bessy Clegg’s sweetheart,
Thomas Hulme, to Ireland, in Lord Wilton’s Regiment of Lancashire
Volunteers, three years before. The honest, true-hearted fellow could
not write for himself, postage was expensive and uncertain, and in all
those three years only two letters, written by a comrade, had reached
the girl. To her simple, uninformed mind, Ireland was as foreign
and distant a country as Australia is to us in these days. And to
be stationed there with his regiment amongst those “wild Irishmen,”
conveyed only the idea of battles and bloodshed. Yet she kept a brave
heart on the matter, and hid her anxieties from her father as well as
she was able. In some respects little Jabez _was_ a Godsend to her.
The frequent attention he required combined with her labours at the
batting-frame, and her household duties, tended to distract her mind
from the dark picture over which she was so much inclined to brood, and
to make her, if anything, more cheerful. Once more the voice which had
been silent tuned up in song, for the gratification of the youngster,
and in amusing him she insensibly cheered and refreshed herself.

Yet as she trilled her quaint ballads, or Sabbath-school hymns, she
little thought her vocalization was to furnish an envious mind with a
shaft to wound herself, and the one of all others dearer than herself.

Soon after the memorable christening feast, Matthew Cooper and his
family had removed—or “flitted,” as they called it—from Barlow’s Yards
to Skinners’ Yard; and Sally, that peaceable man’s termagant wife, was
not the most desirable of neighbours. The tea, and the currant-cake,
and the beef, on that unusually well-spread board, had filled her with
pleasure for the time, but turned to gall and bitterness ere they were
digested. Why should the Cleggs be so high in the favour of Mr. and
Madam Clough, and her Mat get nothing better than half-a-crown-piece?
He’d quite as much to do in saving the brat’s life as Simon had, and
with such a family, wanted it a fine sight more. So she argued and
argued with herself, quite ignoring, or blind to the fact that it was
not the mere impulse which saved, but the humanity which _kept_ the
babe, that Mr. Clough recognized, and never lost sight of.

As Simon grew in favour at the tannery, the more excited grew Sally
Cooper, until nothing would do but a removal to the opposite yard,
where she could see for herself the “gooin’s on o’ them Cleggs;” and
once there, she contrived to harass Bess by numberless little spiteful
acts, as well as by her vituperative tongue.

Nor did little Jabez himself escape. Parson Brookes, grumbling loudly
at every downward step, found his way to Bess o’ Sims, guided by the
quick-swishing, regular beat of the batting-wands.

Mrs. Clough having, by ocular demonstration, satisfied herself that
Bess was a sufficiently notable house-wife and a kindly nurse, had
replaced the worn out long-clothes which Jabez inherited from “brother
Joe,” by a set of more serviceable and suitable short ones; had,
moreover, sent an embrocation to allay Simon’s rheumatic pains, and to
crown the whole, supplied a go-cart for the boy, to help him to walk,
and yet leave the hands of industrious Bess at liberty.

As Miss Jewsbury has said, in her exquisite story of “The Rivals,” that
go-cart “was the drop added to the brimming cup, the touch given to the
falling column.”

Mat’s worse-half—an inveterately clean woman, be it said—was occupied
with her Saturday’s “redding up,” when she saw the wood-turner carry
it in; and she thereupon trundled her mop at the door so vigorously
and viciously, that the children instinctively shrank into corners,
or ran out of the yard altogether, beyond reach of her weighty arm.
And as, one by one, they ventured back, after what they thought a safe
interval, creeping stealthily over the freshly-sanded floor, and mayhap
leaving the impression of wet clogs thereon, jerks, cuffs, and slaps
were administered with a freedom born of her supposed wrongs.

When Mat came home, to offer his wages upon the household altar,
the storm had not subsided, and he was fain to retreat to the quiet
fireside of Simon to smoke his pipe in peace, and escape its pitiless
peltings. He could not have selected a worse haven. It was a flagrant
going over to the enemy. Thither she followed him in her wrath, and in
her blind fury assailed not only him, but Bess, Simon, Mr. Clough, and
Joshua Brookes, whom she mingled in indiscriminate confusion, casting
aspersions on the girl, which wounded nobody more than her own husband.

In the midst and in spite of all this, Jabez grew apace. Life was not
altogether sweetened for him by Mrs. Clough’s kindness, only made a
little less bitter, and certainly not less hard; since almost his first
experience with the go-cart was to tilt at the open doorway, and pitch
head-foremost down a flight of three steps into the stony yard, whence
frightened Bess raised him, with a bleeding nose and a great bump on
his forehead, amidst the mocking laughter of Sal Cooper.

A chair was overturned across the doorway as a barrier, until Simon
could place a sliding foot-board there. But Jabez had still many
a knock against chair or table until Bess made a padded roll for
his forehead, as a protective coronal. Then every tooth cost him a
convulsion, and any one less patient and tender hearted than Bess would
have abandoned her self-imposed charge in despair, his accidents and
ailments made such inroads on her rest and on her time.

But even patience has its limits, and Sally Cooper strained the
cable until it snapped. At a war of words Bess was no match for her
antagonist: and, rather than endure a second contest, the Cleggs left
the fiery serpent behind, and quitted the yard.

Not willingly, for Simon, contrary to the roving habits of ordinary
weekly tenants, had not changed his abode since his wedding-day, and
the river was as a friend to him. He declared he “could na sleep o’
neets without th’ wayter singin’ to him.” However, he connived to find
a very similar tenement, in just such another _cul-de-sac_, with just
such another tripe-dresser’s cellar underneath, and that, too, without
quitting Long Millgate. Midway between the college and the tannery
this court was situated, its narrow mouth opening to the breezes
wafting down Hanover Street: they could still look out on the verdure
of Walker’s Croft, and the Irk laved its stony base as at that same
Skinner’s Yard, which Simon lived to see demolished.

It was May; bright, sunny, perfumed May. The hawthorn hedges on the
ridge of the croft were white with scented blossoms, and the Irk—not
the muddled stream which improvement (?) is fast shutting out of
remembrance—went on its dimpled way, smiling at the promise of the
season. The echoes of the May-day milkcart bells, and the flutter
of their decorative ribbons, were dying out of all but infantile
remembrance;—the month was more than a fortnight old.

It was 1802, and Jabez was almost three years old. He was running, or
rather scrambling, about the uneven court, gathering strength of limb
and lung from their free use, albeit at the cost of dirt on frock and
face, and the trouble of washing for Bess.

She was singing at her batting-frame—not an unusual thing now, for
rumour had whispered in her ear that the Lancashire Volunteers were
on their homeward march. Even as she sang, a stout young fellow in
uniform stopped at the narrow entrance of the court, and questioned
two or three gossiping women, who, with arms akimbo, blocked up the
passage, if they knew the whereabouts of Simon Clegg, the tanner, and
his daughter Bess.

“What! th’ wench as has the love-choilt?” answered one of the women.

“The girl I mean had no child when I saw her last,” responded he,
between his set teeth.

“Happen that’s some toime sin’, mester, or it’s not th’ same lass.
That’s her singin’ like a throstle o’er her work at the oppen winder.”

“And that’s her choilt,” said another, ending by a lusty call, “Jabez,
lad, coom hither!”

Jabez, taught to obey his elders, came at a trot, in answer to the
woman’s call. The volunteer looked down upon him. The child had neither
Bess’s eyes nor Bess’s features; but he heard the voice of Bess,
and over the woman’s shoulder he caught a glimpse of her face at the
distant window. It _was_ Bess, sure enough!

Sick at heart, Tom Hulme, for it was he, leaned for support against the
side of the dark entry. These women but confirmed what he had heard in
Skinners’ Yard from Matt Cooper’s vindictive wife. The deep shadow of
the entry hid his change of countenance. Without a condemnatory word,
without a step forward towards the girl whose heart was full of him,
he steadied himself and his voice, and mustering courage to say, “No,
that is not the lass I want,” strode resolutely out of the entry; and,
bending his steps to the right, turned up Toad Lane, and so on to the
“Seven Stars,” in Withy Grove, where he was billeted.

He had come back from Ireland full of hope, and _this_ was the end
of it! He had been constant, and she was frail! She whom he had left
so pure had sunk so low that, though she bore the brand of shame,
she could sing blithely at her work, unconscious or reckless of
her degradation! Tom had only been a hand-loom weaver, and was but
a private in his regiment, but he had a soul as constant in love,
as sensitive to disgrace, as the proudest officer in the corps. He
might have doubted Sally Cooper’s artful insinuations, but for the
unconscious confirmation of the other women, and the personal testimony
of poor little Jabez; the innocent child, borne with sorrow by his own
dead mother, bringing sorrow to his living maiden-foster-mother.

The little lispings of the child conveyed no impression to Bess’s
understanding, but one of the women bawled out to her from the open
court—

“Aw say, theer’s bin a volunteer chap axin’ fur a lass neamed Bess
Clegg, but he saw thee from th’ entry, and said yore not th’ lass he
wanted!”

Her heart gave a great leap, and the blood flushed up to her pale
face. Could it be possible that there was another Bess Clegg of whom a
volunteer could be in search? Yet, had that been _her_ Tom, he would
have known his Bess again, even after five—ay, or twenty years. She
would know _him_ anywhere! And so all that day, and the next, her heart
kept in a flutter of expectation and perplexity. She wondered he did
not come. The regiment was in town; he surely had not been misled in
his inquiries because they had “flitted.” Yet in all her thoughts the
grim reality had no place. Her perfect innocence and singleness of
heart had never suggested such a possibility to her.

The days went by from the 13th to the 22nd, yet he came not. After
working-hours Simon tried to hunt him up; but the billeting system, and
ill-lighted streets, set his simple tactics at defiance. On the latter
day, Lord Wilton gave a dinner in the quadrangle of the College, to the
non-commissioned officers and privates in his regiment, to celebrate
their return, and the peace and plenty then restored to the land.

At the first sound of fife and drum, Bess snatched up Jabez, and
leaving house and batting-frame to take care of themselves, rushed
along the street to the “Sun Inn” corner, where Long Millgate turns
at a sharp angle, the old Grammar School and the Chetham College
gate standing at the outer bend of the elbow. The better to see, she
mounted the steps of the house next to the “Sun”—a house kept by a
leather-breeches maker,—and strained her eyes as the gay procession
wound from the apple-market, passed the handsome black-and-white
frame-house of the Grammar School’s head-master, and, with banners
flying, and drums beating, marched under the ancient arched gateway
between a double row of blue-coat boys.

She held Jabez high up in her arms to let him see, and his little arms
clasped her neck, as she scanned every passing soldier’s features.
Two-thirds of the corps had passed—she saw the loved and looked-for
face, and, radiant with delight, stretched forward, and in eager tones
called—“Tom!”

There was a mutual start of recognition; two faces crimsoned to
the brow; then one white as ashes, a keen meaning glance at the
child, teeth clenched, and eyes set with stern resolution; and,
without another look, without a word, Tom Hulme went on under the
Whale’s-jawbone gateway: and Bess, with brain bewildered, hands and
limbs relaxed, sank on the breeches-maker’s steps in a dead faint.

A lady (Mrs. Chadwick), who had a little girl by the hand, caught Jabez
as they fell, and putting his hand in her daughter’s, bade her take
care of him—she was perhaps a year or two older than he,—whilst she
raised the poor young woman’s head, and applied a smelling-bottle to
her nose.

Strange parting, strange meeting! How close the founts of sweet and
bitter waters lie! How often separate streams of life meet and part
again; some to meet and blend in after years, some to meet never more!

Another week, and Lord Wilton’s Lancashire volunteer regiment had a
man the less, the line had a man the more. Private Thomas Hulme had
exchanged.



CHAPTER THE FIFTH.[16]

ELLEN CHADWICK.


The song of the human throstle was heard no more floating across the
batting-frame out of the window of its cage, in the dreary yard on the
banks of the Irk. The swish of the wands might be heard when other
sounds were low, but no more snatches of melody flowed in between.

Kind-hearted Mrs. Chadwick had not been content to leave poor Bessy at
the breeches-maker’s when her swoon was over; but, seeing that the girl
continued in a dazed kind of stupor, sent to the adjoining “Sun Inn”
for cold brandy-and-water, to stimulate the dormant mind. Bess drank,
half unconsciously, and Mrs. Chadwick, leaving her little daughter
Ellen to amuse astonished Jabez, waited patiently until the young woman
could collect her ideas, and not only tell where she lived, but prepare
to walk home.

By that time the road was tolerably clear. Mrs. Chadwick thanked the
breeches maker, and bidding Miss Ellen march in advance with little
Jabez, herself helped Bessy Clegg homeward.

She never asked herself why or wherefore the girl had fainted, or whose
the child she carried in her arms. She merely saw a modest-looking
young woman stricken down by illness or distress, and put out a
Christian hand to help her.

It was past Simon’s dinner-hour, and they found him on the look-out for
the absentees. He was more bewildered than Bess when he saw her brought
home pale and trembling by a stranger, whose dress and manner bespoke
her superior station. Mrs. Chadwick explained, seeing that Bess was
incapable.

“The poor girl fainted almost opposite to the College gate, as she
watched Earl Wilton’s regiment march past. She recovered so slowly, I
was afraid to let her come through the streets unprotected, especially
as she had so young a child in her charge.”

Simon thanked her, as well he might. Benevolence will relieve distress
with money, or passing words of sympathy, but it is not often silken
skirt and satin bonnet walk through a crowded thoroughfare in close
conjunction with bonnetless cotton and linsey.

Yet Simon was utterly at a loss to account for her swoon. He could only
conjecture that she had missed her sweetheart from the corps, and that
the inquiring volunteer had been a comrade sent to announce Tom Hulme’s
death. Observing how much he was confounded, the good lady thought it
best to retire, and leave them to themselves.

“Come, Ellen, it is time we went home.”

But Ellen, seated on a low stool in the corner, had her lap full of
broken toys, which had found their way hither from the Clough nursery,
and which Jabez displayed to all comers.

“My daughter appears wonderfully attracted to your little grandson.”

“He’s noa gran’son o’ moine, Misses, though aw think aw love th’ little
lad as much as if he did belung to us. Aw just picked him eawt o’ th’
wayter, i’ th’ greet flood abeawt two year an’ hauve back. Aw dunnot
know reetly who th’ young un belungs to.”

“And you have kept him ever since—through all the trying time of
scarcity?”

“Yoi; aw could do no other, an’ a little chap like Jabez couldna ate
much.”

“It does you credit,” said the lady.

“Mebbe. Aw dunnot know. Aw dunnot see mich credit i’ doin’ one’s clear
duty. But aw think theer’d ha’ bin _dis_credit an’ aw hadna done it.”

“I wish everyone shared your sentiments,” replied she.

By this time the little girl had relinquished the toys, kissed the
little boy patronisingly, and was by her mother’s side, ready to
depart. A word of sympathy and encouragement from Mrs. Chadwick, and
father and daughter were left alone with their new sorrow.

Sorely puzzled was Simon to account for Tom Hulme’s strange conduct.
He could only come to the conclusion that he had picked up a fresh
sweetheart in Ireland, and was ashamed to show his face.

“An’ if so, lass, yo’re best off without him,” said he.

The stern, troubled look on the young volunteer’s face, which Bess had
seen and her father had not, he could not understand, and therefore
could not credit.

One day the girl said, as if struck by a sudden thought—

“Feyther, aw saw Tum look hard at Jabez. Dun yo’ think as heaw he
fancied aw wur wed?”

“He moight, lass, he moight,” said he, knocking the ashes out of his
pipe; “but dunnot thee fret; aw’ll look Tum up, and set it o’ reet, if
that’s o’.”

But there was no setting it right, for by that time Tom had left the
corps and the town, and thenceforth Bessy’s musical pipe was out of
tune, and stopped utterly. She worked, it is true, but she had no
heart in her work; and though before her father she kept up a show of
cheerfulness, in his absence she had shed many and bitter tears.

Smiles and tears are among a child’s earliest perceptions and
experiences. Of the mother’s smile in its full sense Jabez knew
nothing. With all her winning ways, Bess could never supply that
want, if want it could be where it was never missed, having so good
a substitute. But of the change which came over her when she knew
that Tom was indeed lost to her, even the three years child could be
sensible. He had been early taught to show a brave front when he hurt
himself, and the starting tears would subdue to a whimper; but, for all
that, tears to him meant pain or disappointment, and as they fell and
wetted the (not always clean) little cheek laid lovingly against hers,
a tender chord was struck; he would press his small arm tighter round
her neck, and with a sympathetic “Don’t ky, Beth!” nestle closer, and
try to kiss away the drops, which only fell the faster.

Low-spirited nurses do not make lively children, and Jabez, after a
stout tussle with the whooping-cough, began to droop as much as Bess;
so clear-eyed Simon instituted a series of Sunday rambles for the
three, in search of plants and posies, to brighten their dull home, and
of bloom to brighten the fading cheeks. Sometimes Matt Cooper, with one
or two of his youngsters, would join them, but not often; Sal was so
jealous of his friendship with the Cleggs, and the pleasant day was so
certain to be marred by an unpleasant reception in the evening at home.

These Summer walks seldom extended beyond Collyhurst Clough and
quarries, or Smedley Vale, or through the fields to Chetham Hill,
stopping at the “Cow and Calf” to refresh, and rest the little ones,
before they came back laden with wild flowers down Red Bank and over
Scotland Bridge, to their respective “yards” in Long Millgate.

At first, whenever they took the lower road through Angel Meadow,
they did their best to ferret out the parentage and connections of
Jabez, hoping by their inquiries even to keep alive the memory of his
marvellous deliverance, so that in case the missing father should
return, there might be a mutual restoration.

These Sunday excursions did not drop with the sere autumnal leaves. A
crisp clear day called them forth surely as sunshine had done, Jabez
mounting pick-a-back on the shoulders of Simon or Matt when his little
feet could no longer keep up their trot beside the bigger Cooper boys.
Frames were invigorated, cheerfulness came back to face and home, and
Simon, who had a deep-seated love of Nature in his soul, finding her so
good a physician, kept up the acquaintance through rounding seasons and
years. And from Nature he drew lessons which he dropped as seed into
the boy’s heart, as unconscious of the great work he was doing as was
Jabez himself.

The boy throve and grew hardy. Companionship with older and rougher
lads, sturdy fellows with wills of their own, made him sturdy too; a
lad who would take a blow and give one on occasion; who would run a
race and lose, and a second, and third, until he could win. But Bessy’s
gentle training was something very different from Sal’s, and Jabez grew
up tender as well as strong and bold.

A persecuted kitten had taken refuge under Bessy’s batting-frame in
the foundling’s go-cart days, and in care for that kitten, and for a
wounded brown linnet brought home one Sunday, he learned humanity.
Matthew’s lads were given to bird-nesting, and Matt himself saw no harm
in it; but when that young linnet’s wing was broken in a scuffle for
the nest stolen from a clump of brushwood, Simon read the robbers such
a homily they had never heard in their young lives, and as a corollary
he took the bird home to be fed and nursed by Bess and Jabez till it
could fly, an event which never came about.

In hot weather the lads pulled off clogs and stockings (there were
no trousers to turn up—they wore breeches), and waded into pools and
brooks, and Jabez would be no whit behind. On one of these occasions,
either the current was too strong for the venturesome child, or the
gravel slipped from under his feet, or his companions pushed him—no
matter which,—but in he went, and, but for the presence of Simon, would
have been drowned. Simon had been born on the river-banks, and could
swim like a fish. At once he resolved that Jabez should learn to do the
same, and begin at once.

“Yo’ see, Bess, if aw hadna bin theer he’d a bin dreawnded, sure as
wayter’s wet, an’ th’ third toime pays off fur o’; so he mun larn to
tak’ care on himsel’ th’ next toime he marlocks [gambols] among th’
Jack-sharps.”

Jabez was not six years old when Simon Clegg gave him and the young
Coopers their first lesson in swimming, in a delightful and sequestered
part of Smedley Vale, where the Irk was clear and bright. He had shown
them, nearer home, how a frog used its limbs, and then, after a few
preliminary evolutions, to show how a man used his, took the lad on his
back, and, after swimming with him awhile shook him off into the water
to flounder about for himself.

Bess was often left at home on Sundays after that; and Jabez was not
merely the better for his bath, but by the time he was eight years old
was a fearless swimmer.

Yet, although these country rambles had become an institution, Simon
Clegg never neglected his Sabbath duties. Sunday morning was sure to
see him, clean-shaven, in his best suit, with Jabez by the hand, and
mild-eyed Bess beside, on the free seats of the Old Church, under the
eye of parsons and churchwardens; and Jabez if he could understand
little of the service, could gather in a sense of the beautiful from
the grand old architecture, from the swell of the solemn organ, the
harmonious voices of the choristers—of the Blue-coat boys in the
Chetham-gallery over the churchwarden’s pew, and of the Green-coat
children farther on. Then the silver mace carried before the parson
was a thing to wonder at, and fill him with awe; and no one could tell
how the clerical robes, and choristers’ surplices, transfigured common
mortals in his admiring eyes.

But those years of Jabez Clegg’s young life had been full of history
for Manchester and Europe. The town had grown as well as the foundling.
Invention had been busy. Volunteer regiments had been one by one
disbanded, a daily newspaper was started, and peaceful arts nourished.
Then, ere another year expired, Napoleon declared the British Isles
in a state of blockade; British subjects on French soil, whether civil
or military, to be prisoners of war: British commodities lawful spoil;
and so War—red-handed War—broke loose once more. Again Manchester
rose up in arms to defend country and commerce. A “Loyalty Fund” of
£22,000 was raised for the support of Government. No fewer than nine
separate volunteer corps sprang from the ashes of the old ones, and the
town was one huge garrison. The commander of one regiment—the Loyal
Masonic Rifle Volunteer Corps,—Colonel Hanson—a remarkable man in many
ways,—was distinguished by a command from George III. to appear at
Court in full regimentals, and with his hat on.

Messrs. Pickford offered to place at the disposal of Government four
hundred horses, fifty waggons, and twenty-eight boats. Loyal townsmen,
with more money than courage of their own, sought to stimulate that
of others by sending gold medals flying amongst the officers of the
volunteer corps. “The British Volunteer” came from the press of Harrop
in the Market Place, and once more the music of drum and trumpet was in
the ascendant.

To crown the whole, Manchester, which had never been called upon to
entertain British Royalty since Henry VII. looked in upon the infant
town, was visited in 1804 by Prince William, Duke of Gloucester,
commander of the North-west District, and his son, to review this
Lancashire volunteer army; and the whole town was consequently in a
ferment of excitement. Nothing was thought of, or talked of, but the
visit of the Duke and Prince, and the coming review, the more so as
reports differed respecting the appointed site.

Market Street, Manchester, which a well-known writer has commemorated
as one of the “Streets of the World,” was then Market Street Lane,
a confused medley of shops and private houses, varying from the low
and ricketty black-and-white tenement of no pretensions, to the fine
mansion with an imposing frontage, and ample space before. But the
thoroughfare was in places so very narrow that two vehicles could not
pass, and pedestrians on the footpath were compelled to take refuge
in doorways from the muddy wheels which threatened damage to dainty
garments; and the whole was ill-paved and worse lighted.

At the corner where it opens a vent for the warehouse traffic of High
Street, _then_ stood a handsome new hotel, the Bridgewater Arms, in
front of which a semi-circular area was railed off with wooden posts
and suspended chains. Within this area, on the bright morning of April
the 12th, two sentinels were placed, who, marching backwards and
forwards, crossed and re-crossed each other in front of the hotel door;
tokens that the Royal Duke and his suite had taken up their quarters
within.

Beyond the semi-circle of chained posts, mounted horsemen kept back the
concourse of spectators which pressed closely on the horses’ heels.
Among the crowd was Simon Clegg, with Jabez mounted on his shoulders,
albeit he was a somewhat heavy load. Simon was a man of peace, but
he was a staunch believer in Royalty, and that, quite as much as the
spectacle, had drawn him thither.

It was a mild and cheery April morn; the windows of the upper room in
which sat the Prince, the centre of a brilliant circle, were open, and
the loyal multitude feasted their unaccustomed eyes with the sight.
As Jabez looked on in a child’s ravishment, a little dark-haired,
dark-eyed girl, some six or seven years old, turned sharply round the
narrow street by the side of the hotel on the flags where there was no
chain to bar; passing unquestioned the sentinel on guard, who, seeing
only a well-dressed solitary child in white muslin, with a sash and
hat-ribbons of pink satin, concluded that she belonged to the hotel.
Once there, she asked fearlessly—

“Where is Prince William? I want Prince William!”

Then the sentinel began to question; but the little maid had but one
reply—

“I want Prince William!”

The soldier would have turned her back: but the disputation had
attracted attention in the room above.

An officer’s head was thrust out.

“What’s the matter?” asked he.

“I want to see the Prince. I want to know——”

“Bid the little lady come up hither.”

And the little lady went up, all unconscious of state etiquette or
ceremonial.

An officer in rich uniform, with jewels on his breast, took her on his
knee, and asked what she wanted with Prince William.

“Oh, mamma and my aunts are wanting ever so to know if the review is
going to be on Camp Field or on Sale Moor; and Aunt Ellen says it’s to
be in one place, and mamma thinks it’s the other; and so, as I was
dressed first, I just slipped out at the back door, and ran here to ask
Prince William himself, for I thought _he_ would be sure to know.”

The gentleman laughed heartily, and the others followed suit.

“And who is your mamma, my dear?”

“My mamma is Mrs. Chadwick, and I’m Ellen Chadwick; and we live in
Oldham Street.”

“Oh, indeed! And why are the ladies so anxious to know where the Prince
holds the review?” asked the officer on whose knee she sat.

“Ah—that’s just it. If he reviews at Sale Moor, he will go past our
house; and then we shall see all the soldiers from our own windows.
Won’t it be fine?”

Another gentleman asked what the ladies were doing when she left; and
I’m afraid Ellen made more revelations anent their toilettes than were
strictly necessary, for the laughter was prolonged.

She had not, however, lost sight of her self-imposed mission.
Struggling from her seat, she said—

“Oh, please do tell me where is Prince William; I must go home, and I
do so want to know.”

“Tell your mamma, Miss Ellen,” said he, smiling, “that the Prince will
review at Sale Moor; and take this, my dear, for yourself,” putting a
shilling (shillings at that time were perfectly plain from over-long
use) in her hand.

“Oh, thank you! But are you sure—quite sure it is Sale Moor?”

“Quite sure.”

The little damsel set off, as much elated with her news as with her
shilling. As she ran briskly down the broad steps, and beyond the
barrier, she came in contact with Simon, who made way for her exit;
and, as she looked up smiling to thank him, her glance rested for a
moment on the boy he carried; but no spark of recognition flashed into
the eyes of either, and no one in all that crowd saw any connection
between that dainty white-frocked, pink-slippered, pink-sashed miss,
and the rough lad in the patched suit (a Clough’s cast-off) and wooden
clogs.



CHAPTER THE SIXTH.

TO MARTIAL MUSIC.


A second time Jabez and Ellen saw each other ere the day was out.

She had rushed home with eager feet and eyes, through back streets, to
startle Mrs. Chadwick, her newly-married sister, Mrs. Ashton, and a
bevy of friends, with the confident assurance that the review would be
at Sale, and to confirm it by the display of the plain shilling, which
“an osifer had given her.”

New Cross, where the volunteers assembled, was not then a misnomer.
A market cross occupied the centre space between the four wide
thoroughfares, of which Oldham Street is one; and the open area was
considerable.

The trumpets’ bray, the tramp of troops, were heard long before the
brilliant cavalcade was set in motion; and every window—every house in
Oldham Street (all good private residences of the Gower Street stamp)
held its quota of heads and eyes, and costumes as brilliant as the eyes.

The house of Mr. Chadwick was situated near the lower end, and
commanded a good view of the Infirmary, its gardens, and pond in
Piccadilly. To-day, however, the royal party and the volunteers, many
of whom had friends looking out for them, were the only prospect worth
a thought; and as they marched proudly on, to the gayest of gay tunes,
kerchiefs waved, heads nodded, and eyes sparkled with delight and
pleasure.

As the Duke of Gloucester and his suite rode by, their chargers
prancing to the music, Ellen, mounted on a chair by the window between
Mrs. Ashton and her mother, suddenly pointed to an officer in their
midst, resplendent with stars and orders, and in an ecstasy of delight
screamed out—

“Mamma, mamma! that’s the gentleman that gave me the shilling!”

The little treble voice pierced even through the clamorous music. A
noble head was bowed, a plumed hat was raised, and lowered until it
swept the charger’s mane.

“Why, child, that is Prince William!” was the simultaneous exclamation,
as all the eyes from all the houses across the street were turned in
wonderment to see the Chadwicks so distinguished; and Simon, who, still
carrying Jabez, was trying to keep pace with the troops, wondered too.
Moreover, he recognised the lady and little girl, though seen but once;
for he earned his own living, such as it was, and had been too proud to
call on the Chadwicks to say how his daughter fared lest they should
think he sought charity.

“Jabez, lad, si thi, yon’s th’ lady and little lass as browt yo’ whoam,
when yo’ went seein’ the sodgers afore!”

And Jabez, from his shoulder-perch, looked up at the little bright-eyed
brunette, to remember the white frock and pink ribbons he had seen at
the Bridgewater, but nothing beyond.

The man’s exclamation and attitude had at the same time attracted Mrs.
Chadwick, who, smiling down on him and Jabez, spoke to Ellen; and she,
reminded of the little baby who had been saved from drowning in a
cradle, looked down and, in the fulness of her new importance, nodded
too.

The momentary stoppage called forth a loud objurgation as a reminder
from Sally Cooper, who was in advance with Matthew and such of her
bigger lads as could step out; and Simon, equally anxious not to lose
sight of the royal party, hurried on. But Sale Moor is beyond the
confines of Lancashire, and Simon found the five miles stiff walking,
with a child nearly six years old on his shoulders, and Master Jabez
had to descend from his seat, and trudge on his own feet. This caused
them to lag behind their friends, Sally insisting on Matt’s keeping up
with the soldiers, in order that they might get a good place on the
Moor, and they were thus separated. Bess had remained at home. Never
again could she look on marching troops without a pang.

Sale Moor was alive with expectant sightseers. Stands and platforms
had been erected for the accommodation of those who could afford and
cared to pay; there was a sprinkling of heavy carriages, and a crowd of
carts, but the mass of spectators were on foot, vehicular locomotion
being of very limited capacity.

Of these latter were the Coopers and Cleggs, of course. Sally, with
the elders of her turbulent brood, had reached the ground in time to
be deafened by the score of cannon Lord Wilton’s artillery fired as a
salute to princedom. She had planted herself firmly against one of the
supports of an elevated platform, where the crowd of hero-worshippers
was densest. She was tightly jammed and crushed against the woodwork;
but what matter? she had a fine sight of the field, and as she watched
the evolutions of the volunteers, congratulated herself and Matthew on
having left “that crawling Clegg an’ th’ brat so far behint.”

Almost as she spoke, there was a faint crackle, then another, and a
yielding of the post against which she leaned—a loud crash, a chorus of
shrieks, half drowned by music and musketry, and the whole platform was
down, with the living freight it had borne; and she was down with it.

The fashion, wealth, and beauty of Cheshire and South Lancashire
had their representatives amongst that struggling, swooning,
writhing, shrieking, groaning mass of humanity, heaped and huddled in
indiscriminate confusion, with up-torn seats, posts, and draperies.
Strange to say, only one person was killed outright—that is, on the
spot—for in its downfall the stand bore with it many of the throng
beneath. But of the injured and the shaken, those who went to hospital
and home to linger long and die at last, history has kept no record.

Amongst these, this story tells of two—two differing in all but sex.
Mrs. Aspinall, ever frail and delicate, was borne to her carriage
with whole limbs, but insensible, her husband and their son Laurence
both uninjured by her side. Physicians were in attendance, and never
left her until she was safely lodged in her own luxurious chamber,
overlooking Ardwick Green, and could be pronounced out of immediate
danger. Sally Cooper, with a sprained ankle, a dislocated shoulder, and
many internal bruises, was placed in a light cart on a bed of straw
procured from a neighbouring farm, with another of the injured, and
carried to the Manchester Infirmary, to try the skill and the patience
of the doctors and nurses.

Neither recovered. The unwounded lady, sorely shaken, succumbed to
the shock her nervous system had received; and Master Laurence,
already petted and wilful, was left to be still farther spoiled by
his widowed father and Kitty, his mother’s old nurse. Sally, strong
of frame and will, impatient of pain and of restraint, was restive
under the surgeons’ hands, and defeated their efforts to ascertain her
injuries. She exhausted herself with shrieks and cries, tossed about
and disturbed bandages, rejected physic, which she called “poison,” and
soon put her case beyond the cure of physicians. Too late, she became
sensible of her own folly. Then, when recovery was impossible, she
repented of many misdeeds, and of none more than her slander of poor
Bess.

And thus it was. When the mother was taken from the head of Cooper’s
home, Bessy’s kind heart yearned to help the disconsolate man and his
troop of children. Fortunately, the eldest was a girl of sixteen, and
there was a younger girl of ten. Both of these had gone out to work,
but now Molly had to stay at home and try to keep all right and tight
there. And here Bess came to her aid. Without scolding or brawling,
she put the girl into the way of doing things quickly and quietly. She
encouraged her to persevere, so that her cleanly mother should detect
no eyesores when she came home restored. She tried to persuade the
boys to be less refractory—to help, not to irritate, their sister; and
somehow Cooper’s home began to miss Sal, much as one misses a whirlwind.

The kindness of Bess o’ Sim’s was duly reported to the Infirmary
patient, and at first chafed her sorely. She “hated to be under
obligations, and to that lass o’ all others.” But Bess, leaving
her own work—and the loss of an hour meant the loss of an hour’s
earnings—herself went to see Sally; and such was the influence of her
gentle voice and touch, that Sally’s chagrin imperceptibly wore away.

Towards the last she grew delirious, raved of Bess and Tom Hulme and
forgiveness, and in the short calm preceding dissolution, confessed to
Matt Cooper and the attendant nurse that she had cast a slur on Bess
Clegg’s good name. Had made Tom Hulme believe that Simon had taken
the lass from Skinner’s Yard to hide her shame. That everybody in the
yard knew that Bess had a child. And that she had bade him inquire for
himself. And almost her last word was a hope that Bess would forgive
her.

Matthew Cooper himself hardly forgave his dead wife. How, therefore,
should he carry this confession to Bess, and ask her to forgive? He
took a medium course; and after a few days’ consideration, while they
and the rest of the tanners were eating their “baggin” (a workman’s
luncheon, so called from the bag it is, or was, usually carried in),
sat down beside Simon on a bundle of thick leather, and told him as
well as he was able.

Simon was troubled; but he was not vindictive. He would have been less
than a man had he not been bitter against the cruel woman who had
causelessly wrecked his good daughter’s life. But he was sorry for
Matt, and broke out into no revilings. The woman was dead. The ill she
had done had been fearfully punished, and neither curses nor reproaches
could affect her or undo the mischief.

He left his cheese and jannock on the hides untasted, drew his hand
across his forehead, and went down to the river-side and across the
wooden bridge for a breath of fresh air and a waft of fresh thought.
He was only a rugged tanner, but he had a heart within his breast; he
had a daughter on his hearth with a great wound in _her_ heart, a blast
on her good name, and he was called upon to forgive the author of this
mischief!

Simon had long been used to commune with his own heart. He had built
up a wall round it with the leaves of that one book on his bureau; and
whenever he was in doubt or difficulty, he read the precepts inscribed
upon that wall. He went back to Cooper, whose appetite had been no
better than his own.

“Aw mun think this ower, Matt. Aw connot say aw furgive yo’r Sal o’ at
a dash. Hoo’s done that as may niver be undone whoile thee an’ me’s
alive; an’ aw connot frame to say as aw furgive her loike o’ on a
sudden. An’ aw mun think it ower before eawt be said to eawr Bess, poor
wench!”

A week elapsed before the subject was broached again. Then Simon spoke
to Matthew as they were leaving the tannery-yard.

“Coom into th’ ‘Queen Anne’” (he called it quëan), “Matt, and have a
gill; aw’ve summat t’ say to thee.”

There was nobody in the taproom. They sat down to their half-pint horns
of ale—times were too hard to afford deeper draughts—and Simon said:

“Aw’ve bin thinkin’ o’ this week, an’ as aw connot forgive yo’r Sal,
gradely loike, aw’ll no put th’ same temptation i’ th’ way of eawr
Bess. Hoo’d better think Tum’s takken oop wi’ some other wench, than
ha’ th’ shame o’ knowin’ th’ lad’s toorned her up i’ disgrace. Hoo’s
getten ower th’ worst o’ her trouble, an’ awm not gooin to break her
heart outreet, and mebbe set her agen little Jabez into th’ bargain.”

Matthew could but assent to Simon’s proposition. But Simon had not said
all his say.

“But aw’m not gooin’ to sit deawn wi’ my honds i’ mi’ lap, an’ that
grëat lump o’ dirty slutch stickin’ to moi lass. Yo’ mun help me t’
find eawt wheer Tum Hulme’s getten to, an’ help to set o’ straight
afore aw forgive yo’r Sal, tho’ hoo be dead an’ gone.”

“Wi’ o’ my heart!” responded Matt; and he gave his huge hand to Simon
in token thereof.

When the Duke of Gloucester inspected the volunteers at Ardwick on the
30th of September that same year, not one of the people I have here
linked together witnessed the show.

The blinds were down at Mr. Aspinall’s to shut out a sight the like of
which had made him a widower; and within the darkened nursery, wilful,
obstreperous Laurence fought and kicked and bit at old Kitty, because
she kept him within doors and from the windows at his father’s command.

There was a christening party in Mosley Street, at the Ashtons’, at
which not only the Chadwicks, but the Rev. Joshua Brookes—who had that
day named the infant Augusta—were present. They had selected a public
occasion for their private festival. It was a grand affair. Mr. Ashton
was a small-ware manufacturer in a large way of business, his house
and warehouse occupying a large block of buildings at the corner of
York Street. And the baby Augusta, born the previous month, was a first
child, his wife being younger than himself considerably. Miss Ellen,
too, was there, her wonderful shilling, through which a hole had been
drilled, suspended from her neck like an amulet.

Simon and Matt had given up their holiday to fruitless inquiries
after Tom Hulme; and Jabez, after a stand-up fight with a boy in the
yard in defence of his kitten, had come to have his bleeding nose and
bruised forehead doctored by Bess, who shed over him the tears long
gathering in their fountains for Tom Hulme’s defection. And somehow at
that stylish christening feast, where the baby Augusta was a personage
of importance almost as great as the celebrated Miss Kilmansegg,
the orphan Jabez and his fosterers came on the table for discussion
along with the dessert; Mrs. Chadwick, Mr. Clough, and Joshua Brookes
concurring in the opinion mooted by the lady that something should
be done to relieve the worthy tanner and his daughter of the cost
and trouble of maintaining the boy as he grew older and would want
educating. That they should talk of the cost of maintenance when bread
was a shilling a loaf, was no marvel; but that “education” should be
named as a necessity for one of “nobody’s children,” can only be cited
as a proof that either the boy’s strange introduction to Manchester, or
Simon’s strange generosity, had excited an interest in both beyond the
common run.

Yet that “something” was vague. The only definite and practicable view
of the subject was held by Joshua Brookes, and he kept his opinion to
himself.



CHAPTER THE SEVENTH.[17]

THE REVEREND JOSHUA BROOKES.


Joshua Brookes had a child’s love for toffy and other sweetmeats. These
he purchased—or obtained without purchase—from an old woman as odd and
eccentric as himself, a Mrs. Clowes, who occupied a bow-windowed shop
in Half Street, which literally overlooked the churchyard, three or
four steep steps having to be mounted by her customers.

And how numerous were her customers, and how great the demand for her
toffy, lozenges, and “humbugs” may be judged from the fact that her
workmen and apprentices used up eight or nine tons of sugar every week.
Yet she was only a shop-keeper, and had begun business in a very humble
way; but she was persevering and industrious, and success followed. She
was active and energetic, and expected those around her to be the same.
Yet she was kind to them, as may be supposed, for she gave every Sunday
a good dinner to fourteen old men and women on whom fortune had looked
unkindly, waiting upon them herself, and never tasting her own dinner
until her pensioners had dined.

Regular in her own attendance at the old Church, she required her
household to be regular too, though she left them little enough time
to dress—possibly because her own toilette was so scant. The dress in
which she presented herself at church was certainly unique for a woman
of wealth. Her gown of sober stuff was well worn; a mob-cap (a fashion
which came in with the French Revolution) adorned her head, over which,
by way of bonnet, a brown silk handkerchief was tied. On rare—very
rare—occasions, an old black silk bonnet covered all.

Joshua Brookes, at odds with his clerical brethren, with his pupils,
and half the world besides, was on good terms with Mrs. Clowes. Rough,
prompt, and uncompromising was she; rough, irritable and unmannerly was
he; both unpromising hard-husked nuts, with sweet and tender kernels.
So rough, few ever suspected the soft heart; yet the woman who fed
the poor before herself, and the learned clergyman who had a fancy
for pigeons, and who cherished the drunken and abusive old crippled
shoemaker, his father, to the last, must have intuitively known the
inner life of each other.

The day following Augusta Ashton’s christening, it fell within the
round of the Reverend Joshua’s duty to read the burial service over
a dead townswoman in the churchyard. And now occurred one of those
incidents in which the ludicrous and the profane blended, and brought
impulsive Joshua into disfavour. As was not unfrequently the case, he
broke off in the midst of the service, left the mourners and the coffin
beside the open grave, threw his legs over the low wall, and, mounting
the steps into the confectioner’s shop, said,

“Here, quick, dame! Give me some horehound drops for my cough.”

On his entrance Mrs. Clowes broke off a narrative over which she and
her shopwoman were laughing heartily, in order to reach the required
drops, which went into a paper without weighing, and for which no
payment was tendered. Back he strode over the church wall to resume the
interrupted ceremonial.

It must here be observed that Joshua had remarkably shaggy eyebrows,
overhanging his quick eyes like pent-houses, and that it was the wont
of the schoolboys and others to annoy him by drawing their fingers
significantly over their own. A young sweep sat upon the church wall to
witness the funeral, and—young imp of Satan that he was!—he could not
forbear drawing a thumb and forefinger over each brow, full in Joshua’s
sight, just as he reached the passage—“I heard a voice from heaven
saying——”

The shaggy eyebrows contracted; he roared out—

“Knock that little black rascal off the church wall!”

The mischievous little blackamoor was off, with a beadle after him; and
the eccentric chaplain, whom no sense of irreverence seemed to strike,
concluded the ceremony with no further interruption.

At its close, Mr. Aspinall and another mourner took the clergyman to
task for his disrespect to the remains of the deceased Mrs. Aspinall,
whose obsequies had been so irregularly performed. They said nothing of
disrespect to the Divinity profaned; their own feelings and importance
had been outraged, and they forgot all else even by the dust and ashes
in the gaping grave; and little Laurence, cloaked and hooded, forgot
his grief in watching the chase after the sweep.

“How dare you, sir, give way to these indecencies at the funeral of my
wife? It has been most indecorous and insulting, both to the dead and
her afflicted relatives.”

“She’s had Christian burial, hasn’t she?” gruffly interrogated Joshua.

“Hardly,” was the hesitating answer.

“She’s been laid in consecrated ground, and I’ve read the burial
service over her; what more would you have? Some folk are never
satisfied.”

Emptying half his horehound drops into the hand of Master Laurence,
Joshua turned on his heel, went to the chapter-house to disrobe, and
then back over the wall to Mrs. Clowes.

“I say, dame, you were not at church on Sunday.”

“No, Parson Brookes; I was in Liverpool.”

“Oh!” grunted he, “in Liverpool. Sugar-buying, I suppose?”

“Yea; an’ a fine joke I’ve had.”

Joshua pricked up his ears: he did not object to a little fun.

“You mun know I thought I’d give Branker, the new sugar-brokers,
a trial, an’ I went there and asked to see samples; but the young
whipper-snapper of a salesman looked at me from top to toe, an’ I
suppose, reckoned up the value of my old black bonnet, my kerchief an’
mutch, an’ my old stuff dress, and fancied my pocket must match my
gown, for he was barely civil, and didn’t seem to care for the trouble
o’ showin’ th’ samples. So I bade my young man good day, and said I’d
call again.”

“And didn’t, I suppose. Just like a woman,” put in Joshua.

“Oh, yea, I did. I borrowed my landlady’s silk gown and fine satin
bonnet, and put on my lady’s manners; and then Mr. Whipper-snapper
could show his samples, and _his_ best manners too. But when I gave my
orders by tons, and not hundredweights, he looked at me, and looked
again, as if he thought I’d escaped from a madhouse; an’ at last he
began to h’m an’ ah, an’ talk of large orders, an’ cash payment, an’
references; an’ I told him to make out th’ invoice and bring it.
An’ when I pulled out this old leather pocket-book, and counted the
bank-notes to pay him down on the nail, good gracious! how the fellow
stared! I reckon I’ll not need to borrow a silk dress when I give my
next order. It was as good as a play.”

“Um! You women-folk think yourselves wonderfully clever. But come, I
can’t waste my time here.” (Joshua had heard all he went for.) “Give me
quarter-a-pound of humbugs; I threw half the other things away,” said
he.

“I don’t think it’s much you’ll throw away, Jotty,” replied the
old confectioner, with independent familiarity, as she weighed and
parcelled the sweets, for which this time he put down the money.

“It’s much you know about it, Mother Clowes,” he jerked out, as if
throwing the words at her over his shoulder, as he turned to leave the
shop, putting the package in one of the large pockets of his long flap
waistcoat as he went.

His own house, not more than three hundred yards away, adjoined the
Grammar School; a red-brick building, with stone quoins, now darkened
by time and smoke, one gable of which overhung the Irk; the other,
pierced for four small-paned windows, almost confronting the antique
Sun Inn, at the acute angle of Long Millgate, and quite overlooking an
open space, flanked by the main entrance to the College. From this, the
east wing of the College, it is separated by a plain iron gateway and
palisades on the Millgate side, and by a wall which serves as a screen
from the river on the other side; and the enclosed space between rails,
wall, College, and the front of the school served as a playground for
such scholars as were willing to keep within bounds. It was divided
into upper, middle, and lower schools, the last being in the basement,
and designed for elementary instruction. The high and middle schools
together occupied the same long room above this. Joshua Brookes, as
second master, presided over the middle school, and surely never M.A.
had so thankless an office. He was placed at a terrible disadvantage
in the school, not altogether because he had risen from its lowest
ranks—not altogether because a drunken foul-mouthed cripple interfered
with their sports, or went reeling to his son’s domicile next door—not
because he was unduly severe; other masters were that—but because his
own eager thirst for knowledge as a boy had made him intolerant towards
indolence, incredulous of incapacity; and his constitutional impatience
and irritability made his harsh voice seem harsher when he reproved
a dullard. He lost his self-command, and with that went his command
over others. Meaning to be affable to the poor, from whose ranks he
sprang, he became familiar; and they reciprocated the familiarity so
fully as to draw down the contempt of his _confreres_. He was a man to
be respected, and they slighted him; a man to be honoured, and they
snubbed him. What wonder, then, that eccentricities grew like barnacles
on a ship’s keel, or that the boys failed in obedience and respect to a
master when their elders set them the example?

This defence of a misunderstood man has not taken up a tithe of the
time he gave to his refractory class, to whom he went straightway from
the confectioner’s, whose “humbugs” had melted considerably, not wholly
down his own throat, before the hour when the boys closed their Latin
Grammars and Greek Lexicons, and poured as if they were mad down the
steps, and through the gate, to the road. Yet even the sweets he gave
to the attentive did not conciliate; they only made the intractable
more defiant; and even the recipients felt they were bribed.

Warned by the uproar of a large school in motion, as well as by the
long-cased clock, Tabitha, his one servant, had her master’s tea ready
for him the instant he came in from the school, as he generally did,
fagged and jaded, with the growl of a baited bear.

That day he simply put his head into the house, and bawled, “Tea ready,
Tab?” and without waiting for an answer, went on, “Keep it hot till I
get back;” then, closing the door, took his way eastwards down Long
Millgate. His journey was not a long one. It ended at the bottom of a
yard where a sad pale-faced young woman was switching monotonously at
a mass of downy cotton, and listening at the same time to the equally
monotonous drawl of a youngster in the throes of monosyllabic reading.

“Get larning, lad!—get larning! Larning’s a greät thing. Yo’ shan read
i’ this big picture-book when you can spell gradely,” had been Simon’s
precept and inducement; and Jabez, to whom that big pictorial Bible was
a mysterious unexplored crypt, did try with all his little might.

“J-a-c-k—Jack, w-a-s—was, a g-o-o-d—good, b-o——”

“And I hope you’re a good boy, as well as Jack,” said Joshua Brookes
abruptly, as he put his head into the room, and put a stop to the
lesson at the same time. “But, hey-day” (observing the swollen nose and
bruised forehead), “You’re been in the wars. Good boys don’t fight.”

“Then what did Bill Barnes throw stones at ar pussy for? Good boys
dunnot hurt kittlins,” said Jabez, nothing daunted.

Bess explained.

“Um!” quoth Joshua, when she had finished, “he’s fond of his kitten,
is he?” and drawing Jabez towards him by the shoulder, with one finger
uplifted as a caution, he looked down on the shrinking child, and said,
impressively—

“Never fight if you can help it, Jabez; but if you fight to save a poor
dumb animal from ill-usage, or to protect the weak against the strong,
Jotty Brucks is not the man to blame you. Here, lad,” and into the
pinafore of Jabez went the remainder of the “humbugs.”

He patted the boy on the head, bade him get on with his reading, he did
not know what good fortune might come of it, told him to come regularly
to church, to love God and God’s creatures, and went away, leaving
Bess to prepare her father’s porridge (tea was from twelve to sixteen
shillings a pound, and beyond their reach).

Almost on the threshold he encountered Simon.

“Can’t you keep that young sprig out of mischief? If he begins fighting
and quarrelling at six years old, what will he do when he is sixteen?”
he cried, gruffly, as he brushed past the tanner, and was far up the
yard before the man could think of a reply.

A couple of young pigeons were sent for Jabez about a week after, with
a large bag of stale cakes and bread to feed them with. The name of the
sender was unknown, but anyone acquainted with the habits of Joshua
Brookes (who contracted for Mrs. Clowes’s waste pastry, to fill the
crops of his own feathered colony) would not have been troubled to
guess.

Simon stroked his raspy chin, and seemed dubious, cost of keep being a
question; but Jabez looked so wistful, his foster-father borrowed tools
and answered the appeal by making a triangular cote for them, and Jabez
found fresh occupation in their care. Yet occupation was not lacking,
young as he was. He could fetch and carry, run short errands, and help
Bess to clean. Their living-room no longer waited a week to be swept
and dusted, Jabez did it every day, standing on a chair to reach the
top of the bureau, where lay the cynosure of his young eyes. He still
took his Sunday lessons in field or stream with Simon, and through the
week clambered up from monosyllables to dissyllables with Bess.



CHAPTER THE EIGHTH.

THE BLUE-COAT SCHOOL.


The children of the poor begin early to earn their bread.
Legislature has stepped in to regulate the age and hours for labour
in manufacturing districts, and to provide education for the very
humblest. Jabez Clegg was not born in these blissful times, and he only
narrowly escaped the common lot.

He was not eight years old, yet Simon, on whom war-prices pressed as
heavily as on his neighbours, began to discuss with Bess the necessity
for sending the lad to Simpson’s factory (where Arkwright’s machinery
was first set in motion).

“He mun goo as sune as the new year taks a fair grip,” decided Simon,
and 1805 was at its last gasp as he said it.

But the new year brought Jabez a reprieve by the uncourtly hands of
Joshua Brookes. Meeting Simon and Jabez at a stall in the Apple-market,
where, the better to bargain, he had laid down a pile of old classical
school-books (Joshua was a collector of these, which he retailed again
to the boys at prices varying with his mood, or his estimate of the
purchaser’s pocket), he accosted the former.

“Well, old Leathershanks, what are you going to make of young
Cheat-the-fishes there? I suppose he’s to follow your own trade, he
began to _tan hides_ so early?” And the glance which shot from under
his shaggy brows caused the boy to blush, and shrink behind his
protector.

Simon’s eyes twinkled, but he shook his head as he answered:

“Nay, Parson Bruks, we’n thowt o’ sendin’ him t’ th’ cotton fact’ry;
but it fair goos agen th’ grain to send th’ little chap through th’
streets to wark Winter an’ Summer, weet or dry, afore th’ sun’s oop an’
abeawt _his_ wark. But we conno’ keep him bout it—toimes are so bad.”

“H’m! Then what a stupid old leather-head you must be not to
think of the College, where he’d be kept and fed and clothed and
educated!—_educated_, man—do you hear?”

Simon heard, and his eyes again twinkled and winked at the new idea
presented to him.

“And apprenticed!” he echoed, with a long-drawn, gasping breath.

“Ay, and apprenticed.”

The parson, cramming his pockets with apples, for which he had higgled
with much persistence, handed one to Jabez with the question—

“How would you like to be a College boy, Jabez, and wear a long blue
coat, like that fellow yonder” (pointing to a boy then crossing the
market on an errand), “and learn to write and cipher, as well as to
read?”

“If you please’n, aw’d loike it moore nor eawt.” And his animated face
was a clearer answer than his words.

Joshua then read the lad a brief homily to the effect that only good
and honourable boys could find admission, winding up with—

“If you’re a _very_ good lad, I’ll see what can be done for you.”

He interrupted thanks with—

“Easter’s very near, Sim, so you’ll have to stir your stumps to prove
that our _honourable_ young friend came honourably into the world. I’ll
get the forms and fill them up for you, and his baptismal register too.”

He snatched up his books and was off, the tassel of his collegiate cap
and the cassock he wore flying loose as he hurried away muttering to
himself—

“What an old fool I am to bother about the lad! I daresay he’ll turn
round and sting me in the end, like the rest of the snakes I have
warmed. As great an idiot as old dame Clowes!”

Chetham’s College, or Hospital, is a long, low, ancient stone edifice,
built on the rock above the mouth of the Irk, with two arms of unequal
length, stretching towards church and town, and embracing a large
quadrangle used as a playground, which has for its fourth and southern
boundary a good, useful garden.

It is needless to grope upward from the time when the Saxon Theyn built
a fortified residence on its site; sufficient for us that Thomas de la
Warr, youngest son of the feudal baron of Manchester, was brought up
to the Church, and in the fourteenth century inducted into the Rectory
of Manchester, his father being patron. His elder brother dying at the
close of the century, the rector (a pious Churchman) became baron. And
then he put his power and wealth to sacerdotal uses. He petitioned
the king, obtained a grant to collegiate Christ Church, erected the
College, endowed it with lands; and here at his death the Warden of the
Collegiate Church had his residence. Of these wardens, the celebrated
Dr. Dee, whose explorations into alchemy and other occult sciences
brought him into trouble with Queen Elizabeth, was one; and Dr. Dee’s
room is still extant—in occupation of the governor.

In 1580, at Crumpsall Hall, Humphrey Chetham was born; and he, a
prosperous dealer in fustians, never marrying, at his own expense
fed and clothed a number of poor boys; and, by his will, not only
bequeathed a large sum of money to be expended in the foundation
and endowment of a hospital for the maintenance, education, and
apprenticing of forty poor boys for ever, but one thousand pounds to be
expended in a library, free to the public—_the first free library in
Britain_.

The estate was vested in feoffees, and with them lay the power alike to
elect boys and officials. From the townships of Manchester, Droylsden,
Crumpsall, Bolton-le-Moors, and Turton, the boys were to be elected
between the ages of six and ten, and were required to be of honest,
industrious parents, and neither illegitimate nor diseased; and
baptismal registers had to be produced. They had to be well maintained,
well trained, and carefully apprenticed at fourteen, a fee of four
pounds (a large sum in Humphrey Chetham’s time) being given with them.
The churchwardens and overseers were to prepare lists of boys, doubling
the number of vacancies, stating their respective claims, which lists
they had to sign.

Easter Monday was the period for election, after which the feoffees
dined together in Dr. Dee’s quaintly-carved room.

Joshua Brooks was as good as his word. He procured a blank form from
the governor, and, Simon being no great scholar, filled it in for him.
He found him the baptismal register without charging the regulation
shilling, got the name of Jabez inserted in the churchwardens’ list,
and such influence as he had with the feoffees he exerted to the
utmost, for the case was one involving doubt and difficulty.

Nor had Simon Clegg been idle. He and his crony Matthew scoured Smedley
and Crumpsall, and more successful than in their quest for Tom Hulme,
discovered the nurse who presided at the birth of Jabez. Her testimony,
so far as it went, was important. He had interested both Mr. and Mrs.
Clough in the election of the foundling, and where the influence of
the gentleman failed, that of the lady prevailed; so that when the
important Easter Monday arrived, two-thirds of the feoffees were fully
acquainted with his peculiar case, and more or less impressed in his
favour.

It was on the 18th of April, bright, sunny, joyous. Compared with its
present proportions, Manchester, then was but as a cameo brooch on
a mantle of green; and that green was already starred with daisies,
buttercups, primroses, and cowslips. By wells and brooks, daffodil and
jonquil hung their heads and breathed out perfume. Bush and tree put
out pale buds and fans of promise. The tit-lark sang, the cuckoo—to use
a village phrase—had “eaten up the mud;” and the town was alive with
holiday-makers from all the country round about.

It was the great College anniversary, not only election day, but
one set apart for friends to visit Blue-coat boys already on the
foundation, and for the curious public to inspect the Chetham Museum.

The main entrance in Millgate (said to be arched with the jaw-bone of
a whale) and the smaller gate on Hunt’s Bank, were both thrown open. A
stream of people of all grades, in festival array, poured in and out,
and College cap and gown seemed to be ubiquitous.

The pale, sad widow or widower, holding an orphan boy by the trembling
hand, the uncle or next of kin to the doubly-orphaned candidate were
there, standing in a long line ranged against the building, and
representing hopes and fears and eventualities little heeded by the
shifting stream of gazers.

For the previous week Mrs. Clowes and her assistants had been working
night and day: her shop was in a stage of siege. Every boy, and every
boy’s friend, seemed to have pocket-money to spend, and to want to
spend it over her counter. Then it was the great wedding-day of the
year, and the churchyard swarmed like a hive; from every one of
the many public-houses round College and Church, music and mirth,
clattering feet, and loud-voiced laughter issued. “The Apple Tree,”
“The Pack Horse,” “The Ring o’ Bells,” “The Blackamoor’s Head,” were
filled to repletion with wedding guests; whilst “The College Inn,” and
the old “Sun Inn,” held a less boisterous quota of the Collegians’
friends and relatives.

On those wet days when outdoor play was impossible, the boys, besides
darning their stockings, occupied their spare hours in carving spoons
and apple-scrapers out of bone, in working balls and pincushions with
coloured worsted in fanciful devices, and a stitch locally known as
“colleging:” and with these, on Easter Monday and at Whitsuntide, they
reaped a harvest of pocket-money, having liberty to offer them for
sale. And when it is remembered that our notable female ancestors, poor
and rich, wore indoors a pincushion and sheathed scissors suspended at
their sides, it is not to be wondered that these found ready purchasers
as memorials of the visit.

But in that College Yard were anxious and expectant as well as buoyant
faces. And there in that line, waiting to be called when their turn
came, stood Jabez between Simon Clegg and Bess, with Matthew and the
nurse on either hand. And ever and anon their eyes went up to the oriel
window which faced the main entrance, for in the room it lighted the
arbiters of the boy’s destiny sat in judgment on some other orphan’s
claim. At length the summons came for “Jabez Clegg.”

With palpitating hearts—for any body of men with irresponsible powers
is an awful tribunal—they passed under the arched portal at the
western angle of the building, following their guide past the doors
of the great kitchen on the right hand, and Dr. Dee’s room and the
boys’ refectory on the left, up the wide stone staircase, with its
massive carved oak balusters, along the gallery, at once library and
museum, where gaping holiday-folk followed a Blue-coat cicerone past
shelves and glass cases, and compartments separated for readers’ quiet
study by carven book-shelf screens, hearing but heeding little of the
parrot-roll the boys checked off: “Here’s Oliver Crummle’s sword;
theer’s a loadstone; theer’s a hairy mon; theer’s the skeleton of a
mon;” and so forth, but following their own guide to the nail-studded
oaken door of the feoffees’ room—that door which might open to hope,
only to close on disappointment.

The feoffees’ room—now the reading-room of the library—deserves more
than a passing notice. It is a large, square, antique chamber, with a
deeply recessed oriel window, opposite the door, containing a table
and seats for readers. There are carved oak buffets of ancient date,
ponderous chairs, and still more ponderous tables, one of which is said
to contain as many pieces as there are days in the year. Dingy-looking
portraits of eminent Lancashire divines stare at you from the walls;
but the left-hand wall contains alone the benevolent presentment of
Humphrey Chetham, the large-hearted clear-headed founder. Its place is
over the wide chimney-piece, which holds an ample grate; and on either
hand it is flanked by the carved effigy of a bird, the one a pelican
feeding its young brood with its own blood, the other a cock, which is
said (and truly) to crow when it smells roast beef.

But we smell the feoffees’ dinner, and must not delay the progress of
Jabez and his friends. A large body of feoffees were present, many in
the uniforms of their special volunteer regiments.

“So this is the little fellow who was picked up asleep in a cradle
during the flood of August, 1799,” observed rather than inquired one of
the gentlemen, who appeared as spokesman.

“Yoi, yo’r honours,” answered Simon, making a sort of bow.

“Who can bear witness to that?”

“Aw con”—“An’ aw con,” responded Simon and Matt Cooper in a breath. “It
wur uz as got him eawt o’ th’ wayter.”

“Anyone else?”

Bessy stepped forward modestly.

“He wur put i’ moi arms on Tanners’ Bridge, an’ aw’ve browt him oop
iver sin’.”

“Have you never sought for his parents?”

“Ay, mony a time. Matt an’ me have spent mony a day i’ seekin’ ’em,”
said Simon promptly, “an’ we could fand no moore than that papper
tells”—referring to a sheet in the questioning feoffee’s hand.

“Then how do you date the boy’s age with such precision?”

The nurse now sidled confidently to the front.

“If it please your honour’s worship, aw wur called to stiff-backed
Nan’s dowter in the last pinch, when hoo wur loike to die, an’ that
little chap wur born afore aw left, an’ that wur o’ th’ fifth o’ May,
seventeen hunderd an’ noinety-noine. Aw know it, fur aw broke mi arm
th’ varry next day.”

“And the mother died.”

“Yea!—afore the week wur eawt.”

“And you think she was lawfully married? Where was her husband?”

“Ay! that’s it! Hoo had a guinea-goold weddin-ring on; an’ owd Nan
said it wur a sad thing th’ lass had ever got wedded, an’ moore o’
the same soort. An’ aw geet eawt o’ her that they’n bin wedded at
Crumpsail, an’ a’ th’ neebors knew as th’ husbant had had a letter to
fatch him to Liverpool, an’ had niver come back. Onybody i’ Smedley
knows that!”

“And you think they were honest, industrious people?”

“Ay, that they were, but rayther stiff i’ th’ joints, yo’ know—seemed
to think theirsel’s too good to talk to folk like; or mebbe we’d ha’
known th’ lad’s neäme an’ o’ belongin’ to him. They owed nobbody nowt,
an’ aw wur paid fur moi job.”

Jabez was called forward and examined, and he came pretty well out of
the fire. They found that he could read a little, knew part of his
catechism, and they saw that he was a well-behaved, intelligent boy,
with truthful dark grey eyes and a reflective brow.

There was a long and animated discussion, during which the boy and his
friends were bidden to retire. It was contended that the marriage of
the boy’s parents was not proven—that his very name was dubious,—and
that the founder’s will was specific on that head.

Then one of Mrs. Clough’s friends rose and grew eloquent. He asked
if they were to interpret the will of the great and benevolent man,
whose portrait looked down upon them, by the spirit or by the letter?
If they themselves did not _feel_ that the boy was eligible, as the
nurse’s testimony went to prove? That this was a case peculiarly marked
out for their charitable construction. And he wound up by inquiring
if they thought Humphrey Chetham would expect his representatives to
be less humane, less charitable, less conscientious in dealing with a
bounty not their own, than that poor struggling, hardworking tanner and
his daughter, who had maintained and cherished the orphan in spite of
cruelly hard times, and still more cruel slander. And then he told, as
an episode, what Sally Cooper had confessed, and how and why Bess had
lost her lover.

This turned the quivering scale. “Jabez Clegg and his friends” were
called in; the verdict which changed the current of his life, was
pronounced—Jabez Clegg was a Blue-coat boy!

Before the night was out, while the flood-gates of all their hearts
were open, Matthew Cooper, though nearly twenty years her senior, asked
Bess to be his wife!



CHAPTER THE NINTH.

THE SNAKE.


However ambitious either Jabez or his kind fosterers had been to see
him a Blue-coat boy, the parting between them was a terrible wrench.
They were to him all the friends or parents he had ever known.

Then there were his playmates in the yard, with liberty to run in and
out at will; and lastly, there were his dumb pets—his kitten (grown to
a cat), his pigeons, and the lame linnet, hopping from perch to finger,
and paying him for his love with the sweetest of songs.

He was not more stunned by the noise and Easter Monday bustle in the
College Yard, or more awed by the imposing presence of Governor Terry
and the feoffees, than by the magnitude, order, and antique grandeur of
the building henceforth to be his home. Nevertheless, wide open as the
gates were for the day, he felt that they would close, and shut him in
among the cold strong walls and strangers, never to see his pets or his
loving friends again until Whitsuntide should bring another holiday.

They older, more experienced, with a better knowledge of all the boy
would gain—all the privation and premature labour he would escape—felt
only how dull their humble home would be without the willing feet and
hands, the smiling face, and the cheerful voice of the sturdy little
fellow who for more than seven years had been as their own child.

He had given his last charge respecting his furry and feathered brood,
exchanged the last clinging embrace under the dark arch, then tore away
in quest of a deserted corner, where he might hide the tears he could
not wholly restrain.

At first the new dress of which he was so proud, the blue stockings
and clasped shoes in place of clogs, the yellow baize petticoat, the
long-skirted blue overcoat or gown, the blue muffin-cap, the white
clerical band at the throat (all neat, and fresh, and unpatched as they
were), felt awkward and uncomfortable—the long petticoat especially
incommoded him. But in a few days this wore off. There were other lads
equally strange and unaccustomed to robes and rules. Fellow-feeling
drew them towards each other, and with the wonderful adaptability of
childhood, they fell into the regular grooves, and were as much at home
as the eldest there in less than a fortnight. And from the Chetham
Gallery in the Old Church he could see and be seen by Simon and Bess on
Sabbath mornings from the free seats in the aisle, and that contented
them.

The training and education of the Chetham College boys was, and is,
conducted on principles best adapted for boys expected to fight their
own way upwards in the world. They were not cumbered with a number
of “ologies” and “isms” (the highest education did not stand on a
par then with the moderate ones of this day); their range of books
and studies was limited. Reading, writing, and arithmetic, sound and
practical information, alone were imparted, so much as was needed to
fit the dullest for an ordinary tradesman, and supply the persevering
and intelligent with a fulcrum and a lever. Nor did their education end
with their lessons in the school-room, nor was it drawn from books and
slates alone.

Their meals were regular, their diet pure and ample, but plain.
They rose at six, began the day with prayer, and retired to rest at
eight. Besides their duties in the school-room, they darned their own
stockings, made their own beds, helped the servants to keep their rooms
clean, and six of the elder boys were set apart to run errands and
carry messages beyond the precincts of the College.

Strength of muscle and limb were gained in the open courtyard in such
games as trap and football; patience and ingenuity had scope in the
bead purses, the carved apple-scoops and marrow-spoons, the worsted
balls and pincushions they made to fill their leisure hours indoors.
There was no idleness. Their very play had its purpose.

Let us set Jabez Clegg under the kind guardianship of Christopher
Terry, the governor, and under the direct supervision of the Reverend
John Gresswell, the schoolmaster, to con his Mavor, and make
pothooks-and-ladles, on a form in the large school-room at the west end
of the College; and to rise, step by step, up the first difficult rungs
of that long ladder of learning which may indeed rest on our common
earth, but which reaches far above the clouds and human ken.

Christmas and Midsummer vacations came and went, so did those
red-letter days of his College life, Easter and Whitsuntide, when he
was free to rush to the old yard, so near at hand, and after hugging
Bess and Simon, whom he astonished with his learning, could assure
himself his dumb family had been well cared for.

And if those passing seasons traced deeper lines on Simon’s brow, gave
more womanly solidity to Bess’s form and character, they brought no
change the foundling could mark. Tom Hulme’s whereabouts was still
undiscovered. Matt Cooper was still a widower. But they and his masters
could note the steady progress _he_ made, and his chivalrous love of
truth and sense of honour shown in many ways in little things. Yet
there was one event a grief to him. His little brown linnet pined for
its young friend, and died before the first Whitsunday came.

He was not much over ten years old when he was proved to possess
courage, as well as truth and honour.

For some time Nancy, the cook, had observed that the cream was skimmed
surreptitiously from the milk-pans in the dairy, that the milk itself
was regularly abstracted, and she was loud in complaint. She could
scarcely find cream enough to set on the governor’s table, and servants
and schoolboys were in turn accused of being the depredators.

Complaints were made to Mr. Terry; servants and boys were alike
interrogated and watched, and punished on suspicion; but nothing could
be proved, and no precautions could save the milk. The lofty and
spacious kitchen had its entrance almost under the porch, and close
beside it was a flight of stone steps leading to the dairy, a cellar
below the kitchen, lit by a small window high up on the side towards
the river, and of course opposite to the steps.

Stone tables occupied the two other sides, on which were ranged a
number of wide shallow pans of good milk. In the extreme corner at
right angles with the door at the head of the stairs was another
entrance, a small open door in a Gothic frame, which opened on another
and shorter flight of steps, cut in the rock and washed by the river,
which sometimes rose and beat against the cellar-door for admission,
beat so oft and importunately as to wear away the oak where it met the
floor.

It was nearly breakfast time. Long rows of wooden bowls and trenchers
were ranged on the white kitchen-table. The oatmeal porridge was ready
to pour out. The cook ran short of milk. Through a window overlooking
the yard she espied Jabez, whip in hand, driving a biped team of
play-horses.

“Jabez, Jabez Clegg!” she called out at the pitch of her voice, “come
hither.”

Down went the reins, and the prancing steeds proceeded without a driver.

“Fetch a can of milk from the cellar, Jabez; an’ look sharp. an’ see as
yo’ dunna drink none!”

“I never do,” said Jabez, not overpleased at the imputation.

“Well, see as yo’ don’t, for some on yo’ do.”

Jabez took the bright tin can, without putting down the whip, and
descended the unguarded cellar-stairs, whistling as he went. He gave a
jump down the last few steps, and to his utter surprise, I cannot say
dismay, saw that he had disturbed a great greenish-brown snake spotted
with black, and having a yellowish ring round its neck. It lay coiled
on the stone table opposite to him, and with its head elevated above
the rim of a milk-pan was taking its morning draught, and in so doing
reckoning without its host.

“Oh, you’re the thief, are you, Mr. Snake? It’s you’ve robbed us of our
milk, and got us boys thrashed for it!” cried Jabez, without a thought
of danger, planting himself between the culprit and the small postern
door, as the snake, gliding from the slab, turned thither for exit,
putting out its forked tongue and hissing at him as it came.

Without thought or consideration—without a cry of alarm to those above,
he struck at the threatening foe with his whip; and as the resentful
snake darted at him, jumped nimbly aside, and struck and struck again;
and as the angry snake writhed and twisted, and again and again darted
its frightful head at him with distended jaws, he whipped and whipped
away as though a top and not a formidable reptile had been before him.

Cook, out of patience, called “Jabez Clegg!” more than once, in
anything but satisfactory tones; and then, patience exhausted, came to
the top of the dairy-stairs. Then she heard Jabez, as if addressing
some one, say: “Oh, you would, would you?” and the commotion having
drawn her so far down the steps that she could peer into the cellar and
see what was going on, she set up a prolonged scream. This was just as
Jabez, shifting the position of his whip, brought the butt-end down on
the head of the snake with all the force of his stout young arm, and
his exhausted foe dropped, literally whipped to death.

The woman’s screams brought not only the governor and the
school-master, but Dr. Stone, the librarian, to the spot. And there
stood Jabez, all his prowess gone, with his back towards them, his head
down on his arms, which rested on the stone slab, sobbing violently for
the very life he had just destroyed.

“Oh, he’s bin bitten—he’s been bitten! The vemonous thing’s bitten the
lad! He’ll die after it!” cried the cook in an ecstacy of terror.

“Stand aside, Nancy,” said Dr. Stone; “that snake is not venomous. If I
mistake not, the brave boy’s heart is wounded, not his skin.”

And, coming down, the kind, discerning librarian lifted the snake with
the one hand, and took hold of Jabez with the other, simply saying to
him—

“Come into the governor’s room, Jabez, and tell us all about it.”

And Jabez, drying his red eyes on the cuff of his coat, was ushered
before the Doctor up the stairs, and into the governor’s room, where
breakfast was laid for the three gentlemen. There he briefly told how
he had found the snake drinking the milk; and having intercepted the
reptile’s retreat, had been obliged, in self-defence, to fight with
it until he had whipped it to death—a consummation as unlooked for as
regreted.

He had not, as at first surmised, escaped unwounded in the contest;
but, as Dr. Stone had said, and the surgeon who dressed the
bites confirmed, the terrible-looking reptile was but the common
ringed-snake, which takes freely to the water; and its bite was
harmless. From the dais in the refectory both snake and whip were
exhibited to the boys after breakfast.

“My lads,” said the governor, “I daresay you will all be glad to know
that the thief who stole the milk has been taken.”

There was a general shout of assent, with here and there a wondering
glance at the vacant seat of Jabez, who, having his wounds washed and
bound up, had not sat down with them, but had a sort of complimentary
breakfast with the servants in the kitchen.

“And I daresay you would like to see the thief, and know how he was
caught.”

There was another general “Ay, ay, sir!”

“Well, here he is,” (and he held the snake aloft); “but I don’t think
any of you will be thrashed on his account again. Jabez Clegg, here”
(and he pulled the reluctant boy forward by the shoulder), “caught the
sly robber drinking the milk, and, with nothing but this whip and a
fearless resolute arm, put a stop to his depredations, and restored the
lost character of the school.”

There was a loud hurrah for Jabez Clegg, who, for the time being was a
hero. Then, the snake being carried to the school-room, the Rev. John
Gresswell improved the occasion by a lesson on snakes in general, and
that one in particular. But when he dissipated the popular belief that
all snakes were venomous, and assured the boys that the bite of this
was innocuous, more than one of the Blue-coated lads thought Jabez was
not such a hero after all.

The heads of the College thought otherwise. The snake, and whip
also, were placed high up against a wall in the College museum,
close beside the “woman’s clog which was split by a thunderbolt, and
hoo wasn’t hurt.” They made part of the catalogue of the Blue-coat
guides—nay, even Jabez may have run the rapid chronicle from the reel
himself; but the pain and shock of having wilfully killed a living
creature neutralised and prevented the harm which might have followed
self-glorification.

The long unknown secret spoiler of the dairy had been such a blemish on
the spotless character of the Chetham Hospital—such a scandal in its
little world—that its capture became of sufficient importance for Dr.
Thomas Stone to communicate to the Reverend Joshua Brookes on his next
visit to the library, Jabez being considered a sort of _protege_ of his.

Before the day was out the parson found his cough troublesome, and of
course went to Mrs. Clowes for horehound-drops.

“Well, what do you think of young Cheat-the-fishes now?” came raspily
from his lips, as he leaned on the counter, evidently prepared for a
gossip, shop-chairs being unheard-of superfluities in those days.

Mrs. Clowes knew perfectly well whom the parson meant by “young
Cheat-the-fishes”; indeed, the boy, on his rare holidays, had been a
customer, as were the boys of College and Grammar School generally.

“Now! Why, what’s th’ lad been doing? Naught wrong, I reckon?”

You see she had faith in the boy’s open countenance.

“Humph! that’s as folk think,” he growled, keeping his own opinion to
himself. “I don’t suppose I need to tell you the hubbub there’s been
over there” (jerking his finger in the direction of the College) “about
the stolen milk? That tale’s old enough.”

Mrs. Clowes nodded her mob-cap in assent.

“Well, that lad Jabez found a snake, four feet long, with its head in
the milk pans the other morning. The sly thief turned spiteful, and the
two had a battle-royal all to themselves in the cellar. The pugnacious
rapscallion had a whip in his hand, and he—lashed the snake to death!”

Mrs. Clowes echoed his last words, and uplifted her hands in amazement.
A snake was a terrible reptile to her.

“Ah! and then blubbered like a cry-a-babby because he had killed it!
What do you think of that, Dame Clowes?”

“Eh! I think he was a brave little chap to face a sarpent, but I think
a fine sight more of his blubbering, as you call it,” said she, taking
a tin canister from a shelf, and putting it on the counter with an
emphatic bounce.

“Ah! I thought I could match the young fool with an old one,” said he
derisively, to hide his own satisfaction, as he took his short legs to
the door.

But Mrs. Clowes called him back, put a large paper parcel in his hand,
and said,

“Here, Jotty, see you give these sweetmeats to your cry-a-babby, and
tell him an old woman says there’s no harm in fighting in self-defence
with any kind of a snake, or for his own good name, or to protect the
helpless; but, if he fights just to show off his own bravery, he’s a
coward. And you tell him from me never to be ashamed of tears he has
shed in repentance for injury he may have done to any living thing. Now
see you tell him, parson; and maybe my preachment may be worth more to
him than my cakes and toffy, or your sermons.” And she nodded her head
till her cap-border flapped like a bird’s wings.

“Ugh! dame, you’ll be for wagging that tongue and mutch of yours in my
pulpit next,” said he, gruffly.

But he delivered the parcel and the “preachment” both faithfully,
and, moreover, turned over his stores of old school books for a Latin
grammar, which he put into the hand of Jabez, with a promise to
instruct the boy in the language, if he would like to learn.

Forthwith Jabez, not caring to seem ungracious, though without any
special liking for the task, had to encroach upon his playhours for a
new study, under-rated by the pupil, over-rated by the teacher.

Could Joshua Brookes have put mathematical instruments within his
reach, or given him pencils and colours, the boy’s eyes would have
sparkled, and study been a pleasure.



CHAPTER THE TENTH.

FIRST ANTAGONISM.


The extensive oblong enclosure known as Ardwick Green, situated at
the south-eastern extremity of the town, on the left-hand side of
the highway to Stockport and London, was in 1809 part of a suburban
village, and from Piccadilly to a blacksmith’s forge a little
beyond Ardwick Bridge, fields and hedges were interspersed with the
newly-erected houses along Bank Top.

The Green, studded here and there with tall poplars and other trees,
was fenced round with quite an army of stumpy wooden posts some six
feet apart, connected by squared iron rods, a barrier against cattle
only. A long, slightly serpentine lake spread its shining waters from
end to end within the soft circlet of green; and this grassy belt
served as a promenade for the fashionable inhabitants. And there must
have been such in that village of Ardwick early in the century, as
now, for the one bell in the tiny turret of St. Thomas’s small plain
red-brick chapel, rang a fashionable congregation into its neat pews,
to listen to the well-toned organ and the devoutly-toned voice of
the perpetual curate, the Reverend R. Tweddle, if we may credit an
historian of the time.

Red-brick church, red-brick houses, hard and cold outside, solid
and roomy and comfortable within as Georgian architecture ever was,
overlooked green and pond, but, luckily, overlooked them from a
reasonable distance, and, moreover, did not elbow each other too
closely, but were individually set in masses of foliage, which
toned down the staring brickwork, Time and smoke have done so more
effectually since.

One of the best, and best-looking, of these houses, near the church,
was the one in which the delicate Mrs. Aspinall had presided for a few
brief years. An iron palisade, enclosing a few shrubs and evergreens,
separated it from the wide roadway, but behind the screen of brick ran
a formal but extensive garden and orchard, well-kept and well stocked,
with a fish-pond as formal in the midst.

Fish-ponds encourage damp, and damp encourages frogs, efts, and their
kin. Here they abounded, and Master Laurence had a sort of instinctive
belief that they were created solely for his sport and amusement. Mr.
Aspinall, his father, immersed in business during the day, and occupied
with friends at home or abroad until late hours at night, saw very
little of his son, who was thus consigned to servants during those
hours not spent, or supposed to be spent, at a preparatory school close
at hand.

The boy was quick and intelligent, had his mother’s amber curls and
azure eyes, her delicate skin and brilliant colour, but the handsome
face had more of the father therein, and was too unformed to brook
description here.

What he might have been with other training is not to be told,
but under the supposition that he inherited his mother’s fragile
constitution, he had been woefully spoiled and pampered. Opposition to
his will was forbidden.

“Bear with him, Kitty, for my sake, and do not thwart him, or you
will break his fine spirit,” had been Mrs. Aspinall’s dying charge to
her old nurse; and as every demonstration of temper was ascribed by
both parents to this same “fine spirit,” what wonder that he grew up
masterful—and worse?

His imperious disposition early ingratiated him into the favour of Bob,
his father’s groom; and this man, thinking no evil, ignorantly sowed
the seeds of cruelty in his young heart.

When the horses were singed, the boy was allowed to be a spectator; if
a whelp had his ears cropped, or the end of its tail bitten off, he
was treated to a sight. If a brood of kittens or a litter of puppies
had to be drowned, Master Laurence was sure to be in at the death. He
was taken to surreptitious cock-fights and rat-hunts; and though, when
too late, Mr. Aspinall turned the man away for inclining his son to
“low pursuits,” nothing was said or done to counteract these lessons
of cruelty! No wonder, then, that to him the sight of pain inflicted
brought pleasure, or that inhumanity went hand-in-hand with self-will.

One incident—a real one—will suffice to show what Laurence Aspinall
was, when Jabez Clegg shed tears over the snake he had killed perforce.

Kitty was in the kitchen alone. The maids were in other parts of the
house. She was sitting close to a blazing fire on account of her
“rheumatics,” and was in a doze. The evening was drawing in. Master
Laurence, coming direct from the garden and the fish-pond, burst open
the kitchen door with a whoop which made Kitty start from her nap
in a fright. Thereupon he set up a loud laugh as the poor old woman
held her hand to her side, and panted for breath. In his hand was his
pocket-handkerchief, tied like a bundle, in which something living
seemed to move and palpitate. They were young frogs in various stages
of development.

“Now, Kitty,” said he, “I’ll show you some rare sport!” and taking one
of the live frogs out of the handkerchief deliberately threw it into
the midst of the glowing fire.

“There, Kitty; did you hear that?” cried he in rapture, as the poor
animal uttered a cry of agony almost human, whilst he danced on the
hearth like a frantic savage round a sacrificial fire.

“Oh, Master Laurence! Master Laurence! don’t do that—don’t be so
cruel!” appealed Kitty, piteously.

But he had drawn another forth, and crying, “Cruel! It’s fun,
Kitty—fun!” tore it limb from limb, and threw it piecemeal into the
blaze.

“There’s another! and there’s another!” he shouted in glee, as the rest
followed in swift succession; and Kitty, shrieking in pain and horror,
ran from the kitchen, bringing the cook and housemaid downstairs with
her cries.

For the first time in his life Mr. Aspinall administered a sound
castigation to his son, regretting that he had not done it earlier.

No more was said of his son’s fine spirit; but, prompt to act, he lost
no time in seeking his admission into the Free Grammar School; and
either to spare him the long daily walk in tenderness for his health
(Ardwick was more than a mile away), or to place him under strict
supervision, boarded Laurence with one of the masters.

Yet he gave that master no clue to his son’s besetting sin; so he was
left free to tantalise and torment every weaker creature within his
orbit, from the schoolmaster’s cat, which he shod with walnut-shells,
to the youngest school-boy, whose books he tore and hid, whose hair he
pulled, whose cap and frills he soused in the mud.

It was a misfortune for himself and others that his pocket money was
more abundant than that of his fellows. Never had the apple-woman
or Mrs. Clowes a more lavish customer, or one who distributed his
purchases more freely. Boys incapable of discriminating between
generosity and profusion dubbed him generous; and that, coupled with
his handsome face and spirited bearing which they mistook for courage,
brought him partisans.

Thus, long before his first year expired, and he was drafted from the
lower school to the room above, where he came under the keen eye and
heavy ferule of Joshua Brookes, he had a body of lads at his beck (many
older than himself), ready for any mischief he might propose.

As may well be supposed, there was a natural antagonism between the
boys of the Grammar School and of Chetham’s Hospital. As at the
confluence of two streams the waters chafe and foam and fret each
other, so it is scarcely possible for two separate communities,
similar, yet differing in their constitutions, to have their gateways
close together at right angles without frequent collision between the
rival bodies.

In the great gate of the College, only open on special occasions, was a
small door or wicket, for ordinary use; and some of the Grammar School
boys, under pretence of shortening their route homeward, finding it
open, would make free to cross the College Yard at a noisy canter,
and let themselves out at the far gate on Hunt’s Bank. It was a clear
trespass. They were frequently admonished by one official or another;
their passage was disputed by the Blue-coat boys; but they persisted in
setting up a right of road, and opposition only gave piquancy to their
bravado.

That which began with individual assumption soon attained the character
of boldly-asserted party aggression, and, as the Blue-coat boys were
as determined to preserve their rights as the others were to invade
them, many and well-contested were the consequent fights and struggles.
And thus the two boys, Jabez Clegg and Laurence Aspinall, brought
together first at the church door and the baptismal font, came into
collision again. But now there was no deferential stepping aside of
the humble foundling to make way for the merchant’s son. They stood
upon neutral ground, strangers to each other, equal in their respective
participation in the benefits of a charitable foundation. Nay, if
anything, Jabez had the higher standpoint. His orphanhood and poverty
had given him a right to his position in Humphrey Chetham’s Hospital;
the very wealth of the gentleman’s son made Laurence little better than
a usurper in Hugh Oldham’s Grammar School.

But it is no part of the novelist’s province to prate of the use or
abuse of charitable institutions, or to set class in opposition against
class. It is only individual character and action as they bear upon one
another with which we have to deal.

On more than one occasion Jabez—since his conquest of the snake, the
recognised champion of his form—had stopped Laurence Aspinall at the
head of a file of boys, and had done his best to bar their passage
through the quadrangle.

Success depended on which school was first released.

If in time, Jabez planted himself by the little wicket with one or
two companions, and, like Leonidas at Thermopylæ, fought bravely
for possession of the pass, and generally contrived to beat off the
intruders. Sometimes the Blue-coat boys made a sortie from the yard,
and, falling upon the others pell-mell, left and bore away marks of the
contest in swollen lips and black eyes.

At length matters were brought to a crisis. Thrice had Laurence and
his clique been repulsed, and the shame of their defeat heightened by
derisive shouts from a tribe of Millgate urchins—“Yer’s th’ Grammar
Skoo’ lads beat by th’ yaller petticoats agen!” “Yaller petticoats fur
iver!” “College boys agen Skoo’! Hoorray!”

Master Laurence might have ground his teeth, and harangued his
followers, without obtaining an additional recruit, or spurring them to
a fresh attempt, but for the taunts of the rabble. But the ignominy of
defeat by petticoated College boys was too much for the blood of the
Grammar School, and youngsters threw themselves into the party quarrel
who had hitherto stood aloof.

Laurence Aspinall was superseded. A big, raw-boned fellow named Travis,
took the lead, and rallied round him not only the lads from the lower
school, but the bulk of the juniors in the upper room. It is only
fair to add that the senior students were in no wise cognisant of the
league, or, being so, carefully shut their eyes and ears.

As the result of this organism, on a set day, towards the close of
October, when the dusk gathered as the school dispersed, the boys who
ran down the wide steps from the upper, and the juveniles who ran
up from the lower room, instead of darting forward with a “Whoop!”
and “Halloo!” through the iron gate on their homeward way, clustered
together within the school-yard, and made way for seniors and masters
to pass out before them.

“Get off home with you, and don’t loiter there!” cried Joshua Brookes,
as he turned in at his own gate, and saw the crowd massing together in
the outer playground.

“Get home yourself, St. Crispin!” shouted Laurence, but not before the
house door had closed upon the irascible master.

All books and slates not purposely left in school were consigned to
three or four of the smallest boys, duly instructed to carry them to
Hunt’s Bank in readiness for their owners.

For a week or more the College boys had been unmolested; not a
forbidden foot had stepped within the wicket. The school-master had
remarked to the governor, in the presence of his pupils, that he
thought Dr. Smith must have prohibited further intrusion.

All the greater was the surprise that dusky October afternoon when a
troop of young ruffians, who had stolen quietly one by one through the
wicket, and kept under the cavernous shade of the deep gateway until
all were within, rushed, with vociferous shouts, from under cover, and
tore across the large yard in the direction of the other gate, daring
anyone to check them.

The College boys, just emerging from their school-room door in the
corner, were, for the moment, taken aback. Then, from the mouth of
Joshua Brookes’s new Latin scholar, rang, clear and distinct, Humphrey
Chetham’s motto—“Quod tuum tene!” (What you have, hold!) and the
Blue-coat boys, with one George Pilkington for their leader, threw
themselves, at that rallying cry, like a great wave, headlong upon the
intruders.

They met the shock as a rock meets a wave, and down went many a gallant
Blue-coat in the dust. Up they were in an instant, face to face with
the besiegers; and then, each singling out an opponent, fought or
wrestled for the mastery with all the courage and animosity, if not the
skill, of practised combatants. Ben Travis and George Pilkington fought
hand to hand, and Jabez—not for the first time—measured his strength
with Laurence.

Heavier, stronger, older by a few months, Jabez might have overmatched
his antagonist; but Laurence had profited by the lessons of Bob the
discarded groom, and every blow was planted skilfully, and told. Then
Bob’s teaching had been none of the most chivalrous, and Laurence took
unfair advantages. He “struck below the belt,” and then tripping Jabez
up, like the coward that he was, kicked him as he lay prostrate, with
the fury of a savage.

Governor, schoolmaster, librarian, and porter had hastened to the
scene; but the assailants nearly doubled the number of the College
boys, and set lawful authority at defiance, hurling at them epithets
such as only schoolboys could devise.

Fortunately, their own Blue-coat boys were amenable to discipline, and,
called off, one by one, retreated to the house, often with pursuers
close at their heels. Then the Grammar School tribe set up a scornful,
triumphant shout, and, with Ben Travis and Laurence Aspinall at their
head, marched out of the College Yard at the Hunt’s Bank gate, exulting
in their victory, even though they left one of their bravest little
antagonists insensible behind them.



CHAPTER THE ELEVENTH.

THE BLUE-COAT BOY.


Those were rough days, when an occasional brawl was supposed essential
to test the mettle of man or boy, so that bruises and black eyes (the
result of an encounter for the honour of the school) were passed over
with much lighter penalties than would be dealt out now-a-days, if
young gentlemen in a public academy descended to blackguardism.

At that time, too, the pupils of the Grammar School assembled at seven
in the morning, and sure punishment awaited the laggard who failed to
present himself for prayers. There were few loiterers on that drear
October morning. Conscience, and perhaps a dread of consequences,
had kept the preceding day’s war-party sufficiently awake even where
sore limbs did not. But, with the exception of a few smart raps with
the ferule, to warm cold fingers, and a general admonition—little
heeded—the early hours of the morning passed quietly enough, and
whispers ran along classes, and from form to form, more congratulatory
than prophetic.

That day went by, and the next. Laurence Aspinall, whose “science”
had saved his head from more damage than a cut lip, was especially
boastful, and, after his own underhand fashion, strove to stir big Ben
Travis to fresh demonstrations.

Then a cloud loomed in the horizon, and darkened every master’s brow.
Another whisper was in circulation that Governor Terry had been seen
to enter the head-master’s ancient black and white old house, and had
been closeted with Dr. Smith for more than an hour. Still the quiet was
unbroken, and, to the wise, the very calm was ominous.

The second of November brought a revelation. On the slightly-raised
floor of the high school, at the Millgate end of the room, sat, not
only Dr. Jeremiah Smith, but the trustees of the school, the Reverend
Joshua Brookes, and the assistant masters; and with them was Governor
Terry, of the Chetham Hospital—all grave and stern. Dr. Smith’s mild
face was unusually severe, and Joshua’s shaggy brows lowered menacingly
over his angry eyes. The senior pupils, chiefly young men preparing for
college, were ranged on either side.

As the last of these awful personages filed in through the two-leaved
door, and took his place, the palpitating hearts of the delinquents
beat audibly, and courage oozed from many a clammy palm.

The boys were summoned from the lower school, and one by one, name by
name, Ben Travis and his followers were called to take their stand
before this formidable tribunal, Laurence Aspinall shrinking edgeways,
as if to screen himself from observation.

There was little need for Dr. Smith to strike his ferule on the table
to command attention, silence was so profound. Even nervous feet forgot
to shuffle. Dr. Smith’s commanding eye swept the trembling rank from
end to end, as he stood with impressive dignity to address them.

After a brief exordium, in which he recounted the several charges
brought against the boys by Governor Terry, he proceeded to say that
the good character of the Manchester Grammar School was imperilled by
lawless conduct such as the boys before him had exhibited the previous
Tuesday, in forcibly entering, and then rioting within, the College
Yard.

One of the youths—most likely Ben Travis—blurted forth that they had a
right to go through the College Yard, and that the College boys stopped
them.

“You mistake,” said the doctor, sternly, “there is no public right
of road through the College Yard. Permission is courteously granted,
but there is no _right_. There is a right for the public to pass to
and from the College and its library on business, within the hours
the gates are open; but even that must be in order and decency. Your
conduct was that of barbarians, not gentlemen.”

At this point of the proceedings Jabez Clegg came into the school-room,
leaning on the arm of George Pilkington. The face of the latter was
bruised and swollen, but Jabez looked deplorable. His long overcoat
was rent in more than one place; he walked with a limp: a white
bandage round his head made his white face whiter still, showing more
distinctly the livid and discoloured patches under the half-closed
eyes. In obedience to a nod from Governor Terry, George Pilkington led
his Blue-coat brother to a seat beside him; but Dr. Smith, drawing the
boy gently to his side, removed the bandage, and showed Jabez to the
school with one deeply-cut eyebrow plastered up.

“What boy among you has been guilty of this outrage?” he asked, sternly.

There was no answer. Some of the little ones took out their
handkerchiefs and began to whimper, fearing condign punishment. The
doctor repeated his question. The boys looked from one to another, but
there was still no reply. Laurence Aspinall edged farther behind his
coadjutor, but he had not the manliness either to confess or regret.
His only fear was detection, or betrayal by a traitor. There was little
fear of that; grammar-school boys have a detestation of a “sneak.”

“Boys, we cannot permit the perpetrator of such an outrage to remain in
your midst; he must be expelled!”

Still no one spoke.

“Do you think you could recognise your assailant—the boy who kicked you
after you were down?” (a murmur ran round the school as the classes
were ordered to defile slowly past Dr. Smith’s desk).

Ben Travis walked with head erect—he would have scorned such a deed—and
Laurence tried to do the same, but his cruel blue eyes could not meet
those of his possible accuser.

There was a struggle going on in the heart of Jabez. It was in his
power to revenge himself for many taunts and sarcasms, and much
previous abuse. He called to mind—for thought is swift—that Shrove
Tuesday when Laurence and his friends caught him as he descended Mrs.
Clowes’s steps with a penny-worth of humbugs in his hand, and snatching
his cap from his head, kicked it about Half Street and the churchyard
as a football. And he seemed to feel again the twitch at his dark
hair and the dreadful pain in his spine and loins, as they bent him
backwards over the coping of the low wall, in order to wrest his sweets
from him, and held him there perforce till stout Mrs. Clowes, armed
with a rolling-pin, came to his rescue, laying about her vigorously,
and kept him in her back parlour until he revived.

“Forgive and forget” are words for the angels, and Jabez was not an
angel, but a boy with quick beating pulses, and a vivid memory. There
was a fight going on in his breast fiercer than either that in Half
Street or that in the College Yard. His sore, stiff limbs and smarting
brow urged him like voices to “pay him off for all,” and revenge began
to have a sweet savour in his mouth.

As he hesitated, watching the slow approach of his foe among his nobler
mates, a harsh voice behind him called out “Jabez, why do you not
answer Dr. Smith?”

The emphasis Joshua Brookes had laid upon the “Jabez” recalled the
boy’s better self. The oft-repeated text flashed across his mind,
“Jabez was an honourable man,” and it shaped his reply.

“Well, sir, it was almost dark, and—and”—he was going to add too dark
to distinguish features, but he recollected that that would be a
falsehood, and lying was no more honourable than malice.

“And you could not recognise him, you mean?” suggested Dr. Smith.

His lip quivered.

“No, sir, I do not mean that. It was very dark, but I think I should
know him again. But, oh! if you please, sir, I should not like to turn
him out of school. You see, we were all fighting together, and we were
all in a passion, and—and—it would be very mean of me to turn him out
of school because he hurt me in a fight” (Jabez did not say a fair
fight).

“Ah!” said Dr. Smith, and, turning to Mr. Terry asked, “Are all the
Chetham lads reared on the same principle?”

Then there was a low-voiced discussion amongst trustees and masters.
Finally, Dr. Smith turned round. His clear eye had detected the culprit
as he winced beneath the gaze of Jabez. But the injured boy had
forgiven, and it was not for him to condemn.

Again he spoke—proclaimed how Jabez had magnanimously declined to
single out his cowardly antagonist; and that the boy, whoever he
might be, had to thank his most honourable victim that he was not
ignominiously expelled. Then quietly but emphatically he pronounced
the decision of the trustees that instant expulsion should follow any
or every repetition of the offence which had called them together—not
only the expulsion of the ringleaders, but of all concerned; and that
even a fair fight between a Grammar School, and a Blue-coat boy should
be visited with suspension pending enquiry, the offender to be expelled
whether from school or College.

“Good lad, Jabez!—good lad!” said Joshua Brookes to him, as George
Pilkington helped his limping steps from the room.

On the broad flat step outside the door they encountered big Ben
Travis, who caught the hand of Jabez in a rough grip, with the
exclamation, “Give us your fist, my young buck! You’ve more pluck in
your finger than that carroty Aspinall in his whole carcase, the mean
cur! an’ look you, my lad, if any of them set on you again, I’ll stand
by and see fair play; or I’ll fight for you if it’s a big chap, or my
name’s not Ben Travis.”

“Who talks of fighting? Haven’t you had enough for one while, you great
raw-boned brute? You’d better keep your ready fists in your pockets
Travis, if you don’t want to be kicked out of school!” After which
gruff reminder Joshua left them, and Jabez went back to the College
with one more friend in the world; but that friend was not Laurence
Aspinall.

He, smarting under a sense of obligation, shrunk away to bite his nails
and vent his spleen in private, conscious that he was shunned by his
classmates, and despised by honest Ben Travis.

As months and seasons sped onwards, they plucked the hairs from Simon
Clegg’s crown, and left a bald patch to tell of care or coming age;
they stole the roundness from Bessy’s figure, the hope from her heart
and eyes. There was less vigour in the beat of her batting-wand, less
elasticity in her step. The periodical holidays and cheering visits
of Jabez were the only pleasant breaks in the monotonous life of the
Cleggs. Beyond the knowledge obtained at the billeting office in King
Street that Tom Hulme had entered the army and gone abroad with his
regiment, no tidings of the self-exiled soldier had come to them. In
the great vortex of war his name had been swallowed up and lost. But
she never said “Ay” to Matthew Cooper, though he waited and waited,
smoking his Sunday pipe by the fireside even till his own Molly was old
enough to have a sweetheart, and to want to leave her father’s crowded
hearth for a quieter one of her own.

Those same months and years added alike to the stature and attainments
of Jabez Clegg and Laurence Aspinall, though in very unequal ratio.
The former, though he had long since astonished Simon with his fluent
rendering of the big Bible, was but a plodding scholar of average
ability, the range of whose studies was limited, notwithstanding Parson
Joshua’s voluntary Latin lessons. The latter had an aptitude for
learning, which made his masters press him forward; and Joshua Brookes
forgave the tricks he played, his translations were so clear and so
correct. Yet, when he wrote stinging couplets or “St. Crispin” on the
Parson’s door, or put cobblers’-wax on the pedagogue’s chair, the
covert reference to his parentage, stung the irascible man more than
the damage to kerseymere, and in his wrath he birched his pupil into
penitence.

His penitence took a peculiar form. A discovery was made that a general
dance in the school-room would shake the pewter platters and crockery
down from dresser and corner cupboard in Joshua’s house adjoining.
Whenever the dominie had growled over bad lessons with least cause,
Laurence was sure to propose a grand hornpipe after school hours. Back
would rush Joshua fast as his short legs would carry him, spluttering
with passion; but the nimbler lads disappeared when they heard the
crash, and, as a rule Joshua’s temper cooled before morning.

Laurence Aspinall’s chief source of amusement from his first entrance
into the Grammar School had been the crippled father of Joshua Brookes.
As the old fellow staggered home drunk, the street-boys would hoot
at him, pull him about, pelt him with mud, and mock at him, till his
impotent fury found vent in a storm of vile and opprobrious language.
Laurence was sure to enjoy a scene of this kind, but he was generally
sly enough to act as prompter, not as principal.

The old man was a great angler; and that he might enjoy unmolested his
favourite pastime, his son had obtained from Colonel Hansom permission
for him to fish in Strangeways Park ponds. Thither he had an empty
hogshead conveyed, and the crippled old cobbler, with a flask of rum
for company, sat within it, often the night through, to catch fish. The
Irk had not then lost its repute for fine eels, and old Brookes—who, by
the way, wore his hair in a pigtail—was likewise wont to plant himself,
with rod and line, on what was the Waterworth Field, on the Irwell side
of Irk Bridge, to catch eels.

Returning one afternoon (Joshua was busied with clerical duties),
Laurence Aspinall and his fellows met the old man staggering along with
his rod over his shoulder and a basket of eels in one hand.

He had called at the “Packhorse” for a dram, and went on, as was his
wont, talking noisily to himself. He had steered round the corner in
safety; but hearing one lively voice call out, “Here’s old Fishtail;”
and another, “Here’s St. Crispin’s Cripple;” and a third, “Make way for
Diogenes,” as he was passing the high-master’s ancient house he gave a
lurch, meaning to reprove them solemnly—the top of his rod caught in
the prominent pillar of the doorway, and was torn from his insecure
grasp. Striving to recover it, he pitched forward, and in falling
dropped his basket in the mud, and set the writhing, long-lived fish at
liberty to swim in the gutter swollen with recent rain.

The lounging lads at once set up a shout; but Laurence, with a timely
recollection that the front of Dr. Smith’s was scarcely the most
convenient place for his purpose, winked at his companions, and, with
an aspect of mock commiseration, politely assisted the old man to rise,
begged the others to capture the eels and carry the basket for him,
and, under pretence of putting the angler’s rod in order, contrived to
fasten the hook to the end of his old-fashioned pigtail.

Then he helped his unsteady steps until they were fairly out of Dr.
Smith’s sight and hearing; but they did not suffer him to reach his
son’s house before they showed their true colours. Loosing his hold,
Laurence snatched at the rod, and, darting with it towards the College
gate, cried out in high glee, “I’ve been fishing; look at the fine snig
(eel) I’ve caught!” And, as he capered about, he dragged the poor old
cripple hither and thither backwards by his pigtail, to which hook and
line were attached.

Old Brookes screamed in impotent rage and pain; the boys laughed and
shouted the louder. The one with his basket set it on his head, and
paraded about, crying, “Who’ll buy my snigs? Fine fresh snigs!” with
the nasal drawl of a genuine fish-seller.

Once or twice the old man fell down, uttering awful threats and
imprecations; but Laurence only laughed the more, and jerked him up
again with a smart twitch of the line, which was a strong one; and the
other three or four young ruffians put up their shoulders, and limped
about singing—

  “The fishes drink water,
    Old Crispin drinks gin;
  But the fishes come out
    When the hook he throws in.
                Tol de rol.”

It may be wondered that none of the neighbours interfered. But it must
be remembered that they were accustomed, not only to the uproar of a
boyish multitude, but to the drunken ravings of Old Brookes, who was an
intolerable nuisance. Public traffic then was not as now, and policemen
were unborn.

The satisfaction of Laurence was at its height. He kept hold of the
line; one of his comrades, named Barret, lashed the persecuted man
with an eel for a whip, and their mirth was boisterous, when Jabez
(now thirteen) came quietly through the wicket on an errand from the
governor.

He took in the scene at a glance. He could not stand by and see
injustice done. His dark eyes flashed with indignation as he dashed
forward, pulling the line from the hand of Laurence, and tried to
disentangle the cruel hook from the unfortunate pigtail.

“Who asked you to interfere, you petticoated jackanapes?” bawled
Laurence, darting forward, his face as red as his hair, at the same
time dealing Jabez a heavy blow on the chest.

“My duty!” answered Jabez, stoutly, taking no notice of the sneer at
himself. “How could you gentlemen torment a poor old cripple like that?”

“He’s a drunken old sot!” cried Barret.

“It’s downright cruel!” continued Jabez, as he stood between the
jabbering drunkard and his tormentors.

“We’re no more cruel than he is! He’s been catching fishes all day.
We’ve only given him a taste of his own hook; and we’ll have none of
your meddling!” and out went the pugilistic arm of Laurence straight
from the shoulder to deal another blow, when it was caught from behind
by the bony hand of Ben Travis, bigger and stronger by two year’s
growth, whilst the other hand gripped his jacket collar.

“So you’re at your cowardly tricks again, Aspinall!” exclaimed he,
holding the other as if in a vice. “But if I see you lay another finger
on that lad, I’ll report you to Dr. Smith.”

“Oh! you’d turn sneak, would you?” sneered Laurence, striving to twist
himself loose, and disordering his broad white frill in the endeavour.

“I’d think I did the Grammar School a service to turn either you or
Barret out of it, I would! Think of you setting on that noble chap who
wouldn’t turn tell-tale, though he’ll carry the mark of your boot to
his grave with him!”

Pointing with outstretched hand to Jabez, who by this time was handing
Old Brookes over to the grumbling care of Tabitha, and whose right
eyebrow yet showed a red seam, Travis relaxed his hold of Laurence,
and he shook himself free.

Some warm altercation followed. There was a scowl of sullen defiance
on Aspinall’s face, and an evil glance towards Jabez, which Travis
observing, with a significant nod he linked his arm in that of the
Blue-coat boy, and never left him till he reached his destination, Mr.
Hyde’s ancient and picturesque tea-shop in Market-street Lane.



CHAPTER THE TWELFTH.

THE GENTLEMAN.


That afternoon a gentleman who had witnessed part of the foregoing
scene from the breeches-maker’s window, whither he had gone for a pair
of buckskin riding-gloves—struck by the dauntless manner of Jabez,
related what he had seen to his wife, Mrs. Ashton, the stately sister
of Mrs. Chadwick; whilst Augusta, their eight-year old daughter, sat on
a footstool by her side, hemming a bandana handkerchief for her father,
an inveterate snuff-taker—occasionally putting in a word, as only
spoiled daughters did in those days.

“Mamma, I daresay that’s the little boy Cousin Ellen told me about.”

“Pooh, pooh! Augusta,” said Mr. Ashton, tapping the lid of his
snuff-box, and then, from force of habit, handing it to his wife, the
wave of whose hand put it back—“pooh, pooh! child. Do you think there’s
only one Blue-coat boy in the town? Besides, he was not such a little
boy. I know I thought something of myself when I was his size,” said
Mr. Ashton, dusting the snuff from his ruffles as he spoke.

“But he would be a little boy when Ellen knew him first. She says it
was before I was born.”

“He could not be a Blue-coat boy then, my dear,” observed Mrs. Ashton;
“he was too young.”

“But Ellen showed him to me when we went to the College at Easter;
and she says he has killed a snake—a real live snake, papa. And Aunt
Chadwick bought Ellen such a pretty pincushion he had worked, and, oh!
such a handsome bead purse!”

Mr. Ashton smiled at his daughter’s enthusiasm.

“Ah! I think I have heard of him before; he is a sort of _protege_ of
Parson Brookes.”

“He is a very honest boy,” appended Mrs. Ashton, as she examined
Augusta’s hemming by the light of the nearest wax candle. “Ellen lost
Prince William’s shilling that same day. You know she always wears it
dangling from her neck, absurd as it is for a great girl of fifteen.”

“Well?” said Augusta, looking up inquiringly.

“Well, my dear, the very next afternoon the boy Jabez Clegg knocked at
the door in Oldham Street with the shilling, which he said he had found
in sweeping the library, and remembered seeing it on Miss Chadwick’s
neck. Many a boy, at Easter, would have spent it in cakes or toffy.”

“I suppose, to use one of your favourite maxims, he must have thought
‘honesty the best policy,’” remarked her husband.

“Yes; and ‘duty its own reward’—for he refused the half-crown that
Sarah offered him.”

Mr. Ashton took another pinch of snuff, with grave consideration, then
put the box, after some deliberation, into his deep waistcoat pocket,
and again flapped the snuff off ruffles and neck-cloth ends.

“Wouldn’t take the money, you say?”

“Would not take it,” his wife repeated, folding up the finished
handkerchief.

After a pause, Mr. Ashton said, with his head on one side,—

“I think I shall look after that younker. What is he like?”

“Oh, that I cannot tell; I was not with them. But I think Sarah said he
had got an ugly scar on one of his eyebrows.”

Mr. Ashton brought down his hand with a clap on that of Augusta,
resting on his knee.

“Then, my little Lancashire witch, the poor cripple’s champion and
Ellen’s hero of romance _will_ be one and the same. I must certainly
look after that lad.”

But even as Mr. Ashton came to that conclusion Jabez was in mortal
peril, and his romance and theirs threatened to end at the beginning.

Laurence Aspinall was not of a temper to brook interference with
his sport, or to be treated as the inferior of a “common charity
boy.” Since the hour that Jabez had declined to single him out for
punishment, he had resented the sense of his own inferiority which
conscience pressed upon him. In refusing to tender either thanks or
apology at Ben Travis’s instigation, he lost caste in the school, and
the knowledge rankled in his breast. Against the debt of gratitude
he owed to Jabez he laid up a fund of envy and spite, out of which he
meant to pay him in full the first opportunity. That opportunity had
arrived. There were some birds of his own feather, who stuck by him, of
whom Ned Barret was one.

Old Brookes had been too drunk to swear positively who had molested
him, or to obtain credence if he did; but the inopportune arrival of
Jabez and Ben Travis had made detection certain, and nothing was Joshua
Brookes so sure to punish with severity as an attack on the father who
made his life a burden to him.

On the principle that they might “as well be hanged for a sheep as
a lamb,” the noble five resolved to waylay the Blue-coat boy on his
return, and either extract from him a promise of secrecy, or give him a
sound drubbing for his pains.

They were too like-minded for long conference. To put the old
breeches-maker off the scent, all dispersed but one, Kit Townley, who
pulled a top from his pocket and whipped away at it with as much energy
as ever did his Anglo-Saxon ancestors. Perhaps he thought he had a
meddlesome College boy under his lash.

After a time, the others sauntered back one by one, from contrary
directions; there was more top-whipping, and some of the whips and tops
were new. Then when they saw they were unobserved, they adjourned to
the school-yard, and laying a cap on the broad step, two or three of
them sat down to a game at cob-nut, so that if any unlikely straggler
did come that way there might be an apparent reason for their presence.

It was late in the year. The breeches-maker was seated at his early
tea, and so were most of his neighbours. The twilight was coming gently
down, and the boys, tired of waiting, were about to go home to their
own—Aspinall expecting a reprimand for being late. Jabez, who had been
delayed at the office of Harrop the printer in the Market Place, came
briskly up with a parcel in his hand just as they reached the gate.
One of them snatched the parcel from him and ran with it into the
school-yard. As a natural consequence Jabez followed to regain his
property.

That was just what they wanted. The light iron gate was pushed-to, and
there they were, shut in and screened from observation, between the
deserted Grammar School on the one hand, and the College School-room
on the other, which, with the dormitory above, was equally sure to be
empty at that hour. They were free to torment him as they pleased.
The parcel was tossed from hand to hand with subdued glee, and their
whip-lashes and strung cob-nuts cut at his arms and shoulders, as Jabez
sprang forward and darted hither and thither, perplexed and baffled
in his efforts to recover it. Once or twice it went down on the damp
ground, and gained in grime what it lost in shape.

“Oh! dear, dear! do give me my parcel!” cried Jabez, in perplexity.
“Our governor will think I’ve been loitering.”

“And so you have, you canting yellow-skirt. You stopped to put your
long finger in our pie!” was the swift retort of Laurence, as he
interposed his body between Jabez and the boy who held his lost charge.

“Eh! and you went off with Travis, wasting your time!” added Kit
Townley.

“I never waste my time on an errand.”

“Oh! Miss Nancy never wastes time on an errand.” mimicked Ned Barret;
and still they kept the boy on the run until he leaned, out of breath,
against the wall which served as a parapet above the river.

Then, the disputed prize being kept by Kit Townley at a respectable
distance, Laurence advanced to parley with him, offering to restore
his parcel and let him go if he would take a solemn oath, which
he dictated, to maintain silence on all which had transpired that
afternoon.

“I cannot; I must account for my time,” firmly answered Jabez, “and I
must account for that dirty parcel.”

“Tell them you tumbled down and hurt yourself,” suggested Aspinall.

“I cannot; it would be untrue!”

At this the lads set up a loud guffaw, as if truth were somewhat out of
fashion; but the one who stood nearest the gate with the parcel looked
restless, as if beginning to be tired of the whole business. Just then
Laurence went blustering up to the College boy, and, thrusting his face
forward, said—

“If you don’t go down on your marrow-bones this instant, and swear to
tell no tales, we’ll pitch you over the wall.”

“You dare not!” boldly retorted Jabez, with a set face.

“Oh! daren’t we? We’ll see that! Lend a hand.”

“No, you dare not!” repeated he, planting himself firmly against the
wall.

There was a sudden rush; they closed round him, more in bravado than
with any intent to do him bodily harm: sliding him up against the
smooth-worn brick-work, they hoisted him above their shoulders, meaning
to hold him there. But in their eagerness they had thrust him too far,
and crowding on each other, one, being jostled, let go, and Jabez
toppled over the precipice!

There was a scream; a splash in the water. Tabitha, taking clothes from
a line in the back-yard, cried out, “What is that?” Parson Brookes’s
startled pigeons flew from their dove-cote, and wheeling round in
widening circles cooed affrightedly.

The white-faced boys stood aghast. Unless his fall had been seen from
the opposite croft, their victim would be drowned before any aid they
could bring was available; a wide circuit must be taken before a
bridge could be reached! Buildings blocked up that side of the river.
They looked at each other and spoke in whispers; then, with an animal
instinct of self-preservation, sneaked off in silence and terror,
leaving him to his fate.

Not all. Kit Townley, who held the parcel, had drawn near to
remonstrate. With a shriek he threw down the paper, and, hardly
conscious what he did, tore wildly through the gates, and across the
College Yard, to startle the first he met with the alarm that a College
boy was drowning in the Irk!



CHAPTER THE THIRTEENTH.

SIMON’S PUPIL.


It was fortunate for Jabez that the late rains had raised the level
of the Irk: otherwise, that being the shallowest part of the stream,
there would not have been sufficient depth of water to buoy him up when
he was pitched over the wall; and had his head come in contact with
rock or stone, falling from such an elevation, his history would have
closed with the last chapter. It was doubly fortunate that sensible
Simon had taught him that without which no boy’s education—nor, indeed,
any girl’s either—is complete, and that Jabez, from very love of the
water, had kept himself in practice whenever a holiday had given him
opportunity.

He had gone over the wall backwards, falling into the stream head
downwards, but not altogether unprepared; and to him head first, heels
first, forward or backward, were all as one. Like a cork he rose, and
struck out across the river. The slimy stone embankment seemed to slip
from his touch; there was no hold for his hand; it was too steep and
smooth to climb; and he felt that the river, swift in its fulness, was
bent on bearing him to the Irwell, so dangerously near.

He raised his voice for “help.” Tabitha, listening, answered with a
scream and a shout, and, bolting into the house, disturbed the Parson
and his besotted father at their tea by the outcry she made, as she
rushed on into the street with the alarm of “a lad dreawndin,” just as
the conscious culprits slunk past to their own quarters.

Doctor Stone, the first recipient of terrified Kit Townley’s incoherent
intelligence, was simultaneously racing at full speed, with a troop of
College boys at his heels, down towards Hunt’s Bank and the outlet of
the Irk, with the swift consciousness that the only hope of saving life
was in the chance of reaching the confluence of the rivers first. He
thought the dusk never came down so rapidly. A lamplighter, with ladder
and flaring long-spouted oil-can light, was going his rounds.

“Turn back, my man, with ladder and light,” he called out, without
stopping; and the man, seeing something unusual was astir or amiss,
followed at a canter without question.

At Irk Bridge the librarian took the light from the man, and swung it
to cast its reflection over the Irwell; but nothing was to be seen or
heard but the full river, and the wash of its waters. To cross the
bridge, in fear that the boy was beyond help, was but the work of a
moment.

Slower, along the wooden railing of the Irk embankment, he held the
lamp low. There was neither eddy or bubble on the water to tell where a
drowning mortal had gone down.

“Jabez! Jabez Clegg!” he cried, but there was no response. Again and
again he raised his voice—“Jabez! Jabez!” The only answer was from an
advancing crowd, with Parson Brookes and Tabitha in their midst, who
had rushed to the rescue with ropes and poles down the bridge at Mill
Brow.

“I fear it’s no use, Parson Brookes,” said the librarian sadly; “the
river’s high, and poor Jabez may have been drifting past Stannyhurst
before we were out of the College Yard.”

“Jabez!” exclaimed Joshua aghast, “you cannot mean that Jabez Clegg is
the boy drowned!” and he staggered as if some one had struck him.

“Indeed, Parson, if this boy speaks truth, I fear it is so,” and he
turned to question his informant; but Kit Townley, seeing his impulsive
schoolmaster approach, had edged away, and was gone.

Gruff Joshua drew the back of his hand across his shaggy brows.

“And so the greedy river has swallowed the bright lad at last! He was a
boy of promise, Dr. Stone, and his untimely fate is a—a—trouble to me;”
and the rough Parson’s harsh voice shook with emotion. “I baptised him,
Doctor, and I hoped to see him grow up a credit to us all.”

They, and the dispersing crowd, seeing the uselessness of longer stay,
were moving on towards Mill Brow as he spoke.

“Who’s this?” he cried as they neared the bridge, and a working woman,
her hair flying loose from the kerchief on her head, rushed across it
with an impetus gained in the steep descent.

It was Bess, with Simon at her heels, close as his stiff rheumatic
limbs would carry him. She wrung her hands bitterly.

“Is it true?” she cried in anguish, “is it true? Oh, Parson Brucks, is
it true that ar Jabez is dreawnded?”

There was the same choking in his voice as he answered—

“I’m afraid so, Bess.”

Simon’s voice now broke in.

“But are yo’ sartain, Parson? Ar Jabez couldn swim loike a duck. An’
how cam he i’ th’ wayther, aw shouldn loike to know?”

“Swim, did you say?” interrogated Dr. Stone. “Then there may be hope
yet. If the eddies would not let him land at Waterworth Field, he might
swim ashore at Stannyhurst.”

“Pray God it be so!” ejaculated Bess, from a full heart.

Dr. Stone, hurrying forward, continued:

“Follow me to the College for lanterns to renew the search.” And no
second invitation was needed.

And where was Jabez? He heard Tabitha’s cry, but it came from the wrong
side, and he had sense to know was useless to save, unless he could
withstand the current till help came round. But the strong stream was
bearing him on against his will. Suddenly he bethought him of the dairy
steps, and, with a stroke of his left arm, swerved towards the hoary
building looming through the twilight. One moment later, and the steps
had been passed, not to be recovered, for the current was stronger than
he; but that providentially abrupt turn, and a few skilful strokes,
brought him upon them. Literally upon them, for the water was within
a step or two of the door. With difficulty he obtained a footing,
they were so slippery. Once above the water, he hammered at the door
and called, but his voice was weakened by exertion and the shivering
consequent on cold, wet, clinging garments. Again and again he knocked
and called, but everyone was out in the quadrangle, or away in search
of him, and no one heard.

He had been excited and over-heated in his prolonged struggle with his
persecutors, and, short as was the distance he swam, his efforts to
stem the overmastering current had exhausted him. Cold and exposure did
the rest. He sank on the topmost step with his head against the door,
in the angle it formed with the wall, his feet in the water; and there
he lay, too faint to respond when Dr. Stone’s voice fell on his ear as
on that of a dreamer. His dark robe, his position, the jutting wall—all
contributed to hide him from the poor rays of the one oil-lamp which
was flashed along the stream to find him.

And there he might have lain and died had not Nancy, for lack of a
boy at hand to wait on her, gone down to the cellar for milk for the
boys’ supper. As she filled the wooden piggin she had taken with her,
she fancied she heard a moan, and listening breathless, heard another,
and another, from the outside of a door which was (to her thought)
inaccessible to mortal.

Down went the piggin and the milk (she was not a strong-minded woman,
and it was a superstitious age), up the steps she stumbled in her
fright, crying—

“Oh! theer’s a boggart in th’ dairy!—theer’s a boggart!”

Dr. Stone and his companions came in at the porch as she fled upwards
towards the kitchen. The firelight gleaming on her frightened face
caught his attention. Half fainting, she repeated her exclamation,
adding—

“It moaned like summat wick.”

“Moaned, did you say? Goodness! If it should be——”

Not stopping to finish his sentence, he snatched a light from the
table, and was unbolting the cellar-door before the governor or anyone
else could comprehend his movements. They understood well enough when
he came back into their midst, burdened with the limp, dripping form of
Jabez, white and insensible, and depositing him on a settle near the
kitchen fire, cried out for restoratives.

That was a terrible next morning, when the young miscreants, as much
afraid to play truant as to face possibilities at school, sneaked to
their places and set to their studies with industry out of the common.
Laurence Aspinall, boarding with a master, had no choice in the matter.

How Jabez got into the water was not clear; he was too ill to be
questioned over-night, and was in a fever and delirious by noon the
next day. But he had never been known to loiter or go astray when sent
on an errand. Kit Townley’s impulsive cry of alarm had suggested foul
play, and neither Joshua Brookes nor Governor Terry had let the night
pass without an effort to dive into the truth.

Dr. Stone had conjectured Kit Townley to be a Grammar School boy,
although personally unknown to him; and that conjecture recalled to
Joshua his father’s ravings of ill-usage, which he had at the time
regarded as drunken maudling. It was ascertained that the boy had been
at Harrop’s. Inquiry, and the search for the missing parcel, resulted
in the discovery of a trampled play-ground, broken whiplashes, a string
of cob-nuts, and, neatly marked in red cotton with his initials, one of
Laurence Aspinall’s cambric ruffles, torn and muddy.

There was a conference with Dr. Jeremiah Smith before the night was
out. A messenger was sent to Mr. Aspinall in Cannon Street the next
morning, as well as to the trustees of the school.

The following day saw such another conclave as before in the Grammar
School. Dr. Stone, who was present, picked out the boy who had given
the alarm; and Kit Townley, trembling for himself, told all he knew.
Ben Travis, at the outset, in his indignation, proffered his evidence,
which went to prove malice prepense.

The boys, asked what they had to say for themselves, simply answered
they had done it for “sport”—that they did not mean to throw him over,
but only to frighten him to “hold his tongue,” and excused their
running home on the plea that they were “afraid.” Laurence Aspinall
boldly said that he knew the boy could swim, and did not think a
ducking would do him much harm, and offered to jump off the wall and
swim down the river himself. Liar as well as boaster, he received a
summary check from Dr. Smith, apart from the reprimand administered to
him as the proven ring-leader.

In these days such a case of outrage would have been brought before
a magistrate, and the offenders’ names sent flying through newspaper
paragraphs. Then, whether to spare the parental feelings of such
influential men as Mr. Aspinall, or to save from tarnish the fair fame
of the school, or to avert the further debasement of the boys from
prison contact, and give them a chance to amend, the school tribunal
was allowed to be all-sufficient.

Ignominious expulsion was dealt out not only to Laurence Aspinall and
to Ned Barret, but to each of the conspirators—Kit Townley, honourably
acquitted by them of participation in the final attack, alone escaping
with a caution, a severe reprimand, and as severe a flogging; which
special immunity he had purchased by running white-faced to give the
alarm. It is possible he scarcely estimated the value of that immunity
at the time.

But the loud hurrahs which hailed this sentence testified how the
Grammar School boys valued their honour as a school, and how proud they
were to be purged of such offenders.

Mr. Aspinall, too much agitated to witness his son’s public disgrace,
waited the result of the inquiry in the head-master’s house; and if
ever Laurence Aspinall felt ashamed of his own misconduct, it was
when his father refused to take his unworthy hand as they left the
door-step, and he heard Dr. Smith’s closing words of reproof mingled
with compassion for the father, in whose eyes were signs of tears a bad
son had drawn.

Long before Jabez was able to resume his own place in the school,
Laurence Aspinall had been removed to an expensive boarding-school at
Everton, near Liverpool; and this time the merchant laid stress on his
tendency “for vicious and low pursuits,” and begged that no efforts or
expense might be spared to make him a gentleman in all respects. Still
he tampered with the truth, lest the school-master (he would be called
a Principal in these factitious days) should refuse to admit a pupil
with such antecedents, and decline the task of eradicating cruelty and
ingratitude.

Here Laurence certainly mixed only with boys of his own class, from
whom money could buy neither flattery nor favour, and where only his
own merits could procure either. And here we must leave him, to pursue
the fortunes of the boy whose life he had wantonly imperilled.

Had anything been wanting to bespeak Joshua Brookes’s good-will, Jabez
supplied it when he interfered to protect the elder Brookes from the
derisive indignities of others. Not only to Mrs. Clowes did he rehearse
in his own peculiar manner the story, as told by Ben Travis, with its
supplementary drama which had so nearly proved a tragedy, but at such
tables as he frequented—Mr. Chadwick’s among the rest.

Mr. Ashton, who was present, spoke of being himself a witness to the
former scene, and, whilst presenting his inevitable snuff-box to the
eccentric chaplain, repeated his previous observation—“I must look
after that boy—I must indeed.”

If the parson had been commonly observant he would have noticed a
pair of black eyes fixed in eager attention on his, as he, who rarely
uttered a commendation, held forth in praise of his father’s champion,
the Blue-coat boy; the said black eyes being matched by the black hair,
and somewhat dark skin, of the plain but intelligent daughter of his
host.

But girls of fifteen were then counted in the category of children, and
were taught only to “speak when spoken to,” so Ellen Chadwick passed
no other commentary on the actions of Jabez than was expressed by her
glowing cheeks and eloquent eyes.



CHAPTER THE FOURTEENTH.

JABEZ GOES INTO THE WORLD.


A sharp illness followed the precipitation of Jabez into the Irk; but
he was young, had a strong constitution, and, to the satisfaction of
all in the College, and many out of it, was able to take his place in
the refectory, and clear the beef or the potato-pie from his wooden
trencher, before the month expired. Prior to this, he was allowed an
afternoon, ere he was well enough to resume fully his routine duties,
to show himself to the kind friends who had exhibited most anxiety for
his recovery.

Mrs. Clowes was one of these. Jam, jelly, and cakes, never concocted
within the area of the College, had found their way to his bedside.
Grateful for kindness from so unlikely a quarter, Jabez paid his first
visit to the shop in Half Street, to thank the queer old lady. But not
one word of thanks would she hear.

“Eh, lad, say naught about it; you did your duty, and I did mine, and
so were quits;” and shook her open hand a few inches in advance of her
face, as if she were shaking a disclaimer out of it. “And where are you
taking your white face to now?” she asked quickly, the better to turn
the tide of his stammering thanks.

“To Aunt Bess’s.”

“Why, lad, Bess Clegg’ll have naught to give thee fit for sick folk to
eat. It’s much to me if she’ll have either a potato or a drop of milk.
If she’s a bit of jannock, or oat-cake, it’s as much as the bargain.
War may be glorious for kings and generals, but it’s awful for poor
folk; Mesters can’t sell their goods, and can’t pay wages bout money;
and I’ve heard that, since th’ potato riots in Shudehill last Spring,
the folk have been so clemmed that some on them couldna be known by
their friends who hadna seen them for awhile; they were naught but skin
and bone, poor things!”

Whilst indulging in this tirade against war and its concomitants, to
distract his attention, she bustled about, often with her back to him;
then dived into her parlour, and returned with a basket, which she was
handing to him, with a charge to “take that to Bess, and be sure bring
the basket back safe,” when she found that Joshua Brookes was standing
behind Jabez, amongst waiting customers, with a sharp eye on her
proceedings.

“I say, young Cheat-the-fishes, what have you got to say for yourself?
A nice young ragamuffin you are, to go a-bathing without leave,
spoiling your clothes, and giving yourself cold! I hope they gave you
plenty of physic, to teach you better,” said Joshua roughly, taking the
boy by the shoulder, and turning him sharply round to confront him.

“Yes, sir—they gave me plenty of physic,” said Jabez, doffing his
cap respectfully. “But I did not go bathing; I got into the water by
accident.”

“By what? Do you call that an accident?” growled the parson, to get at
the boy’s meaning.

“An accident done a-purpose,” chimed in Mrs. Clowes, whilst her scales
jingled, and she and her helper weighed out her commodities for the
people at the counter.

“Yes, sir,” answered Jabez, composedly; “it must have been an accident.
I don’t think they really could mean to push me over. I think they only
meant to frighten me——”

“Well?” queried Joshua, seeing that he hesitated.

“I think one of them slipped, and let go, and then I slipped too, sir,”
he replied, modestly.

“Slipped, indeed! You’d very nearly slipped into the next world!”
exclaimed the parson. “I suppose you’ll say next that my poor old
father was dragged about by the young wretches by accident too?”

The colour of Jabez rose.

“No, sir; that was very cruel.”

“Oh, you do call some things by their right names (here, let that woman
pass out). I suppose you’re glad enough the rascals have got their
deserts?”

A dubious change came over the boy’s face. He did not answer at once;
he hardly knew his own feelings on the subject. The question was
repeated.

“Well, sir, I’m glad they won’t be there to torment me any more, but it
must be a very dreadful thing for a young gentleman to be turned out of
school in disgrace, and I don’t think I _ought_ to be glad of that. I
should never get over it, if it was me.”

“Here, take your basket, and be off with you!” said Joshua Brookes,
hurrying him out of the shop, that he might stay and rate the old woman
for “spoiling young Cheat-the-fishes,” conscious all the while that he
had been doing his best to get the lad a good home in the future.

Bess and Simon received him with open arms, glad not only to see him
well again, but thankful he had been placed where he was secure from
the bitter want which pinched both their stomachs and their faces. To
them Mrs. Clowes’ basket brought what they had not seen for months—a
white loaf and a good lump of cold meat, to say nothing of a tiny paper
of tea, and some sugar—those luxuries of the rich—and half-a-crown in
another paper.

How those half-famishing hard-workers, whose home had been denuded of
their goods to keep life within them, thanked cross old Mrs. Clowes!
She had made it a festival to them indeed, and all for the sake of the
boy they had kept.

There were no pigeons—these had been sold long ago to pay for
provisions, though much against Simon’s will. The cat was there, lean
and gaunt; it managed to pick up a subsistence somehow; and the big
Bible was there—Simon had not parted with that, though the bright
bureau was gone, ay, and the cradle which had been an ark to the orphan.

The change touched Jabez sorely. Snugly housed and fed within the
College, rumours of outer poverty made no lasting impression; but
here he saw its grim reality, and sitting down on the three-legged
stool, he covered his face with his hands to hide the tears called up
by that insight into their impoverished condition. Yet had they some
alleviation of their pain. Poverty appeared to have lost half its
bitterness for Bess. She had had a letter from her long-mourned Tom,
and the joyful news served to brighten up the visit for Jabez and all.

It was a long and deeply repentant letter, of course written by a
comrade. It was dated from Badajoz, and had been a weary while in
reaching them. He had been wounded in that brilliant assault, and while
in hospital had fallen in with another Lancashire lad, also wounded—no
other than the boy who had lent a hand to rescue the infant Jabez, and
who had been driven to enlist by the sharp pangs of hunger, only two
years before. From this young fellow, Private John Smith (Tom was
himself a Corporal), he had learned how grievously his Bess had been
slandered; but with that knowledge had come the conviction that he had
condemned her hastily and harshly on mere hearsay, and the letter was
incoherent in its remorseful contrition. In his soldier-life he had
been tossed hither and thither—known pain, and thirst, and famine; and
said he owed it all to his own jealous credulity, when he ought to
have known so much better. He told of marchings and counter-marchings,
battles and bloodshed; but of never one wound to himself, though
he had not “cared a cast of the shuttle” for his life until that
bayonet-thrust which had laid him side by side with John Smith, who had
lost an eye. But he wound up with a prayer for Bess and himself, and a
hope for their reunion, if the war would ever end. He “was sick of it.”

All that letter was to Bess and Simon, Jabez could not comprehend; but
he took Mrs. Clowes her empty basket, and went back to the College
satisfied that one ray of sunshine lit up the poor home of his friends.

And Matthew Cooper’s last chance was gone.

       *       *       *       *       *

Mr. Ashton was what is known in trade as a small-ware manufacturer—that
is, he was a weaver of tapes, inkles, filletings; silk, cotton, and
worsted laces (for furniture); carpet bindings, brace-webs, and
fringes. Moreover, he manufactured braces and umbrellas, for which
latter his brother-in-law supplied the ginghams. He had at work, both
in Manchester and at Whaley-Bridge, a number of swivel-engines, the
design of which came from those unrivalled tape-weavers, the Dutch, and
which would weave twenty-four lengths of tape or bed-lace at one time.
Otherwise, the bulk of his workpeople—winders, warpers, brace, fringe,
and umbrella-makers—carried away materials to their own homes, and
brought back their work in a finished state.

Mr. Chadwick, as we have mentioned, was a manufacturer of ginghams—this
included checks and fustians; but much of his trade being foreign, the
war had locked up his resources, and his anxieties preyed on his health.

Mr. Ashton had suffered less in this particular, not having disdained
to take his sensible wife’s advice—“Never put too many eggs in one
basket.” Mrs. Ashton, be it said, had a leaning towards “proverbial
philosophy” more homely and terse than Tupper’s, which, vulgar as
it is accounted now, was in esteem when our century was young; and,
had it been otherwise, would have been equally impressive from her
deliberately modulated utterance. This same lady had, moreover, an
aptitude for business. Mr. Ashton employed a number of young women, and
Mrs. Ashton might be found most days in the warehouse, either “putting
out” or inspecting the work brought in by them, with a gingham wrapper
over her “silken sheen.” If the footman announced visitors, the wrapper
was thrown aside in a moment, and she stepped into her drawing-room
as though fresh from her toilette, and with no atmosphere of dozens,
grosses, or great-grosses about her.

She was wont to say, “The eye of a master does more work than both his
hands,” accordingly in house or warehouse her active supervision kept
other hands from idling, and she certainly dignified whatever duties
she undertook, whether she used hands or eyes only.

In those days a seven-years’ apprenticeship to any trade or business
was deemed essential; apprentices were part and parcel of commercial
economy, and when Mr. Ashton spoke of “looking after that boy,” it was
that he thought Jabez Clegg bade fair to be a fitter inmate and a more
reliable servant than others whose terms were about to expire.

Through his friend the Rev. Joshua Brookes he ascertained the boy’s age
and other particulars, and sought the House-Governor Mr. Terry, and
laid before him a proposition to take Jabez Clegg as his apprentice,
on very fair terms. He then learned that Mr. Shaw, the saddler at the
bottom of Market Street-lane, was also desirous to obtain the same
Blue-coat boy as an apprentice, his friend the leather-breeches maker
having named the lad to him.

At the Easter meeting of feoffees both proposals were laid before
them—Simon Clegg, as standing _in loco parentis_ to Jabez, being
present. After some little discussion Mr. Ashton’s proposal was
accepted, to the great satisfaction of the tanner, and in a few
days Jabez was transferred to his new master for mutual trial until
Ascension Day, when, if all parties were satisfied, his indentures
would be signed. As the governor said, it had “been but the toss of a
button” whether he had gone to Mr. Shaw or Mr. Ashton:—yet upon that
toss of a button the whole future of Jabez depended.

Jabez Clegg entered on his new career under good auspices—that is,
he bore with him a good character for steadiness and probity, though
nothing was said of brilliant parts, or any special talent which he
possessed. Indeed his school-master had said that only his indomitable
perseverence had enabled him to keep pace with others. If he had any
latent genius, any particular vocation, no one had discovered it;
his faculty for disfiguring doors and walls with devices in coloured
chalks, picked up amongst the gravel, had been matter for punishment
not praise, and none but the College boys themselves cared to know
where the fresh patterns for purses and pincushions came from.
Steadiness, perseverance, probity—they were good materials out of which
to manufacture a tradesman (so Mr. Ashton thought), and congratulations
were mutual.

Jabez went, with his new outfit, to his new home under good auspices,
inasmuch as both master and mistress were pre-possessed in his favour,
and they stood in the foremost ranks of those who began to recognise
that English apprentices were not bond-slaves in heathendom. Instead
of being crammed to sleep like dogs in holes under counters; left to
wash at a pump and wipe themselves where they could; obliged to sit at
a table in a back kitchen, and dip their spoons into one common dish
of porridge, or potatoes and buttermilk; to eat such scraps and refuse
as sordid employers, or ill-disposed cooks, chose to set before their
primitive Adamite forks—instead of a system like this, from which
apprentices (of whatever grade) only emerged at the beginning of this
century, the Ashtons’ apprentices had a comfortable dormitory in the
attic, there was a coarse jack-towel by the scullery-sink for their
use, they had their meals with the servants in the kitchen, where was
an oak settle by the fire for them when work was over.

But work did not end with the close of the warehouse. They were
expected to keep their attic clean and in order, to cleanse the wooden
or pewter platters, or porringers, from which they had dined or supped;
to rinse the horns which had held their table-beer; to fetch and carry
wood, coals, and water, for servants too lazy to do their own work; and
it was not much rest any apprentice had from five or six in a morning
until eight or nine at night, when he went to his bed.

As the youngest apprentice, the roughest of this work fell on Jabez,
but, luckily, his training had made him equal to the occasion; though
Kezia, the red-faced cook, set herself steadfastly to dislike him,
because Mr. Ashton had bespoken her favour for him. In the warehouse,
too, the evident good-will of principals roused the jealously of
underlings, so that “good auspices” had their corresponding drawbacks.

It was not much of a pleasure to Jabez to find Kit Townley also seated
as an apprentice on the kitchen settle; but the youth seemed disposed
to be friendly, and Jabez forbore to create a grievance by recalling
unpleasant reminiscences. With Kit Townley, who was his senior by a
year, a heavy premium had been paid, and on this he was inclined to
presume. But neither Mr. nor Mrs. Ashton made any social distinction
between the twain, and Jabez was strong enough to hold his own.

During the few weeks’ probation Jabez was transferred from department
to department, alike to test his capacity and his own liking for the
business. Both proved satisfactory.

On Ascension Day, 1813, there was another appearance in that ancient
room before the College magnates, many of whom, as officers in
volunteer regiments, were in full-dress uniform (a dinner pending). The
indentures had to be signed, the premium of £4 (returnable to the boy
when his term expired) had to be paid.

Simon Clegg’s best clothes had long been lost in the pawnbroker’s
bottomless pit: but some one unknown (mayhap Mrs. Clowes or Mrs.
Clough) had sent him overnight a suit of fresh ones, pronounced by
him and Bess “welly as good as new;” and he presented himself for the
important ceremony (overlooked by the painted face of the orphan’s
benevolent friend, Humphrey Chetham) as proud almost of his own
restored respectability as of the part he was about to perform. When it
came to his turn to sign the document, the little man took the pen with
a flourish, as if he were a hero about to perform some mighty action.
He stooped to the heavy oaken table, bent his head low, alternately to
the right and left, and with his fingers in an unaccountable crump,
imprinted his self-taught signature in Roman capitals thereon, then
handed back the quill as if to say, “The deed is done!”

Governor, school-master, and feoffees congratulated Mr. Ashton and
Jabez both. Simon, with moist eyes, shook Jabez by the hand, and
holding the boy’s shoulder with his left to look the better in his
clear dark eyes, said with deliberate emphasis—

“Jabez, lad, aw’m preawd on yo’ this day. But moind—thah’s an
honourable neame: do nowt to disgrace it, an’ yo’r fortin’s made!”

Jabez was too abashed to make reply at the time; but at the supper
given in the kitchen, to mark his installation at Mr. Ashton’s—to which
Bess and Simon were both invited—Jabez contrived to whisper,

“You needn’t clem any more, Bess; I’ll give you all my wages.”



CHAPTER THE FIFTEENTH.

APPRENTICESHIP.


Jabez now began his work in earnest, in the packing-room—the very
lowest rung of the ladder. Not long did he remain there. The bright
colours in the lace and brace rooms had an attraction for him, and he
argued with himself that the better he did the rough work assigned him
the sooner he should mount above it. And Jabez the plodding Blue-coat
boy, was ambitious. That ambition had a threefold stimulus.

Manchester people were then, as a rule, steady church and chapel-goers.
Mr. Ashton had two pews at the Old Church; one for his family, the
other for servants and apprentices, the attendance of the latter being
imperative. Jabez thus came in frequent contact with his old-time
friends, from the Blue-coat boys in the Chetham Gallery to the Cleggs,
to whom went every penny of his earnings; their distress, like that of
others, having deepened with the continuation of the Napoleonic war.

Sometimes old Mrs. Clowes, meeting him in the churchyard, would grasp
him by the hand, and leave something in it, as, in her old black
stuff dress and coloured kerchief tied over her mob-cap, she hurried
homewards to scold dilatory handmaids, and put her Christianity in
practice amongst her pensioners.

Now and then Joshua Brookes crossed his path, and if he did not put his
hand in his breeches pocket for Jabez—now a well-grown youth—he gave
him more than sterling coin in sterling advice, though, unfortunately,
in so abrupt and grotesque a manner, its effect was frequently lost.
Yet one day when the Blue-coat boy had been barely two years at the
Mosley Street manufacturer’s, he put a spur into the sides of his
ambition.

“Young Cheat-the-fishes, were you ever in Mrs. Chadwick’s green
parlour?”

“Yes, sir—I was there once for half-an-hour.” (The day he took back
Miss Ellen’s shilling.)

“Well did you read the sermons on the walls?”

Jabez answered respectfully—

“I did not see any sermons, sir. I saw some pictures in black frames
with gilt roses at the corners.”

“And didn’t look at them, I suppose?” in a harsh grunt.

“Yes, sir, I did! I was waiting till Mrs. Chadwick had done dinner.
They were about two boys—a good and bad apprentice.”

“Oh, then, you did use your eyes! The next time they let you inside
that room, just use your understanding too. William Hogarth, the
artist, from his grave preaches a sermon to you and your fellows, as
good as Parson Gatliffe preached from the pulpit this morning, mark
that!” and he turned on his heel with an emphasising nod to fix _his_
sermon on the boy’s mind.

The opportunity came before long. It was customary when an apprentice
went with a message to leave him in the hall, or send him into the
kitchen; but Jabez being sent by Mrs. Ashton with several samples of
furniture-binding and fringes for her sister’s use, he was shown with
his parcel into the parlour, where Mrs. Chadwick, neatly attired in a
brown stuff dress, with a French cambric kerchief lying in folds under
the square bodice, sat at work with an upholsteress, in the midst of a
mass of chintz and moreen, preparing for the new home of Ellen’s elder
sister Charlotte; for, in spite of war, distress, or famine, people
will marry and give in marriage. And had not a glorious peace just been
concluded?

Ellen, a comely but not pretty girl, about seventeen, whose black eyes
and hair were her chief attractions, sat there in a purple bombazine
dress, with her sheathed scissors and College pincushion suspended by
a chain from her girdle, plying her needle most industriously. He was
not accustomed to parlours, and no doubt his bow was as awkward as his
blush; but he had a message to deliver, and he did that in a business
like manner. He had to wait until pattern after pattern was tried
against the chintz, and calculations made. Mrs. Chadwick, seeing his
eyes wander wistfully from picture to picture, courteously gave him
permission to examine them.

At once Ellen, who was sitting close under one, rose to act as
interpreter. She was recalled by the mild voice of her mother.

“Sit down, Ellen; Jabez Clegg does not require a young lady’s help to
understand those pictures—they explain themselves.”

Ellen went back to her seat and her sewing with a raised colour, and a
private impression that the rebuke was uncalled for, though she spoke
never a word. Perhaps Mrs. Chadwick thought condescension should have
its limits, and did not believe in a young lady’s impulsive civility to
an apprentice Blue-coat boy. Yet that was not like Mrs. Chadwick.

Miss Augusta had been staying with her aunt. Part of his commission
was to convoy her home; she was an only child, and too precious to
be trusted out alone, though she was in her eleventh year, and the
distance was nothing. But so many desperadoes had been let loose by the
termination of the war that crime and violence were rampant, footpads
infested highways and byways, and Cicily, Augusta’s maid—ex-nurse—was
no longer deemed a protection.

He stood before the last engraving when Augusta—in no awe of her
father’s apprentice—came dancing into the room in a nankeen dress and
tippet, a hat with blue ribands, long washing-gloves which left the
elbows bare, and blue shoes tied with a bunch of ribands.

Bright, beautiful, buoyant—she was a picture in herself; and Jabez
turned from the dingy engraving to think so. She often came tripping
into the warehouse or the kitchen, and exchanged a bright word with one
or other, and away again; but Jabez had thought of her only as a pretty
playful child until that afternoon. Joshua Brookes pointing Hogarth’s
lessons had given the one spur; that lovely brown-eyed, brown-haired
maiden, with her simple, “Come, Jabez—I’m ready,” had given another.

She put her little gloved hand in his, after bidding her aunt and
cousin good-bye, and went dancing, skipping, and chattering by his side
down Oldham Street, and let him lift her over the muddy crossing to
Mosley Street, unconscious of the chimerical dreams floating through
his apprentice brain all the while. His original ambition to make a
home for Simon and Bess, where neither penury nor care should trouble
them, dwarfed before the new ideas crowding upon his mind. He had
read the sermon on the wall, but the old “Knave of Clubs,” as Joshua
was called, little thought how that pretty piquant little fairy, the
“master’s daughter,” would point it with something higher than ambition.

There were at that period in Manchester two schools for young ladies,
which, being celebrated at the time, deserve to be mentioned. The one
was situated at the extreme end of Bradshaw Street, looking through its
vista across Shudehill to the gaps in brickwork called Thomas Street
and Nicholas Croft, where in highly genteel state Mrs. (or Madame, as
she insisted on being called) Broadbent superintended the education of
a large and very select circle.

Education must have been at a low ebb when the chief manufacturers
of the town consigned their daughters to this pompous, pretentious
woman, who could not speak correctly the language she professed to
teach. In her attempt to appear the print and pattern of a lady, she
“clipped the King’s English,” and made almost as glaring errors as
Mrs. Malaprop. Yet, strange to say, she turned out first-class pupils
(for the period). The fact is, she was shrewd enough to know her own
deficiencies, and delegated her duties to others who were in all
respects efficient.

Then she was a wonderful trumpeter of her own fame; made frequent
visitations at houses where she was well entertained, and her bombast
was listened to for the sake of her young charges; held half-yearly
recitations, and also exhibitions of the plain sewing, embroidery,
knitting, knotting, filigrees, tambour, and lace work of her pupils;
and matrons proud of their own daughters’ achievements seldom paused to
reckon up the tears, the headaches, the heartaches, the sore fingers
which those minutely-stitched shirts, those fine lace aprons and
ruffles, those pictures and samplers had cost. For Madame Broadbent,
besides being a martinet rigid in her rule—having a numbered rack for
pattens and slippers, numbered pegs for cloaks and hats, book-bags
and work-bags, safe-guards (receptacles for sewing, &c., like a
huckster’s pocket) and slates, all numbered likewise—was not of too
mild a temper, and had a _penchant_ for pinching her pupils’ ears until
the blood tinged her nails; and stocks for the feet, backboards for
the shoulders, and dry bread diet were her prescriptions for the cure
of such delinquencies as an unauthorised word, an omitted curtsey,
a bag or garment on the wrong hook, a dropped stitch in knitting, a
blotted copy, a puckered seam; and work had to be done and undone until
stitches were almost invisible, and little eyes almost blind. She had
other peculiarities, had Madame Broadbent—but my portrait is growing
too large for its frame, and she was not a large personage at all.

It was to this delectable individual’s school (“establishments” had
not been invented then, or hers would have been one) that Miss Augusta
Ashton was consigned for conversion into a well-behaved, well-informed,
useful, and accomplished young lady.

Her cousins, the Misses Chadwick, had in their turn escaped from this
penitentiary for the manufacture of ladyhood. But in Piccadilly was a
school of a very different description, where young ladies of talent
and fortune went to qualify for _wifehood_; and here at this time Ellen
Chadwick was finishing her education, with many others, in learning
_the culinary art_ in all its branches.

How came it that Madame Broadbent’s school flourished and survived the
decay of its neighbourhood, being in existence when the writer of this
was a child, and the other had died and been forgotten, save by the
antiquary, before she was born?

To fetch Miss Ashton home from Madame Broadbent’s on dark or stormy
afternoons, was the understood duty of one or other of the apprentices;
but Kit Townley, having no more liking for wet weather than a cat,
generally contrived to be out of earshot when his services were
required. It devolved on Jabez, therefore, to carry the grey duffel
hooded cloak with which to cover the dainty one of scarlet kerseymere,
to tie the pattens on the tiny feet, to carry the school-bag, and hold
the brilliant blue gingham umbrella over the head elevated by the
pattens so much nearer to his shoulder, and to be thanked by one of the
sweetest voices in the world.

It was dangerous work, though no one knew it, least of all Jabez. True,
she was only a child, but she was tall for her age. And was he much
more than a boy? A boy let out from the seclusion of an almost monastic
institution, to whom her little airs and graces, her petty vanities,
her very waywardness and caprice, only made her beauty more piquant.

Madame Broadbent’s infallibility being taken for granted, all attempts
to make known school troubles and grievances were met with “Never tell
tales out of school,” from Mrs. Ashton, but they were poured fresh and
warm into the ear of Jabez, as she trotted by his side; and he, his
school-days unforgotten, listened with ready sympathy. And this went
on as months and years went by, adding to her stature, narrowing the
space between them; and he still did duty as her humble escort, unless
when Kit Townley was especially told off for the service and went
reluctantly, grumbling at being made “lackey to a school miss.”

Yet Kit Townley did not think it any degradation to play practical
jokes on Jabez, or on Kezia, leaving the younger apprentice to bear the
blame. Billets of wood, scuttles of coal, pails of water brought in
for her use by Jabez, were dexterously removed to doorways and other
unsuspected places, where “cook” was sure to stumble over them, and
then cuff Jabez for his carelessness or wilfulness, all protestations
on his part being disregarded. Creeping behind the settle where Jabez
sat watching, and perhaps basting the roast for the master’s table
for late dinners on company days, he would steal his sly arm round
the corner, himself unseen, and lifting the wheel of the spit out of
the smoke-jack chain, bring spit and all thereon into the dripper,
with a splash which brought the irate Kezia down on astounded Jabez
with whatsoever weapon of offence came nearest to her hand, from the
paste-pin to the basting-ladle, or even a saucepan lid; it was all one
to Kezia.

From Kezia, however, these frequent chances and mischances went
to Kezia’s mistress; and appearances being against him, the very
steadiness of denial, unaccompanied with any accusation of another
(other waggeries of Kit Townley in the warehouse being also laid on his
shoulder), Mrs. Ashton’s faith in the youth was somewhat shaken, and he
was conscious of being under a cloud. But still he kept on his way and
looked to the end.

The cloud dispersed after a while. Kit Townley was something of a
glutton, with a very boy’s love of pastry and sweets. It so happened
that on a special occasion (rejoicing for peace or something) Kezia had
set aside in her roomy pantry, the door of which fastened only with a
button, a tray of tartlets, custards, a trifle, moulds of jelly and
blanc-mange, and other dainties for a large party. Kit’s mouth watered
to get at these things. Often and often had he stolen the fruit from
under a pie-crust, and sat silent while Jabez bore the blame, but now
he meditated a more sweeping raid. There was a fine retriever in the
yard. Watching Kezia out of the way, he crammed mouth and pockets with
the pastry, and made an inroad into the trifle. Then he whistled to
Nelson, raised the dog on his hind feet, and printed the forepaws on
the pantry-shelf, dishes, and tart-tray, and round the button of the
door.

But he was compelled to wait until bed-time to fairly enjoy his spoil,
and then could not manage it unknown to his companion. Hoping to close
the other’s mouth literally and figuratively, he offered him a share,
but Jabez told him he was not a receiver of stolen goods, and left him
to digest that with his feast. It was a harder morsel than even Jabez
knew.

The next morning before breakfast they were in the warehouse, when
there was heard a terrible commotion in the yard. From the back
windows Kezia was seen belabouring Nelson with a broomstick, her face
redder than ordinary, whilst the poor beast whined piteously.

Jabez ran down to interpose, and the infuriated woman turned on him,
then ran in her rage to fetch her mistress to witness the damage done,
and the footprints of the depredator, and to own that punishment was
just.

But as Mrs. Ashton ascended the warehouse stairs that afternoon, she
heard Jabez and Kit loud in altercation, and before they were aware she
possessed a clue to much that had gone before.

Something Jabez had said was answered by a loud guffaw from Kit, and
the words—

“Let them laugh that win. I call it a deuced good joke.”

“And I call it cowardly and dishonourable to let the poor beast suffer
for your greediness,” Jabez answered, indignantly.

“Now don’t you put in your oar, young yellow-skirt. I’ll let no
charity-boy hector over me,” blustered Kit.

Jabez put down a bundle of umbrella whalebones he had on his shoulder,
to confront the other, then counting ferules into dozens. Umbrellas
used to have brass ferules, like elongated thimbles, on the sticks.

“Look you, Kit, I’ve borne many a scurvy trick of yours without saying
a word, but I will not even give the sanction of silence to dishonesty,
and will not see a noble animal ill-used to screen a coward.”

“Won’t you?” sneered Kit, “then we’ll see whose word weighs heaviest.”

Mrs. Ashton came into the room.

“Townley,” said she, “your word will not weigh down a feather
henceforth,” adding in the same dignified tone, “Are those ferules
counted? Jackson is waiting for them.”

No further notice was taken, but Jabez soon found he stood on a firmer
footing in house and warehouse. Mrs. Ashton remarked to her husband, as
she finished dressing for their dinner-party—

“It was a slight circumstance, William, but straws show which way the
wind blows.”

And he tapped his silver snuff-box, and said “Just so;” then
courteously offering his hand to his fine-looking wife, led her from
the room, her purple velvet robe trailing after her, the plumes on her
head nodding as they went.



CHAPTER THE SIXTEENTH.

IN WAR AND PEACE.


A clap of thunder burst over Europe, and the great war eagle flapped
his monstrous wings again. Napoleon had escaped from Elba ere crops had
had time to grow on his trampled battle-fields; yet crops of men rose
ripe for the sickle, and home expectations were dashed to the ground.

How many an anxious parent, how many a longing, love-sick maiden,
looked for her warrior back from Canada or the Continent, if only on
furlough or sick-leave! How many a weary soldier, sated with blood,
looked for discharge with pension or reward, and thirsted for the
fountain of home joys!

And from how many lips was the cup of delight dashed when the cry “To
arms!” rang out from mount to vale, from peak to peak, from town to
town, and the sheathed sword flashed forth to light, and forges belched
forth flame through day and night, preparing for fresh holocausts in
the new carnival of blood!

Trade centres at all such times are most convulsed, as being also
centres of humanity—depôts whence fresh relays are drafted from the
ranks of men whose peaceful work is at a sudden standstill. But that
war blast came like a fiery flash, and commerce, only then a feeble
convalescent, sank crushed and hopeless.

Mr. Chadwick felt it keenly, and, but that his more cautious and
wealthy brother-in-law came to his help with hand as open as his
snuff-box, his credit must have gone. His two eldest sons had gone from
him, drawn away by the phantom Glory. One, Richard, was a midshipman
upon Collingwood’s ship; the other, Herbert, a lieutenant in the 72nd,
or Manchester Volunteers, had departed with his regiment to fight in
the Peninsular. A third son, John, had been left to do his quiet duty
in the counting-house, but Death had laid its clutches on him soon
after his sister Charlotte’s marriage, and Ellen alone kept the house
from utter desolation.

She was a girl of strong feelings and quick impulses, but pursued her
way with so little show or pretence, she was hardly accredited with all
the comfort she brought to the hearth; and scarcely her mother even
suspected how that hidden heart of hers could throb—how intense were
her emotions.

Her love for every member of the family was deep, but when her brother
John died, after the first terrible outburst of grief she dried her
tears, and by mere force of will set herself to soothe those who had
lost a son. The prolonged absence of the others had been fruitful of
pain, and the glad prospect of Herbert’s return now blighted came to
her, as to father and mother, with a shock like a stab.

There was another hearth we have ere-while visited—a hearth which,
thanks to Jabez, and a few months’ regular employment for the
batting-rods and the tanner’s plunger, was less poverty-stricken than
it had been—and where Hope had held out delusive banners to herald a
soldier’s return, only to furl them again for another march, before eye
could meet eye, or lip meet lip.

Thirteen years had come and gone since last Tom Hulme and Bessy Clegg
had looked woefully upon each other—thirteen years of unrecorded trial
and suffering—yet still they were apart. The home in which he had known
her first, Tanner’s Bridge, on which he had first made love to her,
had been swept away to make room for Ducie Bridge and a new high-road;
and the best years of her womanhood were passing too. Would he ever
come back whilst grey-haired Simon could bless their union? Would he
ever come back again? Tears fell on Bess’s batting; and Simon had not
one word of comfort to give her. Even Matt Cooper, who had long since
resigned himself to his widowhood, was magnanimous enough to be sorry.

The new war between the “Corsican Vampire” and allied Europe was
fortunately of short duration; but how much of carnage and misery was
compressed into that campaign which had its brilliant close at Waterloo!

In the onset of that terrible conflict, Herbert Chadwick and a cousin,
fighting side by side, fell in a storm of grape-shot like green corn
under an untimely shower of hail, and their blood went to fertilise the
Belgian farmer’s future crops of wheat.

Herbert was his father’s favourite son. Not a mail-morning passed
but the old man made one of the crowd hurrying down the narrow
way called Market-street-lane to the Exchange, to catch a sight of
whatever bulletins might be posted up; and, his own mind relieved,
sent an apprentice from the Fountain-street warehouse with the words,
“All’s well!” to cheer up those at home. That dreadful morning when
his fearful eye ran down the black list of the killed at Waterloo,
and rested on Lieutenant Chadwick’s name, the letters seemed to turn
blood-red: he shrivelled up like a maple-leaf in a blighting wind; his
face and limbs began to twitch, and he fell forward into the arms of a
bystander, in a fit.

He was carried by compassionate hands to the nearest house, that of
John Shaw, the saddler. A merchant on ’Change (Mr. Aspinall) undertook
to break the doubly-calamitous intelligence to Mrs. Chadwick. Dr.
Hardie, whom the general excitement had drawn to the spot, was with
him in an instant, his white neckcloth was loosened, and, whipping out
a lancet, the doctor bled him in the arm without delay. He rallied
sufficiently to bear lifting into a carriage, kindly placed at the
doctor’s disposal to convey him home.

Dr. Hull was already in waiting. All that their united skill could
suggest was tried. His recovery was slow and imperfect; he dragged his
right leg after him; he was paralysed for life. He was not a young man,
and the supreme shock, coming as it did above a pressure of commercial
difficulties, had been too much for him.

It was an overwhelming disaster; but in anxiety and active care for the
stricken one, whose life was in imminent peril, the sharp edge of the
keener stroke was blunted for Ellen and her mother.

The Ashtons were, as ever, kind and thoughtful.

“William,” said Mrs. Ashton, meditatively to her husband over the
tea-urn, the day after Mr. Chadwick’s attack, “we must not forget that
if John is not related to us, Sarah” (Mrs. Chadwick) “and Ellen are.
‘Blood is thicker than water;’ and it will not do, for their sakes, to
let John’s business go to rack and ruin for want of supervision.”

“Just so, just so,” he replied, reflectively, taking his snuff-box out
of his pocket mechanically, and putting it back again unopened, as
contrary to tea-table propriety; “I have been thinking the same myself.
I will go round to the warehouse to-morrow, and see how matters stand;
we must keep things ship-shape somehow till John is himself again.”

And he was as good as his word, though he had really never thought
about it until prompted by his clear-headed wife. He had a habit of
thus falling in with her suggestions, though had any one hinted that
he followed the lead of a woman, so much younger than himself too, he
would have rejected the imputation with scorn. With returning peace
came joyful restorations to many homes, humble as well as lofty.

Before the time of their extreme privation, before even Simon was
out of work, he had taken one of the smallest of the garden-plots on
the higher ground on the opposite side of the Irk, and cultivated
it in what little leisure he had, Bess giving him a helping hand
occasionally. And by the sale of penny posies to Sunday ramblers from
the town, and herbs and salad to the market women in Smithy door, he
did his best to beat back the gaunt wolf when the wolf came.

Bess had laid by her batting-wands, put a turf in the grate to kindle
up a handful of cinders and slack to boil their supper-porridge, for,
though Autumn was striding on, they could not waste fuel on a mid-day
fire; Simon was away working in his garden, whilst the daylight held;
and she sat, as she frequently did now, on a low stool in front of the
grate, her elbows on her knees, and her head on her hands, watching, in
a kind of hazy dream, the red glow creeping through the heart of the
turf, when a footstep on the threshold caused her to turn round.

Like a picture framed by the doorway, stood the tall figure of a
bronzed soldier, with his left arm in a sling. Before the sharp cry
of joy had well left her lips, his other arm was around her—both hers
around his neck; their lips met in a long kiss, which told of pain
and trouble past, and love through all; and then her head fell on his
shoulder in a fit of convulsive sobbing such as had not shook her frame
for years.

Sorrow and joy have both their baptism of tears!

It was a glad sight for Simon to see them sitting, with their hands
locked in each other’s, side by side on an old box, which served them
for a seat—all Simon’s lost furniture had not come back—silent from
excess of happiness, yet radiant as though the glow of youth were
returning in the Midsummer of their lives.

In the roughest war-time the common requirements of life have to be
satisfied, and peaceful trades and arts are of necessity carried on,
albeit they flourish not. And the farther from the seat of war, and
the less private interest is involved, the less business and household
routine is fringed on.

Thus Mr. Ashton, whose large capital had enabled him to bide the issues
of the Continental and American stoppage of trade, and who had no
nearer relatives in danger than his wife’s nephews, pursued his way
in comparative quiet. Indeed, he was an easy-going man with much less
vigour of character than his wife; and she bore little resemblance to
her own sister.

So we may carry our readers away from the poorly-furnished room in a
fetid Long Millgate-yard, leaving the re-united lovers to the enjoyment
of the present and their reminiscences of the past, and look in upon
the Ashtons in their cosy tea-room _before_ Waterloo cast a black
shadow over the family.

It was a spacious apartment (as were most of the rooms in that
habitation), the walls above the surbase (a wooden moulding some two
feet above the skirting-board) were painted a warm dove colour, the
surbase and all below in two shades of light blue. The window-tax—a
result of war—laid an embargo on light, by restricting size and number,
so the house, like most in the neighbourhood, having been built
subsequently to “Billy Pitt’s” obnoxious impost, there were only two
windows, and those were narrow. They were draped with heavy curtains,
and festooned valances of dove-coloured moreen, trimmed with blue
orris-lace, and worsted-bullion fringe, with spiral silken droplets
here and there to shimmer in the rays of sun or chandelier. For there
was a chandelier, of fanciful device, pendent from the wonderfully
moulded ceiling, a septenary of lacquered serpents, whose interlaced
and twisted tails met upwards, separated below in graceful coils,
and branching out their seven heads, turned up their gaping jaws to
close them on wax-lights. The chandelier was no misnomer; but the
fiery serpents kept their flames for state occasions, when the serpent
branches on each side the long Venetian looking-glass, between the
windows, were on duty likewise. There was another Venetian glass above
the high-painted chimney-piece, so elaborately carved, but here the
serpent candelabra lit the room for common use, and were supplemented
with lights in tall silver candlesticks upon the centre table.

Spanish mahogany alike were chairs, and table, and Miss Augusta’s grand
piano—ranged against the wall from the door, so that the window light
should fall upon the keys—and chairs and tables were alike club-footed,
massive, and plain; there were two folded card tables, a cellaret,
and a work-table, all with tapering legs and club-feet; and there
was a ponderous sofa on the flower-besprent Brussels carpet, which,
without the adventitious aid of artificial steel springs, was elastic
and soft, and wooed the weary to rest aching limbs or aching head upon
its cushions. There were no anti-macassars—hair-seating did not soil
readily.

The air was odorous with rose, lavender, and jessamine, for the
windows were both open, and what little air there was stirring swept
over a large summer nosegay in a china vase between the windows. The
mahogany teaboard was set with miniature unhandled cups and saucers of
china, more precious than the fragrant decoction they were designed to
hold; the brass tea-urn hissed and spluttered; Mrs. Ashton in a rich
dress sat at the table to infuse the tea; Mr. Ashton had drawn his
softly-cushioned easy-chair nearer; it was past five by the tall clock
in the hall, and Miss Augusta had not presented herself.

As a thorough business woman, Mrs. Ashton was punctuality itself. She
expected her family to be punctual also. Five o’clock, the Manchester
hour for tea, and no Augusta!

“James!” (to the footman), “inquire for Miss Ashton; she is not kept in
at school—it is a holiday.”

As the man retired, Augusta, in a white cambric frock heavy with
tambour-work, tripped in at the door, her diaper pinafore not so clean
as it might have been, her hands full of something which she set down
on a side table.

“It is past five o’clock, Augusta; where have you been until now? And
how came Cicily to send you in to tea with a soiled pinafore?” asked
Mrs. Ashton, with the quiet dignity which seldom relaxed.

“Is it? I did not hear the clock strike, I was so busy; and Cicily has
not seen my pinafore,” was Augusta’s light consecutive reply.

“So busy!—Cicily not seen you!” her mother exclaimed in surprise. “Let
me look at your hands. I am shocked, Augusta! What would Mrs. Broadbent
say?” (The hands were worse than the pinafore.) “Have I not told you
repeatedly that ‘cleanliness is next to godliness?’ Go to Cicily and be
washed immediately, or you can have no tea.”

Augusta pouted.

“Must I, papa?”

The management of this child was the only point on which Mr. and Mrs.
Ashton differed.

“Well, my dear, your mamma says so; but I think for this once it may be
overlooked, if you will be more careful another time,” said he, willing
to excuse and temporise.

“‘Only this once,’ William, ‘is the parent of thrice,’” responded Mrs.
Ashton, gravely, as she poured out the tea, giving something like
milk-and-water to Miss Augusta. “You will spoil that child; and if you
spoil her to-day, she will spoil herself to-morrow. However, as _you_
are inclined to tolerate that which I think disrespectful to us, and
wanting in self-respect on the child’s part, I can say no more.”

Thus Mrs. Ashton yielded against her judgment; Mr. Ashton took out his
snuff-box, to put it back like a culprit; and Miss Augusta sat down to
the table, not knowing whether to be more pleased or sorry that she had
got her own way.

To turn the subject, Mr. Ashton asked—

“What is that you put on the card-table, my dear?”

“Oh! I’ll show you,” and away the young lady was running, only to be
recalled by her mother’s decided—

“After tea, Augusta.”

So after tea it was that Miss Augusta brought her treasure to her
father—sundry sheets of paper, on which scraps of variously-coloured
leather had been arranged and pasted in ornamental patterns, floral and
geometrical, aided by the stamps employed in piercing brace-ends for
the embroiderers, and in cutting stars to cover the umbrella-wheels
inside.

“Who did those?” asked mother and father in a breath.

“Jabez Clegg, in the warehouse. Aren’t they pretty?” was Augusta’s
ready reply, as she looked admiringly on her curious pictures.

“Oh! then that accounts for your being late, and in that condition at
the tea-table,” said Mrs. Ashton, as she glanced from the rich designs
before her to the sullied hands and pinafore.

“And so Jabez Clegg has been wasting our leather to make playthings for
you?” remarked Mr. Ashton interrogatively, in a not unkindly tone of
voice.

“No, he hasn’t!” answered little miss, briskly. “He only used the waste
tiny bits. I wanted to take a big piece to make a housewife” (a case
for thread and needles), “and he would not let me have it. He said he
had no right to give it, and I had no right to take it. Was he right,
mamma?”

[Along with many other vain fashions, “papa” and “mamma” had come over
from France to supersede our more sterling “father” and “mother,” with
other refugees from the Revolution.]

“Yes, my dear, quite right; but I wish my little daughter would not run
so much into the kitchen and warehouse among the apprentices,” said
the mother, kindly, smoothing down the light brown hair, in which the
sunbeams seemed to weave golden threads. “It is not becoming in a young
lady.”

Mr. Ashton, who had been all the while examining the glowing devices
before him, interrupted her with—

“I think I have discovered a new faculty in our apprentice. I shall buy
Jabez Clegg a box of colours to-morrow. We are sadly in want of fresh
patterns, and I think he can make them;” and Mr. Ashton took a large
pinch of snuff on the strength of his discovery.

And Jabez, for the first time in his life the possessor of paints and
brushes, became valuable to his master.



CHAPTER THE SEVENTEENTH.

IN THE WAREHOUSE.


Mutability is the epitaph of worlds. Change alone is changeless. People
drop out of the history of a life as of a land, though their work or
their influence remains. A passing word may suffice to dismiss such
from our pages.

The Reverend John Gresswell had been taken by Death from the Chetham
College school-room before more than half the term of Jabez Clegg’s
pupilage had run. Dr. Stone’s resignation of his librarianship followed
close on his discovery of the half-drowned boy on the dairy-steps.
After a long engagement with a young lady who refused many eligible
offers, and withstood much parental persuasion for his sake, he—the
curate of St. John’s Church—accepted the first vacant living in the
gift of the college whereof he was fellow. A bridal closed their almost
Jacob’s courtship, and the constant couple retired to the seclusion
of Wooton Rivers, where his learning and eloquence had seldom more
appreciative auditory than smock-frocked Wiltshire rustics and their
families.

About the same time, or not long after, old Brookes was missed from
the Packhorse, and the Ring-o’-Bells, and the Apple-Tree, and the Sun
Inn—the breeches-maker and his neighbours ceased to hear his foul and
offensive maunderings and imprecations as he staggered past to his
son’s home, there to test _his_ endurance. He had gone home to his
mother-earth, sober and silent for evermore. And Parson Brookes, left
to his books and his pigeons, sent in his resignation, and the Grammar
School knew him no more as a master. So the boys felt themselves free
to take greater liberties with him than ever, and kept his hot blood
for ever on the simmer.

As all these changes preceded the change which converted Jabez from
a Blue-coat boy into Mr. Ashton’s apprentice, so were they anterior
to the changes wrought by war in the homes of the Chadwicks and the
Cleggs—changes differing even more widely than did the two homes.

Poverty had made sad havoc amongst Simon Clegg’s household goods; but
Tom Hulme had not come home empty-handed, and soon their furniture came
back, or was replaced, and the three rooms brightened up wonderfully.
Though Simon’s flowers brought pence to his pocket as well as the other
produce of his garden, he had always a spare posy for the broken jug
on window-sill or mantelshelf; and Bess, full-hearted if not full of
work, sent her voice quivering through that unmusical yard in songs of
gladness and rejoicing.

Very little fresh wooing was necessary. To people who had been so
stinted as they in common with others had been, Tom’s pension seemed
more than it was; and no sooner was he able to discard his sling than
he talked of immediate marriage, and was wonderfully sanguine about
obtaining work as soon as his left arm regained its old power—which
it never did. It was no use setting up a loom; he could no longer
throw the shuttle back. He would have to seek some other employment.
But thousands of other men were seeking employment too—men with the
full use of all their limbs—men who had not disqualified themselves
for peaceful arts by “going soldiering;” and Tom Hulme stood little
chance. Mr. Clough would have taken him on as a timekeeper, but lack of
penmanship was a barrier in the way.

Lamenting this in the presence of Jabez, the youth offered to be his
instructor; and with the permission of Mr. Ashton, who granted leave
of absence, set him copies and gave him lessons on Sunday afternoons,
at first on an old slate, to save the cost of paper, which was dear.
And then, at Mr. Ashton’s suggestion, Jabez superadded arithmetic, thus
keeping himself in practice, besides helping one dear to those who had
helped him.

Of course, a weekly or fortnightly lesson was not much; but the
disabled soldier was a persevering pupil, and brought a clear head and
an eager desire to his task. The maintenance of a better home for Bess
depended on it.

About this time, a matter transpired at the Ashtons’ which had a
material influence on the fortunes of the Cleggs. Though the house of
Mr. Ashton was in Mosley Street, the premises extended as far as Back
Mosley Street, where was the warehouse door. The workpeople entered at
a side door under a gateway which led to the stable, gig-house, and
courtyard between house and warehouse, guarded by the black retriever,
Nelson.

You may look in vain for house and warehouse now. A magnificent block
of stone warehouses, having threefold frontage, occupies the site.

More than once, Jabez Clegg, frequently entrusted with outdoor business
requiring promptitude and accuracy, came upon Kit Townley, and one or
other of the tassel-makers or fringe weavers, in close conference under
the dim gateway at closing-time on Saturdays, or in the still darker
doorway at the stair-foot of the workmen’s entrance. The first time
they moved aside to let him pass, afterwards they separated hastily;
but not before Jabez, who had quick ears, caught the chink of money as
it passed from one to the other.

On the first of these occasions, his attention was barely arrested;
it was the repetition and the avoidance which struck him with its air
of secrecy, and set him pondering what business his fellow-apprentice
could have with the hands out of proper place and time. He knew him to
be not over-scrupulous. He had seen him at Knott-Mill Fair and Dirt
Fair (so called from its being held in muddy November), or Kersall
Moor Races, with more money to spend in pop, nuts, and ginger-bread,
shows and merry-go-rounds, flying boats and flying boxes, fighting
cocks and fighting men, than he could possibly have saved out of the
sum his father allowed him for pocket-money, even if he had been of the
saving kind; and, coupling all these things together, Jabez was far
from satisfied. He was aware that of late years stock-taking had been
productive of much uneasiness to both Mr. and Mrs. Ashton. There were
deficiences of raw material in more than one department, for which it
was impossible to account, save that the quantity accredited to “waste”
was far out of reasonable proportion.

Mr. Ashton, suspecting systematic peculation or embezzlement (of which
many masters were complaining), had privately communicated with Joseph
Nadin, the deputy constable, a gnarled graft from Bow Street, who bore
the official character of extraordinary vigilance and smartness. He
was supposed to set a watch on workpeople and others, but nothing came
to light. Perhaps he was too busy manufacturing political offences,
or hunting down political offenders, to look after the interests of
private manufacturers. Sure it is that silk, worsted, webs, and gingham
once gone were not to be traced. Jabez was also aware that a shade
rested on the establishment of which he was an item, and felt that it
behoved him to clear it away for his own sake, if possible.

Since the discovery of his faculty for design, much of his time had
been occupied at a desk with pencils and colours, making patterns
for the wood-turner, the mould-coverer, the tassel-maker, the
fringe-weaver; for bell-ropes, brace-webs, carpet and furniture
bindings; and although some of these things admitted but of little
variety, there was plenty found for him to do.

This was well-pleasing enough to Jabez, but the College officials, who
never lose sight of the boys they apprentice, demurred. His indentures
provided that he should learn small-ware-manufacturing in all its
branches; and pattern-designing, if part and parcel, was only one
branch. Mr. Ashton was too just not to assent, and Jabez went to his
active employment again. But he had a love for his new art, and an
interest in his master’s interest, which prompted him to say—

“If it would be all the same to you, sir, I could draw patterns before
breakfast, or in the dinner-hour, or in an evening, if Kezia had
someone else to wait on her.”

The inevitable snuff-box came out, Mr. Ashton’s head went first on one
side, then on the other, as he took a long pinch before he answered.

“No, my lad, it won’t be all the same to me, nor to you either,” he
said, at length, and Jabez began to look rueful. “You’re a lad of
uncommon parts, and I’m willing enough to find them employment. But if
you work extra hours, apprentice or no apprentice, you must have extra
pay. So you see, Jabez, it won’t be the same to either of us. You shall
have the little room at the end of the lobby to yourself, and there you
may earn all you can for your own friends and for me.”

“Oh, thank you, master!” interjected Jabez, his thoughts flying at once
to the old yard in Long Millgate.

“And let Kezia wait upon herself if there are no other idle folk
about,” concluded Mr. Ashton, and the business was settled.

This was about the time Jabez first began to suspect Kit Townley of
unfair dealing; and being once more in frequent contact with him in the
warehouse, he could not shut his eyes or his ears.

Kit was then assistant putter-out in the fringe and tassel department,
counted out the moulds, weighed out silk and worsted, and called out
the quantities each hand took away, for a young booking-clerk to enter.

Jabez was still in the brace and umbrella room, but there was a wide
door of communication between the two, and he had frequently to pass
through the former with finished goods for the ware and show-rooms on
the lower floors, and had to go cautiously past the large scale, lest
he should tilt the beam with his ungainly burdens. Now and then it
occurred to him that the bulk of silk or worsted in the scale was large
in proportion to the weight, as called out by Kit Townley, and once he
was moved to say—

“Is that balance true? or have you made a mistake, Townley?”

“Mind your own business, Clegg, and don’t hinder mine. Naught ails the
scales, and I know better than make mistakes.”

“Well, I only thought,” persisted Jabez.

“I wish you’d think and keep those umbrellas clear of the beam. You’re
always thrutching past with great loads on your shoulder when I am
weighing out,” interrupted Kit, testily, and Jabez held his peace.

But if he went on his way quietly, he was equally observant, and saw
the same thing happen again too often to be the result of accident.
Moreover, from the window of the little room where he had a broad desk
for designing, he saw Kit meet the same men and women stealthily after
hours under the opposite gateway.

“Kit,” said he, one night, when they went to their attic, “what do you
meet Jackson, Bradley, and Mary Taylor under the gateway for so often?”

Kit, arrested with his warehouse jacket half on and half off, asked
sharply—

“Who says I meet them under the gateway?”

“I say so. I have seen you myself.”

“And what if you have?” Kit retorted, snappishly. “There’s no harm in
saying a civil word to poor folk that I know of.”

“No harm, if that were all,” returned Jabez, seriously, sitting down
on the edge of his truckle-bed to take off his blue worsted stockings
(knitted by himself), “but I have seen them give you money.”

“And what of that, you Blue-coat spy! If they’re kind enough to call at
old mother Clowes’s shop for toffy and humbugs for me, and give me the
change back, what’s that to you?” he blustered, coming up to Jabez with
a defiant air.

“I know you’ve a sweet tooth, Townley,” replied Jabez, unmoved, “but
I fear nothing half so good as Mrs. Clowes’ toffy takes you there so
stealthily.”

“Perhaps, Mr. Wiseacre, you know my business better than myself?”
returned Kit, bold as brass, though he did begin to feel qualmish.

“Perhaps I do, for I suspect you of double-dealing, and I know what the
end of that must be; and I warn you that I cannot stand by and see our
good master robbed. I should be as bad as you if I did.”

Townley, enraged, struck at him, and there was a scuffle in the dark,
the bit of candle in their horn lantern having burnt out.

Kezia, who slept in the adjoining attic, rated them soundly the next
morning for the disturbance they had made, threatening to tell Mrs.
Ashton. Had she done so, inquiry would have followed.

Jabez, troubled and perplexed, the very next Sunday, consulted old
Simon Clegg as to the course he should pursue, being alike unwilling to
tell tales on suspicion, or to see his kind master wronged.

“Eh, lad,” quoth Simon, rubbing down his knees as he sat, “aw’ve manny
a toime bin i’ just sich a ‘strait atween two;’ but aw allas steered
moi coorse by yon big book, and tha’ mun do t’ seame. Thah munnot think
what thah loikes, or what thah dunnot loike; but thah mun do _reet_,
chuse what comes or goes. It is na reet to steeal; and to look on an’
consent to a thief is to be a thief. Thi first duty’s to thi God,
an’ thi next to thi payrents (if tha’ had anny), an’ thi next to thi
measter. Thah’s gi’en the chap fair warnin’, an’ if he wunnot tak’ it
th’ faut’s noan thoine.”

It so happened that the “putter-out” in the brace and umbrella-room
was an old man named Christopher, who had been in the employment of
the Ashtons (father and son) for thirty years. He professed to be
very pious and very conscientious, but lamented that increasing years
brought with it many ailments and infirmities, such, for instance,
as headaches, dizziness, sudden weakness of the limbs, and attacks
of spasms, for the cure of which he kept a bottle of peppermint in a
corner cupboard.

It was into this room Augusta used to come dancing, to coax old
Christopher out of bits of waste leather, and other odds and ends,
for which only a child could find use. She was fond of cutting and
snipping, and, with an eye to his own advantage, the cunning old
fellow had taught her how to use the stamps, so that she might _amuse_
herself by helping him. Then he bespoke her compassion for his aches
and pains, and often, on holiday afternoons, was troubled with one or
other ailment, which a pull at the bottle and a nap on the bundles of
leather, or gingham, alone could relieve—“if Miss Augusta would be so
obleeging an’ so koind as to stamp out a few tabs or straps for him, or
count out umbrella ferules, or wheels, or handles,” for him.

And she, full of the superabundant energy of youth, did it, nothing
loth; though as her own years increased, and with them her ability to
help, came a sharp sense that old Christopher was a hypocrite—knowledge
she confided to Jabez one day, when the sanctimonious putter-out was
resting his aching head and uncertain legs, as usual; and in order to
convince him she drew a bottle of gin, _not_ peppermint, from under a
pile of white kid.

Jabez, too, had been sorry for the old fellow, and often added a good
part of Christopher’s work to his own, to relieve him. It was this fact
which brought both Christophers to book. The old cant was so grievously
afflicted on the Monday afternoon, that Jabez, seeing him quite
incapable of doing his work properly (he was putting out umbrellas),
undertook to do it for him, though it was no business of his—and so
Mrs. Ashton would have told him, had she been there.

He measured off what he knew to be sufficient gingham for two dozen
umbrellas (a workwoman standing by in waiting), and was about to cut
off the length when the woman arrested his hand.

“Yo’re furgettin’ th’ weaste, mi lad; Mester Christopher allus alleaws
fur weaste.”

He looked at the woman, conscious there could be no waste in cutting
umbrella-gores. She winked at him.

“Oh,” said Jabez, conscious he was learning something not down in his
indentures. “And how much does he allow?”

“Abeawt a yard an’ a hauve th’ dozen.” she replied.

“And how do you contrive to waste it?” Jabez asked.

She winked again.

“Eh, but yo’re a young yorney. Yo’d best ax Mester Christopher that.”

“I think I’d best ask Mrs. Ashton that, if she’s in the warehouse,”
rejoined he, sending his scissors through the gingham at the proper
place.

“Yo’d better not, or yo’n cut off yo’r nose to spite yo’r own feace;”
and the woman nodded her head knowingly. “T’other ’prentice knows whatn
weaste means if thah dunnot; an’ manny’s th’ breet shillin’ it’s put in
his breeches pocket, my lad.”

“Oh, that’s it, is it?” said Jabez, whilst he was counting over the
already bundled up whalebone sticks, &c., to complete the umbrella
fittings. “As our mistress would say, ‘We may live and learn.’”

He found that whalebone, ferules, handles, leathers, wheels, were all
in excess. An extra umbrella might be made from the superabundant
materials. Thereupon he wakened Christopher to do his own work,
simply remarking that he thought the bundles of sticks, &c., had been
miscounted.

“Oh, no, Clegg, they’re a’ reet; we’re obleeged to put in moore fur
fear some on ’em shouldn’ split in makkin’ oop,” said old Christopher,
cunningly, as if for his information.

Jabez took no further notice then, but shouldering a great bundle
of large umbrellas, carried them through the fringe room, and there
noticed that, despite the caution he had given, his fellow-apprentice
was dexteriously manipulating silk and scales to falsify the weights he
called out.



CHAPTER THE EIGHTEENTH.

EASTER MONDAY.


That evening Jabez, a clear-eyed, open-browed youth in his seventeenth
year, upright, well-knit, and firmly built for his age, knocked at the
parlour-door after Miss Augusta had been sent to bed. There was some
trouble on his countenance, as though he was bent on an errand utterly
repugnant to him. He was truly sorry to be the means, however remotely,
of bringing disgrace on both an old man and a young one; but Simon had
led him to the conclusion that if there was little honour in turning
informer, there would be absolute dishonesty in keeping silence whilst
he saw his master robbed.

Yet he hesitated, and lingered with his hand on the handle of the door,
after the clear voice of Mr. Ashton had twice invited him to “come in.”

Mr. Ashton therefore opened the door, and saw Jabez with a design for a
bell-rope tassel in his hand.

“Well, Jabez, what is it? Something special you have to show us?”

“No, sir; I only brought this lest any of the servants should be
curious about my errand here.”

Mrs. Ashton, who was reading a romance from Mrs. Edge’s circulating
library in King Street, lifted up her head at this; and Jabez came in,
closing the door.

“Then what is the errand which needs such precaution?” asked Mr.
Ashton, resuming his seat and looking up at the dear face of Jabez.

“I _think_, sir”—and he laid an emphasis on the “think”— “I have found
out how you are being robbed, and who it is that robs you.”

“You—what?” exclaimed Mr. Ashton, placing his hand on the elbows of his
chair, and bending forward inquiringly.

Jabez repeated his statement, adding, “I think, sir, some of your
putters-out and work-people are in league to defraud you.”

Out came Mr. Ashton’s snuff-box, down went Mrs. Ashton’s romance,
whilst Jabez told succinctly how his suspicions had been first aroused,
and how they had been confirmed that day.

“I did not tell my suspicions to Christopher, sir, thinking I had best
not interfere, or put the—the—them on their guard until I had spoken to
you. I feared lest I should defeat your plans,” said Jabez, modestly.

“Just so, Jabez, just so; you were quite right, Jabez,” said his
master, whilst a shower of snuff fell on neckcloth ends and shirt
frills.

“Yes, quite right!” assented Mrs. Ashton, with customary dignity. “‘A
still tongue shows a wise head;’ but we seldom see an old head on such
young shoulders.”

No active steps were taken for a few days, but Mrs. Ashton was in the
warehouse, and doubly observant; and Mr. Ashton was also on the alert.
They saw enough to convince them that Jabez was correct, and, acting on
first impulses, Nadin was again communicated with.

From the window of Jabez Clegg’s little room, Kit Townley was seen to
receive payment from a fringe-weaver for his share of the spoil; and
then Nadin, who knew all about it quite well enough before, followed up
the clue to a waste-dealer’s who bought at his own price workpeople’s
“waste” (_i.e._, warp, weft, silk, &c., remaining after work was
completed), and found tradespeople willing enough to re-purchase, well
knowing that commodities so varied, and so far below market value, were
not honestly come by.

Nadin, big and blustering when there was nothing to be gained by
silence, was for hauling the whole lot off to prison—the two Kits, the
waste dealer, and sundry workpeople—and the criminal code was a very
terrible dispensation then.

But Mr. Ashton was more merciful; he was for milder measures. Besides,
Mr. Townley was an old friend of his, and for the sake of the father
he forbore to drag the son into a court of justice; and unless he
prosecuted all, he could not prosecute any.

The sight of Nadin and his rough men, in their red-cuffed, red-collared
brown coats, with their staves and handcuffs ready for use was
sufficiently terrifying. The distress of old Mr. Townley was painful
to witness. As for Kit himself, he seemed less conscious of his guilt
than ashamed of being found out, openly declaring that he “_did no more
than was customary_,” and no more than old Christopher, who had led him
into it, had done for years.

That old hypocrite went down on his knees with many whining
protestations of his innocence; but, finding proof too strong, he made
a clean breast of it, and on learning that through the generosity of
his employer he was about to escape prosecution, which would have led
to transportation, he begged piteously to be allowed to retain the
situation he had held for so many years.

“No, Kit,” said Mrs. Ashton; “‘there is no rogue like an old rogue;’
you have not only robbed us yourself, but taught others the trick.
Think well you have escaped the New Bailey” (the Manchester and Salford
prison).

At that period the constable who apprehended a criminal received a
bonus on each conviction, called “blood-money,” so large a proportion
of felons were executed; and Nadin, gruff and uncourteous even to his
superiors, was disposed to resist Mr. Ashton’s amiable “interference
with the course of justice.” A liberal douceur from the elder Mr.
Townley’s well-stocked purse was potent to allay his zeal. His runners
were dismissed, and his friend the waste-dealer had a longer lease.

The clearance of rogues paved the way for honest men, besides
suggesting measures to prevent like embezzlement in future. The Ashtons
rightly thought that the best way to reward Jabez was to serve his
friends. A situation as putter-out to the weavers was offered to Tom
Hulme, Mr. Ashton having had his eye on him for some time; and old
Simon, being sent for, went home delighted with commendations of Jabez,
and the consciousness that the only barrier to Bess’s marriage was now
removed, and that through the foundling’s instrumentality.

The only bar, that is, save the double fees of Lent, and the “ill-luck”
supposed to follow a couple united during the penitential forty days.
Tom put up the banns, however, and Easter Monday was chosen as the
day of days for the ceremony. Tom Hulme’s parents had been married
on an Easter Monday, Simon had been tied to his wife on an Easter
Monday, Jabez had been made a Blue-coat boy on an Easter Monday, and
apprenticed on an Easter Monday; it was consequently an anniversary to
be observed and respected.

Early marriages prevail amongst the class made early self-dependent
by earning their own living. Matt Cooper had long been a grandfather,
Molly and his three eldest boys had been married and settled. A brisk
young butcher coming to the tannery with hides had met Martha, the
other girl, bearing her father’s dinner, and been so taken with her
sharp, active gait, and saucy answers, that he proposed to transfer her
to his shop beyond Ancoats Lane Canal-bridge, and to make his offer
more palatable, suggested an amalgamation of the two households, and to
take the youngest lad—Matthew, aged fourteen—as his apprentice.

So ardent and promising a lover was not to be despised. Martha did not
say “No,” and Matt, beginning to stoop in the shoulders, rejoiced at
the prospective haven for his declining years.

It was arranged that they should be married along with Bess and Tom
Hulme; and so Matthew Cooper went with the Cleggs to church, not as a
gallant bridegroom, but, more suitably, to give away a bride.

And now how shall I describe the scene at the Old Church on Easter
Monday, to convey anything like an idea to modern readers, unacquainted
with the locality, the period, and the habits of the people?

It must be borne in mind that registrars’ offices did not exist;
that there was no marrying at dissenting chapels; that few, if any,
churches were licensed for the solemnisation of matrimony; and that
the collegiate parish church of Manchester was the nucleus towards
which the marriageable inhabitants of all the surrounding townships and
villages turned at the most important epoch of their lives.

The venerable pile (now being doctored by restorers) was set, as it
were, in a ring-fence of old houses, with an inner ring of low wall
encircling the churchyard, which, as grave-stones testified, had once
extended to the very house-steps. As I have elsewhere said, the path
between this wall and the houses was known as Half Street, a portion
of which, containing Mrs. Clowes’s old shop, still remains; and did
I enumerate all the public-houses in this ring-fence which offered
accommodation to wedding and christening parties, only a future
generation of antiquaries would thank me; and even they might doubt the
facts set down in a work of fiction.

Nevertheless on Easter Monday not one of these hostelries had a spare
foot of room. Every window and every door stood wide open. Men and
women, gaily dressed as their own means or friendly wardrobes would
allow, went in and out, filled rooms and passages, leaned from the
windows with ribbons flying loose, or with pipes and ale-pots in their
hands, calling to their friends below, whilst rival fiddlers (almost
every party having its own) scraped away in anything but harmony.
Horses and carts blocked up every avenue, and the churchyard itself was
thronged with an excited crowd.

Only the parties immediately interested were admitted into the sacred
edifice, but to reach the doors they had to force their way, and could
only return in couples through a dense avenue of humanity, amid a
shower of jests, many not the most seemly.

Bess wore only a white cambric gown, and a straw bonnet crossed with
white ribbon, both of which Mrs. Ashton had provided; but somewhere in
Tom’s Peninsular campaigns he had picked up a bright-coloured scarf,
which made her glorious to behold, and the envy of many a country
bride. His old uniform had been kept for the occasion, and they looked
grand together, but the quiet content on Bess’s face was better than
the grandeur.

Nat Bradshaw, the butcher-bridegroom, was of a jovial turn, and nothing
would do but the whole double wedding-party, Jabez included, should
turn into the Ring-o’-Bells to drink health and happiness to the
brides, and give them spirit to go through the ceremony befittingly.
Bess and Martha hung back blushing like peonies; but Nathaniel was not
to be gainsaid, and in they went: and whilst the brides sipped, he
quaffed, and pressed the others to do likewise.

At length Jabez, who had been brought up temperately, cried out
they would be too late—Parson Brookes had been gone into the church
half-an-hour.

There was a general rush from the room, and in the scramble to get
first the party got separated; Matthew pulling his daughter along and
leaving the bridegroom to follow. They elbowed their way into the
church, and reached the choir just as Joshua pronounced the benediction
over some twenty couples closely packed around the altar. Then there
was a jostle and a scramble for “first kisses,” amidst which rose the
rough voice of the chaplain.

“Now clear out, clear out! Do your kissing outside. There are other
folks waiting to be wed. Do you think I want to be kept here all day
tying up fools?”

That instalment of the married having been hustled away to sign
the church books, with their attendant witnesses, Joshua called out
impatiently to the waiting couples, amongst which were Bess and Tom.

“Come, come! How long do you mean to keep me standing here? Do you
intend to be married or not? Oh, it’s thee, is it? [to Bess] Well,
thah’s waited long enough.—See that you make her a good husband [to
Tom]. Kneel down here,” and he placed them, not roughly, almost in the
centre of the altar, pulling others to their knees beside them, with
scant ceremony.

“What do _you_ want here?” in his harshest tones he asked a very
youthful-looking couple.

“To be wed,” was the prompt answer of the young man.

“Ugh!” grunted the Parson, “what’s the world coming to? I used to marry
men and women—now I marry children! Here, you silly babies, take your
places.”

Another file of candidates for matrimony being ranged (after some
pushing and pulling) in pairs around the altar, Joshua took his book
and the service began.

So long as it was general, all went tolerably smoothly—women and men
alike were too bashful and confused to know much what was said, or what
they responded, and certainly they rarely looked in each other’s faces.
At length there was a slight stir and a whispering from the quarter
where Matt Cooper stood beside his daughter.

“Silence there!” roared Joshua, in a voice which set a row of hearts in
a flutter, and there _was_ silence.

But he had come to the troth-plight, and again the same commotion was
apparent as he approached the Coopers.

“What’s wrong here?” he demanded, pausing before Martha, who was all in
a tremble.

“Moi lass is waitin’ fur her mon,” answered Matthew from behind.

“Ugh! I can’t wait for laggards.—Here, you, [addressing Tom Hulme,]
answer for him.—What’s his name?” [to Martha].

“Nathaniel,” she faltered.

“I, Nathaniel, take thee, Martha, to be my——” he went on, insisting on
the response of Tom, who looked aghast at the prospect of marrying the
wrong woman, and being told “to pair as they went out,” as Joshua had
summarily adjusted a like mistake heretofore; or what was worse, of
being saddled with two wives.

On imperturbable Joshua went with the ceremony, bent on a marriage by
proxy. His experience having taught him that women of the working class
as a rule took charge of their wedding-rings, he asked Martha for hers,
which was duly produced, and without further ado he directed Tom Hulme
to place it on Martha’s finger, as he had previously put one on Bess’s,
and with the same formula.

They had got as far as “With this ring I thee wed,” when the missing
bridegroom came in hot haste through the side door into the chancel,
closely followed by Jabez, who had been in quest of him.

He was flushed with ale and excitement, but was clear-headed enough to
perceive what was going forward, and to the chaplain’s chagrin, plucked
the young woman back from the altar and his proxy, and the ring rolled
to the ground.

Then ensued an altercation between the butcher and Joshua Brookes,
the latter insisting that what was good enough for princes might be
good enough for him, and refusing to go over the ceremony again. But
an apparitor drew the tardy bridegroom aside, and whispered to him a
few mollifying words, whilst Joshua concluded the ceremonial, and then
hurried from the altar with hardly a look at either Jabez or Simon as
he passed out of the chancel, chafed and angry. Another clergyman took
his place, and in the next group Nat Bradshaw and the half-married
Martha took theirs. The lost ring had a substitute provided by the
clerk for such emergencies; and this time they were as surely married
as Bess and Tom had been.

Jabez had found the truant bridegroom at the “Ring-o’-Bells,” oblivious
of the flight of time, or of his party. The story having got wind,
there was a general rush in their direction.

“Here’s th’ mon wur too late to be wed!”—“Tak’ care thi woife hasna two
husbants!”—“Hoo’s getten two husbants o’ready!”—“See thah’s tied oop
gradely, lass!”—“Thah’rt a pratty fellow!” and much more which might
have provoked a man less good-humoured in his cups.

As it was the new brides clung to their husbands, half afraid of those
noisy demonstrations, and were not sorry to get clear of the crowd, and
thread their way to Ancoats Lane, where the thriving butcher, assisted
by Mrs. Ashton, Mrs. Clowes, and Mrs. Clough, had prepared a dinner
which bore no proportion to the “short commons” of every-day fare.



CHAPTER THE NINETEENTH.

PETERLOO.


People had been naturally sanguine that the conclusion of peace would
inaugurate prosperity, that commerce would flourish with the flourish
of pens on the parchments of a treaty. But the war had been of too long
continuance, too universal, too destructive of life and property and
crops. When grounds lie untilled for years: when swords reap harvests
that should have been left for the sickle; when cattle are slaughtered
wholesale for unproductive soldiery, or for lack of provender; when
orchards and vineyards which have taken years to mature are given to
the flames, there can be no sudden re-adjustment of commercial matters.
Food products are the staple of trade, which is only a system of
exchange facilitated by coin and paper.

What could a food-producing continent, down-trod by the iron hoof of
war, have to offer in exchange for our textile fabrics and hardware?

Trade could not revive, until there was food to sustain it. Yet the
mass of the people in 1816, still further impoverished by a deficient
home harvest, imputed the evil to defective legislation, and the
exclusion of foreign corn save at famine prices; and discontent became
universal.

Strangely enough, the agricultural districts which the Corn Laws were
supposed to protect, were the first to cry out against them, and
to break out into riot—not Manchester, Oldham, Nottingham, and the
manufacturing centres.

This year closed on a popular demand for Parliamentary reform, but not
a riotous one. Sunday schools had created readers on humble hearths,
and William Cobbett supplied them with books and pamphlets bearing on
their own rights and wrongs. They were read with avidity, and he became
a power. He counselled peaceful persistence, not armed resistance.
Hampden Clubs were formed all over the country, in which the political
questions of the day were discussed with as much freedom as stringent
law permitted. Public speakers and poets, of whom Samuel Bamford was
one, arose from the ranks of the working classes; and the men banded
together under such leadership called themselves Radical Reformers, a
title which soon degenerated into Radicals.

The members of these rapidly-spreading clubs subscribed a penny a week
each. Delegates were sent to meet and debate together; and on the
4th November, 1816, a large meeting was held in St. Peter’s Field,
Manchester (strangely enough, the site of the present Free Trade Hall),
“to take into consideration the distressed state of the country.”

Other meetings were held by the Reformers and their delegates;
and on the 13th January, 1817, their political opponents held a
counter-meeting, to consider the “necessity of adopting measures for
the maintenance of the public peace;” for certainly the meeting of
large masses of disaffected people, however peacefully disposed in the
outset, and individually, becomes threatening in the aggregate. No one
cares much for a grain of gunpowder; but mass the grains into pounds,
and the pounds into tons, and there is certainly need of precaution in
dealing with it.

Amongst the precautionary measures deemed necessary for the protection
of the peace, and the suppression of seditious meetings, were the
suspension of the Habeas Corpus Act, and the enrolment of the
Manchester and Cheshire Yeomanry Cavalry, under the command of Sir T.
J. Trafford; Laurence Aspinal, Ben Travis, and John Walmsley joining
the corps.

On the 24th of March—since known as Blanket Monday—a large number of
men assembled in St. Peter’s Field, with blankets upon their shoulders,
with the openly-expressed design of walking to London, to lay their
grievances before George, the Prince Regent, in person. The blankets
were intended for coverlets on the wayside beds Mother Earth alone
would spread for them. The meeting was dispersed by military, the
newly-formed Yeomanry distinguishing themselves by trapping a number
of the Blanketeers who had prematurely set out, and who had not got
farther than Stockport.

This was the signal for widespread alarm, and for Joseph Nadin to prove
his discrimination and vigilance by scenting out imaginary plots,
and arresting suspected plotters, whom he tied together, handcuffed,
ill-used, and hauled to prison, or before magistrates (whether for
acquital or conviction), for little other reason than the dangerous
power given by the suspension of the Habeas Corpus. He was a big,
blustering, overbearing fellow, with a large grizzled head, closely set
on strong broad shoulders, with overhanging brows drawn close, and a
sallow skin; and his officious zeal in arresting such persons as Samuel
Bamford the weaver-poet, Thomas Walker, and the amateur actors he laid
hands on at a public house in Ancoats-lane, laying to their charge
plots which had their origin in his own brain, did more to embitter the
people against their rulers than those dust-blinded rulers suspected.

The Radical agitation reached its climax in 1819, when our friend Jabez
was a well-formed, well-favoured young man of twenty, high in the
estimation of his master and mistress. Popular rights had found a fresh
champion in Henry Hunt, the son of a well-descended Wiltshire yeoman, a
man of gentlemanlike bearing and attire, agreeable features mobile in
expression, and dull grey eyes which lit like fiery stars when in the
fervour of his speech his soul shone out of them.

“Orator Hunt,” as he was ironically dubbed by those who loved him not,
was the very man to move the people as he himself was moved; his energy
and fervid eloquence carried his hearers with him, and as he was wont
to lash himself to a fury which streaked his pale eyes with blood,
and forced them forward in their sockets, no wonder the Manchester
magnates were afraid of his influence on the multitude, or that the
Prince Regent should issue a proclamation against seditious meetings
and writings, or the military drilling of the populace, then carried on
with so fervid an orator to inflame them.

When Henry Hunt made a public entry into Manchester, and attended the
theatre the same evening, a disturbance ensued, and he was expelled,
and the next evening the theatre was closed, to preserve peace. Then a
Watch-and-Ward, composed of the chief inhabitants, was established; a
meeting called by the Radicals was prohibited; but that did not deter
the calling of another on St. Peter’s Field, on the 16th of August,
when a couple of large wagons were boarded over to serve as temporary
hustings, whence Orator Hunt from the midst of his friends might
address the assembled multitude.

Augusta Ashton had just passed her fifteenth birthday. She was slim,
graceful, and tall beyond her age, and was surpassing lovely. She was
still under Mrs. Broadbent’s care, and went to school that morning as
usual, other meetings having passed off quietly, and no apprehension
of disorder being entertained until long after nine o’clock.

About that hour the people began to assemble from all quarters on the
open ground near St. Peter’s Church—not bloodthirsty roughs, but men,
women, and children, drawn thither for a sight of a holiday spectacle.
True, of the collective eighty thousand, though there were many
thousands of earnest, thinking men who went to grapple with important
questions, yet no such mighty gathering could be without its leaven of
savagery and mischief.

But those who went from the mills and the workshops, the hills and the
valleys around Manchester, walking in procession, with bugles playing
and gay banners flying, though they might look haggard, pinched and
careworn, made no attempt to look deplorable, or excite compassion.
They wore their Sunday suits and clean neckties; and by the side of
fustian and corduroy walked the coloured prints and stuffs of wives and
sweethearts, who went as for a gala-day, to break the dull monotony of
their lives, and to serve as a guarantee of peaceable intention.

Such at least was the main body, marshalled in Middleton by stalwart,
stout hearted Samuel Bamford, which passed in marching order, five
abreast, down Newton Lane, through Oldham Street, skirted the Infirmary
Gardens, and along Mosley Street, each leader with a sprig of peaceful
laurel in his hat. Women and little ones preceded them, or ran on the
footway, singing, dancing, shouting gleefully in the bright sunshine,
as at any other pageant to which the music of the bugle gave life and
spirit, and waving flags gave colour.

Such too were the bands which, with banners and music, fell in with
them on their route, and together parted the dense multitude as a
wedge, on their way to the decorated platform. Thence Samuel Bamford
observed that other leaders had been less temperate. There were to
be seen black banners and placards inscribed with seditious mottoes
and emblems: caps of liberty, skull and crossbones, “Bread or Blood,”
“Liberty or Death,” “Equal Representation or Death;” this last with an
obverse of clasped hands and heart, and the one word “Love,” but all of
the same funereal black and white.

But ere he could well note or deplore this, the scattered bands struck
up “God save the King,” and “Rule, Britannia,” deafening shouts rent
the air, and Henry Hunt, drawn in an open barouche by white horses,
made his way slowly to the hustings amidst the enthusiastic cheering
of the multitude. A Mrs. Fildes, arrayed in white, with a cap of
liberty on her head, and a red cap borne on a pole before her, sat on
the box-seat. It is said she had been hoisted there from the crowd. Be
this as it may, she paid dearly for her temerity before the day was out.

Barely had Henry Hunt ascended the platform, taken off his white hat,
and begun to address his attentive auditory, when there was a startling
cry, “The soldiers are upon us!” and the 15th Hussars, galloping round
a corner, came with their spare jackets flying loose, their sabres
drawn, and threw themselves men and horse, upon the closely-packed
mass, without a note of warning. All had been preconcerted,
pre-arranged.

From the early morning, magistrates had been sitting in conclave at the
“Star Inn,” and there Hugh Birley, a cotton-spinner, was said to have
regaled too freely the officers and men of his yeomanry corps, so soon
to be let loose on the “swinish multitude,” as they called them.

A cordon of military and yeomanry had been drawn round St. Peter’s
Field, like a horde of wolves round a flock of sheep. The boroughreeve
and other magistrates issued their orders from a house at the corner
of Mount Street, which overlooked the scene; and thence (not from a
central position, where he could be properly seen and heard) a clerical
magistrate read the Riot Act from a window in an inaudible voice.

Then Nadin, the cowardly bully, having a warrant to apprehend the
ringleaders—although he had a line of constables thence to the
hustings,—declared he _dared_ not serve it without the support of the
military.

His plea was heard; and thus through the blindness, the incapacity, the
cowardice, or the self-importance of this one man, soldiery hardened
in the battle-field, yeomanry fired with drink, were let loose like
barbarians on a closely-wedged mass of unarmed people, and one of the
most atrocious massacres in history was the result.

Amid the shouts and shrieks of men and women, cries of “Shame! shame!”
“Break! break!” “They are killing them in front!” “Break! break!”
hussars, infantry, yeomanry rushed on the defenceless people. They
were sabred, stabbed, shot, pressed down, trampled down by horse and
infantry; and in less than ten minutes, the actual field was cleared
of all but mounds of dead and dying, severed limbs, torn garments,
pools of blood, pawing steeds and panting heroes(?). Men and maidens,
mothers and babes, had been butchered by their own countrymen for no
crime.

Hunt had been taken, Bamford had escaped—to be arrested afterwards—and
Mrs. Fildes, hanging suspended by a nail in the platform which had
caught her white dress, was slashed across her exposed body by one of
the brave cavalry.

But the butchery and the panic had spread from the deserted Aceldama
over the whole town; and the roar of cannon began to add its thunder
to the terrors of the day. As the first shrieking fugitives rushed
for their lives down Mosley Street, with the Manchester and Cheshire
Yeomanry in swift pursuit, Mrs. Ashton, for the first time alarmed for
the safety of Augusta, hurried through the warehouse in search of Mr.
Ashton, who was nowhere to be found. On the stairs she met Jabez in a
state of equal excitement.

“Miss Augusta! Is she at school? Had I not better——”

“Oh, yes! Run! run!” cried the mother, anticipating him. “Go through
the back streets, and take her to her aunt’s. It is not safe to bring
her home.”

He was gone before she concluded. (His master’s daughter was the
very light of his young eyes). From Back Mosley Street he tore down
Rook Street and Meal Street, into Fountain Street, across Market
Street—already in a ferment—and onward down High Street without a pause.

By good fortune he met the young girl and a school-fellow, on their
usual homeward route, at the corner of Church Street, almost afraid to
proceed, the distant firing had so scared them.

“This way, this way, Miss Ashton!” was his impetuous cry, as he hurried
them from the main thoroughfare (into which a stream of terror-stricken
people was flowing), through by-streets, and a long entry to the back
door of Mr. Chadwick’s house, which they found unfastened; and then he
thanked God in his heart of hearts that she at least was safe.

Upstairs rushed Augusta, followed by her friend, in search of her
aunt and cousin, whom she found in the drawing-room in a state of the
greatest trepidation and alarm.

Dolly, a stout woman-servant, had gone to Fountain Street, as was
her custom, to assist her paralysed master home to dinner. From the
windows they had seen men, women, and children flying along, hatless,
bonnetless, shoeless, their clothes rent, their faces livid and
ghastly, cut and bleeding, shrieking in pain and terror as they ran
or dropped in the path of pursuing troopers; and their hearts throbbed
wildly with affright as they pictured that helpless old man caught in
that whirlpool of horror and destruction with only a woman’s arm to
protect him.

“Jabez will go and meet them,” cried Augusta; “he is below!”

“Jabez!” exclaimed Ellen, starting to her feet, her white face flushed
for a brief moment. “Oh, no!”

But without waiting to hear her cousin’s exclamation, or to note her
change of colour, Augusta had run downstairs to Jabez, waiting in the
long kitchen, and communicated her aunt’s fears to him.

Personal danger was unthought of when Augusta Ashton pointed to
needful service. The lobby door closed after him with a bang before
she had well explained her wishes; and when Augusta re-appeared in the
drawing-room, Ellen Chadwick’s head was stretched from the window,
watching the sturdy young man stem the on-rushing tide of humanity—the
only one in all that crowd with his face turned towards the danger from
which the rest fled in desperation.

The sights and sounds that met her eyes and ears were terrible: gashed
faces and maimed limbs; appeals and imprecations mingled with the roar
of a surging crowd; the dropping fire of musketry; the coarse shouts of
the yeomanry, drunk with wine and blood!

As her fearful eyes followed Jabez, a man rushed past whose hand had
been chopped off at the wrist. With the remaining hand he held his hat
to catch the vital stream which gushed from the bleeding stump; and as
he ran, he cried, “Blood for blood! blood for blood!” in a tone which
made her shudder.

Faint and sick, she drew back her head; but open apprehension for her
dear father, and secret fear for the apprentice who had gone so readily
to pilot him through that surging human sea, caused her to look forth
once more. Augusta and her friend, with blanched cheeks and lips, were
also at the window, fascinated as it were with that which chilled them.

Jabez turned the corner into Piccadilly, where one or two good houses
had been converted into shops without lowering the floors, or removing
the original palisades, which enclosed bold flights of steps leading
to doors with good shop-windows on each side. A confectioner of some
standing named Mabbott occupied the second of these. He and his
neighbour were hurriedly putting up their shutters as Jabez, crushing
his way through the thickening crowd, saw Molly and Mr. Chadwick jammed
up against the palisades, a young mounted yeomanry officer, in all his
pride of blue and silver, brandishing his sabre, urging his unwilling
steed upon them, and shouting—

“Move on, you rebels, move on! or I’ll cut you down!”

Strong of nerve and will, Jabez thrust the impending throng aside, and
grasped the horse’s reins to force it back, crying as he did so—

“Shame, you coward! to attack a woman and a paralysed man!”

“Come in here, quick, Mr. Chadwick!” cried Mr. Mabbott at that instant,
opening his closed gate and drawing the feeble gentleman and his
attendant within, as the sabre, raised either to terrify or strike
the old man, came down on the outstretched arm of Jabez, gashing it
frightfully.

Another of the corps riding past, with his eyes full upon them, stopped
his horse at the gallop as if to interpose, but he was too late.

“My God! Aspinall, what have you done?” he exclaimed, and throwing his
own reins over the palisades, he dismounted hastily, caught at Jabez,
who had staggered back, and drew him too within the iron screen, and
helped him also into the confectioner’s, as the other, with a derisive
laugh which ill-became his handsome face, turned at a hand-gallop up
Oldham Street, where he overtook a _confrere_, and with him sneered at
“that soft-hearted Ben Travis.”

Ellen and Augusta had not lost sight of Jabez many minutes when two of
the Manchester Yeomanry, their dripping sabres flashing in the August
sun, wheeled their panting chargers round, and rode (heedless of the
shrinking wretches beneath their hoofs) across the footway, and made
the brute beasts rear and plunge against the area-rails.

“Shut your windows, or we’ll fire upon you!” they shouted.

Nothing daunted, Ellen called back indignantly—

“John Walmsley, I’m ashamed of you!”

Not sober enough to distinguish friends from foes, again the pair
launched their threat, “Shut the window, or we fire!” and Ellen,
seeing pistols advanced, drew the window down, Mrs. Chadwick in much
trepidation closing the other.

“Who was that handsome officer with John?” asked Augusta, as they drew
back, “he’s a perfect Adonis.” (Augusta dipped surreptitiously into
Mrs. Edge’s novels at times, and a handsome man in uniform was, of
course, a hero in her eyes).

“Oh, Augusta, how can you talk of handsome officers at such a fearful
time?” remonstrated Ellen. “I think them hideous, every one!”

“But who is he? Do you know him?” she asked, even through the tears
drawn by the scenes she beheld.

“Oh, yes; know him? yes. He’s a friend of John Walmsley. He’s too wild
to please either Charlotte or me!—Oh, mother! I do wish father had come
home!” and Ellen turned a worried look towards Mrs. Chadwick, whose
rigid face and clasped hands betrayed the anxiety which kept her silent.

Augusta, though not naturally void of feeling, longed to know more of
the handsome yeomanry officer who had so captivated her young fancy;
but that was not the season for such inquiries, and she was conscious
of it.

“Hark! what is that?” burst from Mrs. Chadwick, some half-hour later,
as the sound of feet was heard from below; and Ellen, rushing to the
stairs, came back followed by her father leaning on the arm of a big
muscular man, in the blue and silver uniform of the yeomanry cavalry,
a red cord down his pantaloons, hessian boots, and, to make assurance
sure, M.Y.C. upon the shako which his height compelled him to doff ere
he entered the doorway.

“Where is Jabez Clegg?” faltered Ellen, as she pressed to her father’s
side, led him to his chair, and placed his cushions to his liking,
Augusta bringing a buffet on which to rest his foot.

The stalwart young fellow’s eyes followed the attentive daughter, as he
answered—

“We have left Jabez Clegg at Mr. Mabbott’s, Miss Chadwick,” with an
inclination of his head. “He was afraid you would be anxious for your
father’s safety, and I offered to see Mr. Chadwick home in his stead.”

Ellen’s black eyes expanded questioningly, and Mrs. Chadwick’s mild
voice, in accents indicative of some fear, asked—

“I hope not of necessity, sir?”

“Well, yes, madam; and I must hasten back; he has received a sabre-cut
on—— Eh, dear!”

Ben Travis, for he it was, darted forward to catch Ellen Chadwick,
just as he had previously caught Jabez at Mabbott’s gate:—Aspinall’s
sabre had wounded two instead of one—Ellen Chadwick, who that day had
seen what sabre-cuts meant, had fainted. Ben Travis bore her to the
sofa, Mr. Chadwick pulled the bell-rope, Augusta ran for water, Mrs.
Chadwick called for vinegar and burnt feathers, and in the midst of the
commotion Mr. Ashton burst into the room in a state of excitement very
foreign to his nature, which was tolerably easy-going.

“Thank God, Augusta, you are here!” he exclaimed. “Your mother is
almost distracted about you—Why, what is the matter with Ellen? The
whole world seems gone mad to-day—or hell has set its demons loose.
I’ve just seen our friend Captain Hindley’s horse take fright in Mosley
Street at the firing, and dash with him against those half-built houses
at the corner of Tib Street. He was pitched off amongst the bricks and
scaffolding, and the horse dropped. Old Simon Clegg happened to be
there, and he helped me and another to raise Hindley, who had fared
better than his horse, for it was stone-dead, and he is only badly
hurt.”

He had gone on talking, though hardly anyone had listened to him.
Ellen’s fainting fit engrossed feminine attention, and the yeoman,
seeing her revive, was saying to Mr. Chadwick, “You will excuse me now,
sir. I must look after our poor friend Jabez.”

“Eh what! Jabez? You don’t mean to say anything has happened to Jabez
Clegg?” exclaimed Mr. Ashton, pausing in the act of drawing forth his
snuff-box.

Travis was gone, but Mr. Chadwick, whose tongue now was none of the
readiest, stammered out—

“Yes, William, w-we le-ft him at Mab-bott the confectioner’s. In
try-ying to-o save me he got b-badly w-wounded. I’m v-very s-sorry, for
he is a n-noble y-young man.”

“The wretches! I’d almost as soon they’d wounded me! Stay here,
Augusta;” and with that Mr. Ashton was off after Ben Travis. The
main streets were unsafe, so he also took the back way, and across
Back-Piccadilly to Mr. Mabbott’s, with a celerity scarcely to have been
expected, for he was not a young man. But his apprentice had won upon
him not only by his integrity and business qualifications, but by his
manifest interest in the family he served, especially the daughter.
Let me not be misunderstood. Augusta was the cynosure of Mr. Ashton’s
eyes; the homage of the apprentice to the school-girl, he estimated as
the homage of an apprentice merely, and was gratified thereby, but his
imagination never travelled beyond.

He found Jabez on a chintz-covered couch in Mr. Mabbott’s sitting-room,
his arm bound tightly with a towel, through which the blood would force
its way. He was pale and exhausted from excessive hæmorrhage, but
seemed more concerned about the fate of the multitude outside than for
his own.

Ben Travis, discovering that no one had dared to venture in quest of
a doctor, threw himself across his horse, which he found where he had
left it, and was off up Mosley Street and thence back to Piccadilly,
intent on bringing either Dr. Hull or Dr. Hardie. His uniform was a
protection, and so the doctors told him; Dr. Hardie plainly saying that
black cloth was not plate-armour, and that his friend, whosoever he
might be, must wait until the tumult had somewhat subsided.

But Jabez was only a few hours without attention. There were hundreds
wounded that day, who had to skulk into holes and corners to hide
themselves and their agony as best they might, afraid of seeking
surgical aid, lest Nadin and his myrmidons should pounce upon them, and
haul them to prison as rebels.



CHAPTER THE TWENTIETH[18]

ACTION AND RE-ACTION.


The August sun had looked down in its noontide splendour when the
events I have attempted to describe took place; but the tide of terror
and destruction swept beyond the limits I have covered, and after
the first fierce onslaught, as if the carnage had been insufficient,
artillery went rattling and thundering through the streets, to awe the
peaceful and terrified inhabitants. As the flying crowd, dispersing,
left bare St. Peter’s Field, pressing outward and onwards through all
accessible ramifications, the main thoroughfares thinned, and the scene
of action took a wider radius.

Still the gallant hussars and yeomanry went prancing through these
thoroughfares, dashing hither and thither, slashing at stragglers,
shouting to the rebels, and to each other, to “clear the way”; driving
curious and anxious spectators from doors and windows, and firing at
refractory outstretched heads.

To clear the streets more effectually, cannon were planted at the
entrances of the leading outlets from the town, and, as if that were
not enough, the artillery had orders to fire.

At New Cross two of these guns (which went rattling up Oldham
Street, to the dismay of Augusta and the Chadwicks, as well as their
neighbours) were posted, one with its hard iron mouth directed up
Newton Lane, the other set to sweep Ancoats Lane, not then so wide as
at present.

Nathaniel Bradshaw’s butcher’s shop was situated at the narrowest part
of Ancoats Lane, a little beyond the canal bridge. The shutters had
been closed precipitately on the first alarm, but Martha Bradshaw and
her young brother Matthew opened the window of the room above, and had
their heads stretched out to watch and question the white-faced people
scurrying past in disorder, when Matt Cooper, who lived with his
genial son-in-law, came hurriedly home for dinner. His route from the
tannery lay in a straight line up Miller’s Lane, past Shude Hill Pits,
and the New Cross, into Ancoats Lane, which he crossed the Market to
reach only just before the cannon lumbered up.

His clogs had rattled as swiftly over the pavement as his stiffening,
hide-bound, long legs would carry them, and observing the heads of
Martha and Matthew advanced from the window he waved his hand in
gesticulation for them to withdraw from a post so fraught with peril.
But youth is wilful, and woman curious. They either did not understand,
or did not heed his warning. They did not know all he had seen at New
Cross, or how narrow an escape he had had from Aspinall’s flashing
sabre.

“Do goo in, childer!” he cried, as he drew near, “if yo’ wantn to kep
the yeads on yo’r shoulders. Wenches an’ lads shouldna look on sich
soights.”

“Han yo’ seen Nat?” the wife asked, anxiously.

“Nawe.”

“He’s gone t’ see what o’ th’ mob an’ feightin’s abeawt. Aw wish he wur
whoam.”

Matt wished the same, but went in at the unfastened door, and passed
on to the room beyond, where he found the untended lobscouse boiling
over into the fire. He took the lid off the pot; then went to the
stair-foot, and called “Martha!”

There being no answer, he strode back through the shop, saying as he
went—

“Dang it, hoo’ll not be content till hoo’s hurt!”

He stepped out on the rough pavement, and, looking up, called out—

“Do put yo’r yeads in; yo’ll——”

A musket-shot, splintering a corner of the stone window-sill on which
they leaned, was more effective than his adjuration. The cannon boomed
simultaneously—a shriek recalled the hastily-withdrawn heads; and
there, on the rough sun-baked ground before their eyes, lay weltering
in blood, a doubled-up form, which a minute before had been their
father, Matt Cooper, the tanner, the preserver of Jabez, the friend of
Simon and Bess.

This harrowing event was the last of the painful incidents of that
fatal day coming within the scope of this history, which isolated as
they are, the writer knows to be true, even though they may not be
chronicled elsewhere.

The streets grew silent and deserted, save by the military and medical
men, as the day and the night advanced: but within the houses of poor
and rich there were loud complaints and groans, and murmurings, which
did not sink to silence with the day that called them forth.

The town was, as it were, in a state of siege: and men of business,
whether Tories or Radicals, alike felt the stoppage of trade and
commerce in their pockets, whether they felt the cruelty and injustice
to the injured in their hearts or not.

But chiefly those who had friends wounded by design or accident in the
_melee_ were loud in their denunciation of the whole proceedings; and
of these neither Mr. Chadwick nor Mr. Ashton was the least prominent,
even though the one was paralysed, and they were of contrary shades of
politics, the former being what he himself called “a staunch and true
out-and-out Tory,” the latter having a leaning towards Liberal—not to
say Radical—opinions, and at county elections voting with the Whigs.

The stiff “Church and King” man, whose sons had distinguished
themselves in the Army and Navy, and whose son-in-law, Walmsley, might
also be said to have distinguished himself in the loyal Manchester
Yeomanry—he who had been a member of John Shaw’s Club in the Market
Place, and called for his P or his Q bowl of punch even before the
aroma of Jacobinism ceased to flavour the delectable compound, and
while yet John Shaw himself lived to draw his silver spoon from its
particular pocket to concoct the same, and (inexorable autocrat that
he was) could crack his whip in his poky bar-parlour in the ears of
even noble customers who lingered after his imperative “Eight o’clock
gentlemen; eight o’clock!” or summon his sturdy factotum, Molly, with
mop and pail, to drive thence with wetted feet those whom the whip had
failed to influence—he who had stuck to the club even after John Shaw,
Molly, and the punch-house itself had gone to the dust—he, Charles
Chadwick, whose Toryism had grown with his growth, was foremost in
condemning the proceedings of Peterloo.

In his own person he had witnessed how the actual breakers of the
peace were those commissioned to preserve it. In the wanton attack on
himself, an unarmed, defenceless, disabled old man, he recognised the
general characteristics of the whole affair, and entered his protest
against so lawless an exposition of the law. He was himself a peaceable
man, a loyal subject, going quietly about his own business when Jabez
intercepted to his own hurt, the sabre destined for his grey head.
Matthew Cooper, his tenant’s father-in-law, was as peaceable and
well-disposed; and if so, might not the bulk of the so-called rebels
have been the same? In his gratitude to Jabez he denounced the mounted
yeoman who had sabred him as “a drunken, blood-thirsty miscreant,”
though in the hurry, excitement, and agitation attending his own
withdrawal from the press by Mr. Mabbott, he had failed to identify his
pursuer with John Walmsley’s dashing friend, and the exclamation of Ben
Travis had not reached his ear in the confusion.

Easy-going Mr. Ashton also seemed transformed by the event. He had
certainly lost the valuable services of his apprentice for some time to
come; but that was the very least ingredient in the cup of his wrath.
By faithful intelligent service; by persevering industry, by a thousand
little actions which had shown his interest in his employers, and his
devotion to his old friends, Jabez had won a place in his master’s
esteem and affection no other apprentice of any grade had ever attained.

And now that Jabez had risked the dangers of the soldier-ridden
street to bear his beloved daughter to a place of safety, and had
braved the storm of foot and horse, and fire and steel, to rescue his
brother-in-law by endangering his own life or limbs, his admiration and
gratitude rose to their highest, and in proportion his denunciation
of an outrage which called for such a sacrifice was strong and
vehement—all the more that he sympathised with the objects of the
meeting.

When he and Simon Clegg (who had been drawn to the scene in his
dinner-hour with others, like moths to a candle) picked up his cavalry
friend, Robert Hindley, from amongst the building materials, and
disengaged him from his dead horse, he could not refrain from telling
the disabled warrior, with all a friend’s frankness, that “it served
him right!”

Open expression of private opinion on the conduct of rulers was
dangerous at that period, as may be supposed; but private opinion
became public opinion, too strong and too universal to be put in
fetters.

Mr. Tyas, the _Times_ reporter, had been taken prisoner on the
hustings, and it was imagined that only a one-sided account—forwarded
by the magistracy in justification of their conduct—would reach London.
But other intelligent reporters were at large, the garbled statements
sent to the Government press were confuted by the truth-telling
narratives of Messrs. Archibald Prentice and John Edward Taylor, which
appeared the following day, and roused the indignation of the realm.
These statements being more than substantiated by the _Times_ reporter
on his liberation, national indignation rose to a ferment.

This alarmed the Manchester magistrates; a meeting was hurriedly
arranged to take place on Thursday, the 19th (the third day from
Peterloo), at the Police Station; thence adjourned to the “Star Inn”
in Deansgate; and, as though the meeting had been a public one,
resolutions were passed thanking magistrates and soldiers for their
services on the previous Monday.

Then Manchester rose, as it were, _en masse_, to vindicate its own
honour, and reject participation in a disgraceful deed.

“A declaration,” says one historian, “was issued, protesting against
the ‘Star Inn’ resolutions, which in the course of two or three days
received close upon five thousand signatures,” in obtaining which
none were more active than Mr. Ashton and (despite his paralysis) Mr.
Chadwick. Old Mrs. Clowes talked her customers into signing, and Parson
Brookes was not idle. Mr. William Clough, whose old servant Matthew
Cooper had been shot down at his own door, gave the tanners a holiday,
that they might influence their fellows; and Simon Clegg, Tom Hulme,
and Nathaniel Bradshaw seemed ubiquitous, they went to work with such
determined zeal. _They_ did not feel “thankful” to the magistrates for
the blood shed on Peterloo Monday.

Neither did the bulk of the inhabitants: and an energetic protest
against the proceedings and representations of the magistracy was the
result.

To counteract this, the Prince Regent, through his mouth-piece Lord
Sidmouth, sent his thanks to the magistrates and the military leaders
for “their prompt, decisive, and efficient measures.” But this, instead
of calming, lashed the public mind to frenzy. Meetings to remonstrate
with the Regent and to petition for inquiry were held in all the large
towns, Sir Francis Burdett presiding at one held in Westminster.

Subscriptions were also got up for the relief of such wounded
and disabled persons as had crept into holes and corners to hide
themselves and their wounds from Nadin and his constabulary; and
here, too, William Ashton and William Clough worked hand-in-hand to
bring relief to sufferers not in the Infirmary; and Parson Brookes,
to the disgust of some of his clerical brethren, lent his aid in
ferreting out the miserables, if he did not ostentatiously flourish
his subscription in their service; and I rather think a certain “J.S.”
in the subscription-list represented the mite of the Grammar School
head-master, but I could not take an affidavit on the subject. But
when the wounded, as far as ascertained, amounted to six-hundred
irrespective of the killed, subscriptions had need to be many and ample.

Another token of the change in public sentiment was shown in the
satires and pasquinades which appeared on the walls, or were
distributed from hand to hand. Previously to Peterloo a set of
anonymous verses in ridicule of the popular leader had been
distributed. They began and were headed as follows:—


ORATOR HUNT.

I.

  Blithe Harry Hunt was an orator bold—
      Talked away bravely and blunt;
  And Rome in her glory, and Athens of old,
  With all their loud talkers, of whom we are told,
      Couldn’t match Orator Hunt!

II.

  Blithe Harry Hunt was a sightly man—
      Something ’twixt giant and runt:
  His paunch was a large one, his visage was wan,
  And to hear his long speeches vast multitudes ran.
      O rare Orator Hunt!

       *       *       *       *       *

VI.

  Orator Hunt was the man for a riot—
      Bully in language and front—
  And thought when a nation had troubles to sigh at,
  ’Twas quite unbecoming to sit cool and quiet.
      O rare Orator Hunt!

       *       *       *       *       *

VIII.

  How Orator Hunt’s many speeches will close—
      Tedious, bombastic, and blunt—
  In a _halter_ or _diadem_, God only knows:
  The sequel might well an arch-conjurer pose.
      O rare Orator Hunt!

Sufficient has been given to show the nature of the lampoon without
repeating its scurrility. The following, of which we only quote the two
first stanzas, is of pretty much the same order, though emanating from
the other side, and after terrible provocation had been given:—

 THE RENOWNED ACHIEVEMENTS OF PETERLOO,

 ON THE GLORIOUS 16TH OF AUGUST, 1819.

 BY SIR HUGO BURLO FURIOSO DI MULO SPINNISSIMO, BART., M.Y.C. AND
 A.S.S.

 _The music by the celebrated_ DR. HORSEFOOD; _to be had at
 the “Cat and Bagpipes,” St. Mary’s Gate, Manchester_.


 RECITATIVE.

  When fell sedition’s stalking through the land,
  It then behoves each patriotic band
      OF NOBLE-MINDED YEOMAN CAVALIERS
  To sally forth and rush upon the mob,
  And execute the MAGISTERIAL JOB
      Of cutting off the ragamuffins’ ears.


 ARIA BRAVURA.

 =_Forte._=

  How valiantly we met that crew
  Of infants, men and women too
  Upon the plain of Peterloo:
  And gloriously did hack and hew
      The d——d reforming gang.
  Our swords were sharp, you may suppose:
  Some lost their ears—some lost a nose;
  Our horses trod upon their toes
  Ere they could run t’ escape our blows:
      With shouts the welkin rang.

 =_Andante._=

  So keen were we to rout these swine,
  Whole shoals of constables in line
  We galloped o’er in style so fine,
  By orders of the SAPIENT NINE—
      First friends, then foes, laid flat.
  By Richardson’s best grinding skill
  Our blades were set with right good will,
  That we these rogues might bleed or kill,
  And “give them of Reform their fill!”
      And what d’ye think of that?

And so on the satire ran, in mock-bravura style, through the whole
course of _piano_, _sotto voce_, _pianissima-mento_, and _con
baldanza_, with foot-notes to strengthen or elucidate the text. And
that the writer remained undiscovered and unprosecuted spoke loudly for
the re-action which had taken place in men’s minds.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-FIRST.

WOUNDED.


At the extreme end of Mr. Mabbott’s long double-countered shop was an
expansive archway, closed in general by folding doors, through which
entrance was afforded to a narrow sitting-room, the length of which
was just by so much less than the width of the shop as was required
for a passage and staircase. Once a year the open archway revealed a
shimmering mass of snowy sugar-work, the towers and turrets of a castle
on a rock, or the illuminated windows of a magnificent palace, fit for
any princess of fairyland, with pleasure-gardens and lake, or fountain
and pond, wherein stately swans floated, and were overlooked by dames
and cavaliers created by the confectioner and his satellites.

For the fifty other weeks it was simply a snug parlour, comfortably
furnished according to the fashion of the time.

And it was in this room we left Jabez, whilst good-natured Ben Travis,
leaving his more patriotic comrades to “hack and hew” at their
pleasure, galloped hither and thither in search of a surgeon to dress
the wounded arm.

Every doctor in the Infirmary had his hands full; Dr. Hull, from his
windows in Mosley Street, and Dr. Hardie from his in Piccadilly,
had been satisfied that if they ventured forth they might soon need
doctoring themselves—and they both pleaded “medical etiquette” in
excuse for their lukewarmness. They were “physicians, not surgeons.” He
bethought himself of Mr. Huertley, in Oldham Street, but even he had
more than one wounded patient in his surgery, and was loth to encounter
the danger outside. Ben Travis, however, would take no denial. He
waited until sundry gaping wounds were closed, cuts plaistered and
bandaged, a broken limb set, and a bullet extracted, even lending
a hand himself where unskilled help could be available, being less
bemused with liquor than many of his cavalry corps. Then, although
they were almost within a stone’s throw of their destination—as Oldham
Street was not safe for a civilian to cross on foot, with loaded cannon
in such close proximity—Travis mounted the surgeon behind him, the
latter not sorry to have the yeoman’s capacious body in its conspicuous
uniform for a shield, as they dashed across into Back-Piccadilly to
Mabbott’s back door.

As they passed Chadwick’s the younger man cast a sharp glance of
scrutiny at the drawing-room windows, and bowed low in recognition of
the face for which he was looking—the face he had seen so pale and
pitiful, bending over an afflicted father, and so shocked to hear of
even an apprentice wounded in that father’s behalf.

Ben Travis had a big body and a big heart, but he had little knowledge
of the hearts of womankind, or he might have found another solution for
Ellen Chadwick’s fainting fit. He did not know how she had trembled
for another on seeing him dismount at Mr. Huertley’s door, nor how
she had watched, too sick and sad to descend to the dining-room, when
the spoiled dinner was at length set on the table—watched eagerly
and anxiously, her heart’s pulsations counting each second a minute,
as hours elapsed before she saw them mount and away, and noted the
direction they took. And she saw no admiration in the low bow of the
fine soldierly young gentleman—only the polite salutation of a stranger
introduced casually by the untoward events of the day, albeit, having
rendered her father a service, and professed himself the friend of
Jabez, she was bound to recognise him as he passed.

To Jabez himself, lying faint and exhausted with loss of blood, on kind
Mr. Mabbott’s chintz-covered squab-sofa, everything was a haze, and the
people around him little more than voices. He was perfectly conscious
when Mr. Mabbott hastily cut away the sleeve of his jacket, and bound
the wounded arm as tightly as towels could bind. When Mr. Ashton put
his troubled face into the confectioner’s small parlour, Mr. Mabbott
was in the act of reaching from a corner cupboard a small square spirit
decanter, and an engraved wine-glass, in order to administer a dose of
brandy to the young man, then rapidly sinking into unconsciousness.

Under its influence he revived for awhile; but, as the blood gradually
soaked through the towelling, he grew fainter, in spite of brandy,
and by the time Ben Travis (who had surely kept the promise made in
school-boy days) brought Dr. Huertley to his aid he had lapsed into a
stupor from which the manipulations of the surgeon barely aroused him.

“You should have tied a ligature tightly as possible round the arm
above the wound, first thing,” said the surgeon, addressing those
around him—“a bit of tape, a strip of linen, a garter—anything narrow,
to stop the hæmorrhage. Had this been done, there would have been less
effusion of blood, and our patient would not have been so utterly
prostrated.”

“Just so, just so,” assented Mr. Ashton, adding, “but Mr. Mabbott had——”

“Done his best—no doubt,” interrupted the surgeon, “or our young friend
might have bled to death. But the tight, narrow ligature would have
been better; and many a valuable life may have been saved or lost this
day through that bit of knowledge or—the want of it.”

Mr. Ashton’s “Just so, just so; I daresay you are right,” was followed
up by “Shall we be able to remove him to-night, Mr. Huertley? He is
my apprentice, and has been injured whilst bravely protecting your
opposite neighbour, Mr. Chadwick, my brother-in-law. I should like to
get him home, to be under Mrs. Ashton’s care, as well as to relieve Mr.
Mabbott, to whom, I am sure, we all feel greatly indebted.”

“Don’t name it, I beg; at fearful times like this,” said Mr. Mabbott,
with a shudder, “it does not do to think of trouble or of ceremony.
But I do not imagine the doctor would counsel the young man’s removal
to-night, even if the road were clear and safe.”

“Certainly not,” replied Mr. Huertley, as he packed up his lint and
instruments. “And in my opinion, if you remove him to-morrow you must
do it carefully on every account, and will have to smuggle him away in
a hackney-coach, lest he should be pounced upon as a wounded rebel.”

Two days, however, elapsed before Mr. Mabbott’s sofa lost its occupant,
and even then the strong arm of Tom Hulme and the loving care of Bess
were needed to help Jabez, feeble and wan, to the hackney-carriage
brought up to the back door, which bore him slowly away, avoiding the
main streets, until they passed under the arched gateway in Back Mosley
Street whence he had last emerged at a headlong pace to prevent Miss
Augusta getting into danger.

Some remembrance of this flashed through the brain of Jabez as the
coach stopped in the court-yard, and on the house door-steps he beheld
Mrs. Ashton, Augusta, and Ellen Chadwick, all three waiting to receive
him as if he had been a wounded relative returning from far-off
victories to his own hearth. Nay, the very servants hovered in the
back-ground, even cross Kezia pressing to have a first look at him.

Mrs. Ashton herself, with the graceful dignity which sat so well upon
her, went down the steps to lead him up and into the house, and as she
touched his left hand and unwounded arm, she said impressively,

“Jabez Clegg, I understand we owe our brother’s life to your
self-abnegation, if not that of our daughter also. I regret that your
noble intervention should have cost you so dear; but I thank you most
truly, and _shall not forget it_.”

The stately lady’s eyes were humid as she led Jabez into their common
parlour (the room in which Augusta had displayed his specimens of
incipient artistry) and there placed him on the large soft sofa,
already prepared with pillows for his reception. The attention touched
him to the heart; the humble apprentice, feeling himself honoured,
raised the lady’s hand to his lips as gracefully and reverently as ever
did knight of old romance.

And then he would have closed his eyes for very weariness but a little
soft warm hand stole into his feeble one, and thrilling through him, a
faint tinge chased the deathly pallor from his face as Augusta’s voice,
full of commiseration, said apologetically, “I had no idea, Jabez,
that I was sending you into danger when I asked you to look for Uncle
Chadwick; I am so sorry you have been hurt.”

He held the little hand of his master’s daughter for one or two
delicious minutes, while he answered feebly—“Never mind, Miss Ashton; I
was only too glad to be there in time;” and lapsed into so ethereal a
dream as he released it, that the low, broken grateful thanks of Ellen
Chadwick left but the impression on his mind that she was very much in
earnest and had called him _Mr. Clegg_.

Mr. Clegg! When had the College-boy—the Blue-coat apprentice—been
anything but Jabez Clegg? _Mr._ Clegg! It was from such lips social
recognition, and so blent strangely with his dream. Ah! could he
but have known how much of latent tenderness was embodied in those
incoherent expressions of a daughter’s gratitude, or that the speaker
dared not trust her faltering tongue with his Christian name!

Mrs. Ashton called the young ladies away.

“My dears, you had better resume your occupations, and leave Jabez to
repose; it is not well to crowd about an invalid on so sultry a day as
this.”

So Miss Chadwick went, with her tatting-shuttle, back to her seat by
the one window where the friendly shade of the dove-coloured curtains
screened from observation any glances which might chance to stray from
the tatting to the sofa; and Miss Ashton went back to her music-stool,
where the sunbeams, falling through the other window, lit up her lovely
profile, shot a glint of gold through her hair, and showed the dimples
in her white shoulder to the half-shut, dreaming eyes of Jabez, who
listened, entranced, as she practised scales and battle-pieces, waltzes
and quadrilles, totally unconscious that she was feeding a fever in the
soul of the apprentice more to be feared than the stroke of Aspinall’s
sabre, though it had cut into the bone.

Not that she was a simple school-girl, and ignorant of the power of
beauty. She was pretty well as romantic as any girl of that romantic
age who, being fifteen, looked a year older, and learned the art of
fascination from the four-volume novels of the period. Mrs. Ashton
herself subscribed to the fashionable circulating library of the
town, but she was somewhat choice in her reading, and had Miss
Augusta stopped where her mother did she would have done well. But
it so happened that, after feasting on the wholesome peas her mother
provided, she fell with avidity on husks obtained surreptitiously
elsewhere. Kisses from Augusta could always coax coins from papa, and
as a Miss Bohanna kept open a well-known, well-stocked circulating
library in Shudehill, albeit in a cellar, its contiguity to Bradshaw
Street and Mrs. Broadbent’s enabled Miss Ashton (or Cicely for her) to
smuggle in amongst her school-books other fictions, such as Elizabeth
Helme and Anna Maria Roche used to concoct, and Samuel Richardson
provided, to delight our grandmothers with.

So Miss Ashton was quite prepared to be admired and play the heroine
prematurely; but she had been reared in the same house with Jabez,
had been caressed and waited upon by him as a child, and anything so
absurd as her father’s apprentice falling in love with her had never
dawned upon her apprehension. Then not even his wounded arm could make
him handsome enough for a hero, so she plunged through the “Battle of
Prague,” and “Lodoiska,” and glided into the “Copenhagen Waltz,” with
no suspicion of a listener more than ordinary.

Mrs. Ashton, who was back-stitching a shirt-wristband (family linen
was then made at home), imagined that Jabez was dozing, and, unwilling
to disturb him, only spoke when a false note, or a passage out of
time, called for a low-voiced hint to her daughter, or when she found
occasion to make some slight observation to the equally silent Ellen.

Presently the clock in the hall proclaimed “five.” Miss Ashton closed
music-books and piano; Miss Chadwick completed a loop, then put her
tatting away in a small, oblong, red morocco reticule; Mrs. Ashton
laid the wristband in her workbasket, which she put out of sight in a
panelled cupboard within the wall, sheathed the scissors hanging from
her girdle, folded up the leather housewife containing her cut skeins
of thread, &c.; James brought in the tea-board, with its genuine China
tea-service, plates with cake and bread-and-butter, and whilst he went
back to Kezia for the tea-urn, in walked Mr. Ashton, and with him the
Rev. Joshua Brookes.

One might have supposed his first salutation would have been to the
lady of the house. Nothing of the kind! With a passing nod to Mrs.
Ashton, who had extended her hand, he marched straight to the sofa, and
greeted its occupant with—

“Well, young Cheat-the-fishes, so you’ve been in the wars again.”

“Yes, sir,” said Jabez, attempting to rise.

“Lie still, lad! And so you thought a velveteen jacket defensive armour
against sharpened steel?”

“I never thought about it, sir.”

“Ugh! Then I suppose you reckoned a young man’s arm worth less than an
old man’s head! Eh?”

Jabez smiled.

“Certainly, sir.”

“Humph! I thought as much!” Then darting a keen inquisitive glance from
under his shaggy eyebrows at the prostrate young fellow, he added in
his very raspiest tones, “And I daresay you’ve no notion whose sabre
carved the wing of the goose so cleverly?”

What little blood was left in his body seemed to mount to the face
of Jabez, the old scar on his brow—which every year made less
conspicuous—purpled and grew livid. Old Joshua needed no more.

“Ah, I see you do! Well, are you inclined to forgive the fellow this
time?”

All ears were on the alert. Jabez caught the quick turn of his kind
master’s head. He hesitated, paled, and flushed again. Joshua Brookes
waited. There was some indecision in the reply when it did come.

“I am not sure, sir. But he was very drunk. I don’t think he would have
done it if he had been sober.”

“Just so, Jabez—just so!” assented Mr. Ashton with evident satisfaction
and a tap on his snuff-box-lid.

Ben Travis had revealed the name of Mr. Chadwick’s assailant to the
manufacturer, and he to the chaplain.

“Oh! that’s your opinion, is it?” cried the latter, crustily, wheeling
sharply round to disguise a smile.—“Here, madam, let’s have a cup of
sober tea after that!”

“I think, Mr. Brookes,” said Mrs. Ashton, as she seated herself, “with
all due deference to you—I think you ask too much from Jabez. I do not
consider drunkenness any excuse for brutality.”

“No excuse for the brute, madam, certainly; but a reason why a
reasoning man should forgive the brute incapable of reason.”

“Just so, Parson!” chimed in Mr. Ashton laying his Barcelona
handkerchief across his knee.

“I don’t see it, sir,” argued Mrs. Ashton, handing a willow-patterned
cup and saucer, with his tea, to her interlocutor; “a man who is a
brute when intoxicated should keep sober. For my own part, I should
be loth to let the same stick beat me twice. Our apprentice has borne
quite too much from that fellow” (she waxed indignant), “and there is a
limit to forgiveness.”

“Yes, madam,” answered the Parson snappishly, “there _is_ a limit to
forgiveness; but the limit is ‘not seven times, but seventy times
seven!’”

There was no more to be said. The rough chaplain spoke with authority,
and from experience, and Jabez knew it.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-SECOND.

MR. CLEGG!


However grateful Mrs. Ashton might be she never lost sight of her
personal dignity, and had no idea of admitting Jabez on terms of
equality after that first reception.

In his helpless condition he required attention, which she could not
condescend to render personally; yet she was as little inclined to
delegate the duty to Kezia, who was never over well-disposed towards
him, and who might have resented the call to “wait on a ’prentice
lad,” or to Cicily, who was too young to have the run of a young man’s
chamber. It was like herself to hit on the happy mean, and invite Bess
Hulme at once to satisfy her own longings, and meet the requirements of
the case, by waiting on her foster-child in his helplessness, bringing
with her her own boy, now two years old, to be committed to willing
Cicily’s care when the mother was herself engaged.

Yet the apprentice never again sank into the old ruts. His bed in the
attic was turned over to his successor. From that parlour where he had
lain and listened to Augusta’s music, and Parson Brookes’s dictum;
where Mrs. Ashton had placed his pillows, and Ellen Chadwick had
supplied his wants with such intuitive perception at tea-time; from
that room he went to a chamber on an upper floor, furnished neatly but
plainly, with due regard to comfort.

There was a mahogany camp-bedstead, draped with chintz of most
extraordinary device. The bed was of feathers—not flock. An oak chest
of drawers, which did duty for a dressing-table, stood by the window,
which itself overlooked the yard, and on the top stood a small oval
swing looking-glass. There were small strips of carpet along the two
sides of the bed, which did not touch the wall; an almost triangular
washstand in one corner, and near the middle of the room a rush-bottom
chair and a tripod table. There was also a cushioned easy-chair, which
had a suggestiveness of being there for that special occasion only;
and Jabez, who, on his first glance around began to speculate whether
the whole would not vanish with his convalescence, was reassured when
he saw that his wooden box had been brought from the attic and stood
against the wall.

The six-foot, bronzed, bearded man of forty remains a child to the
mother who bore him, or the woman who nursed him. And as she had laid
him in his cradle when a baby, Bess helped Jabez to his new bed, fed
him with the beef-tea which Kezia had prepared (for a wonder, without
a grumble), gave him the cooling draught Mr. Huertley had sent in,
smoothed his pillows for repose, and kissed his brow, with a “God bless
thee!” much as she had done when he was an ailing child, but with all
the access of motherliness her own maternity had given.

Nevertheless he did not sleep readily. Neither Bessy’s soothing hand
nor the soft bed superinduced slumber. He was modest, and “Mr. Clegg”
haunted him. He could not see the connection between his impulsive
rush forward to check the yoeman’s plunging steed, and his employer’s
recognition of the service rendered.

“I only did my duty,” he debated with himself, as he lay there, with
a mere streak of light from the glimmering rush-light showing between
the closely drawn-curtains—“I only did my duty. Anyone else would have
done the same in my place. If I had once thought of consequences and
grasped the reins deliberately, there would have been some bravery in
_that_. But I never thought of the sword, not I. I only thought of poor
old Mr. Chadwick and Molly; and I’m sure Mr. Mabbott’s ready hand did
as good service as mine. Only I happened to get hurt. Yes, that’s it!
And they are sorry for me. I wonder if that ruffianly fellow did know
whom he was striking at? I hardly think he did, he was so very tipsy.
If I fancied he did, I—but he could not. He was just blind drunk.
What a pity, for such a handsome fellow, not older than I am, and a
gentleman’s son too! Forgive him! I don’t think I’ve much to forgive.
I’d bear the pain twice over for all the kind things that have been
said and done since! Tea in the parlour with Parson Brookes and all!
And this handsome bed-room [handsome only in untutored eyes]. And all
the thanks I have had for so little. And, oh! the bliss of holding
Augusta’s delicate hand in mine, and hearing the music those white
fingers made. It’s worth the pain three times over. And Mr. Clegg too!
_Mr._ Clegg! How like a gentleman it does sound! Will anybody call me
Mr. Clegg besides Miss Chadwick? How fond she must be of her father,
from the way she thanked me!”

(Ah Jabez! what oculist can cure blindness such as thine?)

If less consecutive, still in some such current ran the young man’s
thoughts, until chaos came, and his closed eyes saw innumerable _Mr._
Cleggs written on walls, and floor, and curtains, and a delicious
symphony seemed to chorus the words, and “lap him in Elysium.”

After that, once each day, Mrs. Ashton paid him a brief visit of
inspection and inquiry, generally timed so as to meet the surgeon. Mr.
Ashton, with less of ceremony, dropped in occasionally, to bring him a
newspaper, book, or pamphlet to beguile the hours, and was not above
loitering for a pleasant chat on matters indoors and out, the state
of political feeling, and of business, in a manner so friendly Jabez
was at a loss to account for it. Once or twice Augusta tapped at the
door, to ask if Jabez was better, and to “hope he would soon be well,”
and the simple words ran through his brain with a thousand chimerical
meanings.

Joshua Brookes paid him a couple of visits, brought him papers of
sweetmeats and messages from Mrs. Clowes, and a Latin Testament and
a worn Æneid from his own stores, as a little light reading. Mrs.
Chadwick, too, made her appearance at his bedside, with kindly and
grateful words from her husband; and amongst them he was in a fair way
of becoming elevated into a hero to his own hurt.

Simon Clegg (who pulled off his thick Sunday shoes in the kitchen, and
went up-stairs in his stocking feet, lest he should make a clatter, and
spoil the carpets) counteracted the mischief, and somewhat clipped the
pinions of soaring imagination.

Jabez, his arm bandaged and sustained by a sling, lay with his head
against the straight, high back of his padded chair, between the window
and the fireplace, which glowed, not with live coals, but a beau-pot of
sunflowers and hollyhocks from Simon’s garden. At his feet lay little
Sam, fast asleep, with his fat arms round the neck of Nelson, the
black retriever, which had somehow contrived to sneak past Kezia with
his tail between his legs, and to follow Bess up-stairs, where he had
established himself in perfect content.

Simon greeted his foster-son with bated breath, awed no doubt by the
lamp-bearing statues in hall and staircase, and hardly raised his
voice above a whisper while he stayed. He had much to tell which the
reader already knows, but he took his leave with quite a long oration,
impressed no doubt by the comfort in that chamber, as well as by the
grandeur in rooms of which he had caught a glimpse through open doors.
Jabez himself, being still feeble, had spoken but little.

“Moi lad,” said he, “this is a grand place, but dunnot yo’ let it mak’
yo’ preawd; an’ aw hope as yo’re thankful yo’ han fallen among sich
koind folk.”

“Indeed I am.”

“Yo’ did nowt but whatn wur yo’r duty, moi lad, as aw trust thah
allays wilt; and thah’s gotten a mester and missis i’ ten theawsand,
to mak’ so mich on a cut in a ’prentice’s arm—ay, tho it _wur_ got i’
savin’ one o’ theer own kin! Luk yo’, Jabez: o’ th’ mesters aw ever
saw afore thowt as ’prentices, body an’ soul, wur theer own; an’ yo’ve
lit on yo’r feet, aw con tell yo’. an’ yo’ conno’ do too mich for sich
folk. Aw see they’re makkin’ a man on yo’, an’ dunnot yo’ spoil o’ by
thinkin’ yo’ han earnt it, an’ han a reet to it. We’re unprofitable
sarvants, th’ best on us, an’ dunnot yo’ harbour anny malice agen th’
chap as chopped at yo’. Them Yowmanry Calvary wur as drunk as fiddlers,
an’ as blind as bats. Thah tuk thi chance wi’ the ruck, an’ came off
better than some folk. So thenk God it’s no waur, an’ bear no malice;
an’ thenk God as sent yo’ theer i’ the nick o’ time.”

In little more than a fortnight Jabez was downstairs again, although
his arm, not being thoroughly healed, yet needed support, and he was
not hurried into the warehouse. Neither was he again invited to join
the family, Mrs. Ashton having objected to Mr. Ashton’s proposition.

“It would lift the young man out of his sphere, William, and do him
more harm than good. Only very strong heads can stand sudden elevation;
and it is well to make no more haste than good speed.”

But Mr. Ashton’s “Just so” was less definite than ordinary, and he took
a second pinch of snuff unawares, with a prolonged emphasis, which
supplied the place of words. To the observant, Mr. Ashton’s snuff-box
contained as much eloquence as did Lord Burleigh’s celebrated wig.
He had taken a liking to the lad from the first, paid very little
deference to Mrs. Grundy, and gave Jabez credit for a stronger head
than did his more cautious and philosophic lady.

Yet Jabez, to his surprise, found that his little room down stairs had
undergone a transformation. It was no longer a bare office, fitted only
with a desk and stool. Desk and stool were there still, but a carpet,
hanging shelves, a few useful books, and other furniture had been
introduced, the result being a compact parlour. Mrs. Ashton had her own
way of showing goodwill.

His previous application to work in that room, when his
fellow-apprentices in over hours were cracking jokes on the kitchen
settle, lounging about the yard, tormenting or being tormented by
Kezia, had served somewhat to isolate and lift him above them, albeit
he took his meals in the kitchen with the rest. This separation was now
confirmed by orders Kezia received to “serve Clegg’s dinner in his own
room,” orders which Kezia resented with asperity, and at least three
days’ ill-humour, and which James declined to execute. He was “not
goin’ to disgrace his cloth by waitin’ on ’prentice lads!” Ready-handed
Cicily came to the rescue, and took the office on herself, amid the
banter of the kitchen, which the quick-witted maid returned with right
good will and right good temper.

Permission to receive his friends in his own room occasionally had been
graciously accorded by Mrs. Ashton herself, with the characteristic
observation—

“They are worthy people, Jabez Clegg, and you owe them a son’s duty;
besides, you need some relaxation—‘The over-strained bow is apt to
snap,’ and ‘All work and no play makes Jack a dull boy.’”

Altogether he was more than satisfied. He was not demonstrative, but
his heart swelled as he felt within himself that all these little
things were stepping stones upwards; and he mentally resolved to mount
them fairly. He recognised that he was rising, and ere the week was out
he found that others recognised it also.

His blood-stained garments had been removed, whither he knew not, and
he had had to fall back on his grey frieze Sunday suit. Be sure he
began to calculate the chances of getting a fresh one.

As he was able to go out, he was employed on out-door business until
his arm should regain its full vitality, and one of his errands was
with a note to Mr. Chadwick’s tailor, in King Street. At first he
thought there was some mistake when the fraction of a man proceeded
without more ado to take his measure.

Saturday night proved there had been no mistake. On his bed,
accompanied by a very kind note from Mr. Chadwick (written with his
left hand), lay not only a well-cut, well-made suit of clothes, but a
hat, white linen shirts, neck-cloths, and hose.

Did ever young girl turn up her back hair, or young man assume his
first coat indifferently? To Jabez—the foundling—the Blue-coat
apprentice, this was not merely a first coat, not merely a badge of
approaching manhood. The whole outfit, provided as it was by his
master’s brother-in-law, seemed a recognition of the station he was
henceforth to fill. No clerk in the counting-house was so well equipped
as he, when he stood before his oval swing-glass (for the first time
far too small), and endeavoured to survey himself therein, that fine
September Sunday morning.

I will not presume to say that he looked the conventional gentleman in
that suit of glossy brown broadcloth, and beaver hat; I will not say
that he did not feel stiff in them. Only use gives ease; but this I
will say, that a more manly figure never gave shape to garments, or a
more noble head to a hat, albeit there was more of strength than beauty
in the face it shaded.

His forehead was broad and well developed; the reflective as well as
the perceptive faculties were there. There was just a slight defensive
rise on the else straight nose; the eyebrows were full save where a
scar broke the line of one. Firm but pleasant were mouth and dimpled
chin, and the lower jaw was somewhat massive; but his full grey eyes,
dark almost to blackness, and standing far apart, were clear and deep
as wells where truth lay hid, though deep emotion had power to kindle
them with the luminosity of stars.

I am afraid he was not the only one on whom Parson Gatliffe’s
eloquence was thrown away that Sabbath morning. If he looked up at the
Blue-coat boys in the Chetham Gallery with their quaint blue robes
and neat bands, to throw memory back and imagination forward, others
were doing likewise, from old Simon in his free seat to his envious
fellow-’prentices in the pew, whose mocking grimaces drew upon them the
sharp censure of the beadle.

Party spirit was then at a white heat. Had Peterloo been written on his
forehead it could not have marked him out for curious eyes more surely
than his sling.

Greetings, not altogether congratulatory, followed him through the
churchyard. But old Simon caught his left hand in a tremulous grasp,
his eyes moist with proud emotion. Tom Hulme beamed upon him, and
Mrs. Clowes, energetic as ever, overtook them a few yards from the
chapter-house, just as Joshua Brookes emerged from the door.

“Well, my lad, I’m glad to see you at church again!” she exclaimed,
shaking him warmly by the left hand. “I hardly knew you in your fine
clothes. They’ve made quite a gentleman of you. We shall have to call
you Mr. Clegg now, I reckon.”

“Now, Mother Clowes, don’t you give Jabez _humbug_ of that sort; it’s
sweet, but not wholesome. ‘Fine feathers make fine birds.’ He’s as
proud as a peacock already. _Mr._ Clegg, indeed!—and him a ’prentice
lad not out of his time! Let him stick to the name we gave him at his
baptism—it’s worth all your fine Misters.” And Joshua turned off,
muttering, “Mr. Clegg, indeed!” as he went away.

Neither the old woman in her antiquated gown and kerchief-covered
mutch, nor the old parson in his cassock and square cap, modulated
their loud voices. Jabez blushed painfully. Both had touched sensitive
chords.

But others had heard the “Mr. Clegg,” and _he_ heard it again, from
Kezia and the apprentices in every tone of mockery and derision. Thence
it travelled into the warehouse. He bore it with set teeth through
many a painful week, until the title stuck to him, and the taunt was
forgotten in the force of habit.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-THIRD.

IN THE THEATRE ROYAL.[19]


It has been said that Madame Broadbent had various subtle ways of
advertising her “Academy” (as the directory has it), by which she
generally contrived to “kill two birds with one stone.” One of these
would scarcely have been practicable in any but a theatrical town like
Manchester, where not even the fierceness of party politics could
close the theatre doors. She was particularly fond of a good play, and
as particularly careful of her own pocket. So she watched for such
occasions as a special benefit or “Bespeak” night, to engage one of the
dress-boxes, and take tickets for a select party of her pupils. The
young ladies—apart from all natural love of amusement and display—were
taught to regard their admission to Mrs. Broadbent’s train as a high
honour—a mark of exceeding distinction; and few were the parents so
stern or so niggardly as to refuse the four shillings for a box-ticket
when Madame invited and Miss pleaded.

The then Theatre Royal, in Fountain Street, which was opened in 1807,
under Macready’s management, and brought to the ground by fire in 1844,
was, in 1820, a building so capacious—so solidly built—it might not
fear comparison with Drury Lane. Stage, scene-rooms, dressing-rooms,
were all on an extensive scale. There were three tiers of boxes, a
large pit, and an immense gallery breaking the line of the third tier.
With the exception of the large side boxes, which were partially on the
stage, all these boxes were open to the view, having only a divisional
barrier the height of the parapet, light iron pillars supporting the
weight above. There were no chairs—only narrow, baize-covered benches,
innocent of backs. And the theatre was lighted by sperm-oil lamps,
those round the auditorium being suspended by cords over pulleys, so
as to be lowered for lighting, trimming, &c. But the glory of that
theatre, of which it was shorn at a later date, was its box-lobby, a
lofty, open promenade, wide as a street, and long in proportion, for
its one grand entrance was in Fountain Street, the other in Back Mosley
Street. Only for the step or two at either end, carriages might have
driven through, or depositing their living loads within at the saloon
doors, have turned easily and driven back.

This lobby was naturally a lounge, as well as a waiting-place for
servants and others with wraps and pattens, neither carriage nor
hackney-coaches being numerous, and the streets being—well, not quite
so clean or well-paved as at present.

The ten days’ trial of Henry Hunt and his compatriots at York had,
as is well known, resulted in sentence of imprisonment for different
terms, to the discomfiture of one party, the exultation of the other.
Close upon the promulgation of this sentence came Easter week, at the
beginning of April, 1820, when Jabez had little more than a month
to serve of his apprenticeship. Edmund Kean was then playing at the
Theatre Royal, supported by Sophia M‘Gibbon—daughter of Woodfall, the
memorable printer of “Junius”—a favourite on the Manchester “boards.”

Either to mark their satisfaction at the result of the trial, or their
admiration of the great tragedian, the officers of the Manchester
Yeomanry Cavalry bespoke “Othello” for the Wednesday evening, and Mrs.
Broadbent made the most of the glorious opportunity. She engaged a box
close to the centre of the dress-circle, on terms well understood, and
as small people take less room than large ones, and her front row was
very juvenile, she contrived to make it a profitable investment even
though she took a teacher with her (at a lower rate). The young ladies
assembled at the school, and made quite a procession to the theatre,
where Mrs. Broadbent’s own maid took charge of hats and cloaks,
and waited drearily in the saloon. Then, duly marshalled by Madame
Broadbent and Miss Nuttall, they filed into the box decorously, and
took their seats, the youngest in the van—the whole programme having
been re-hearsed and re-hearsed for a day or two beforehand.

A boquet of white rosebuds they might have been called, white muslin
was so general; but one young lady blushed in pink gauze, and Augusta
Ashton’s lovely head and shoulders were set off by delicate blue crape.
There were round necklaces of coral or pearl, long loose gloves of
cambric or kid, and every damsel in her teens had her fan. But of
fans, commend me to Madame Broadbent’s. It was no light trifle of ivory
or sandal-wood, but of strong green paper, spotted with gold, with
ribs and frame of ebony, and it measured half-a-yard when closed. Her
well-saved, long-waisted, stiff brocaded robe and petticoat might have
been her wedding-dress kept for state occasions; but that fan, slung by
a ribbon from her wrist, was part of her individuality—the symbol of
her authority inseparable from her walking self. A relic of her younger
days, she employed it—citing Queen Charlotte as her exemplar—to arrest
attention, to admonish, to chastise; and woe to the luckless little
lady on whom it came in admonition!

The box was filled to the very door, where Miss Nuttall kept guard.
Madame Broadbent displayed her own important person on the third row
above the curly heads of the smaller fry, and to Augusta Ashton—being
a profitable pupil, of whom she had reason to be proud—was allotted a
seat next to herself.

The house was full and fashionable, both stage-boxes being occupied by
members of the Manchester Yeomanry, resplendent in silver and blue.
Laurence Aspinall, John Walmsley, and Ben Travis were of the party. In
the pit were the critics, pressing as closely as possible to the stage.
Nods and smiles from friends in different quarters of the theatre
greeted the component parts of Madame Broadbent’s bevy of innocents,
and smiles responded.

Then rose the green curtain upon Edmund Kean’s Othello, and Mrs.
M‘Gibbon’s Desdemona. The audience was enthralled. Act by act the
players kept attention fixed, and all went well until the last scene.
But, as Othello pressed the murderous pillow down, one of Madame
Broadbent’s white-frocked misses in the front row, with whose relatives
Desdemona lodged when she was not Desdemona, started up, and cried out
piteously—

“He’s killing Mrs. M‘Gibbon! He’s killing Mrs. M‘Gibbon!”

The clear voice rang through the house, to the consternation of the
actors, the amusement of some, and the annoyance of the audience. Some
of the officers laughed outright in the very face of the tragic Moor;
but Madame Broadbent was furious, all the more that she was bound to
suppress her passion then and there.

For the credit of her “Academy,” she, however, felt bound to resent
so flagrant a breach of decorum. Tapping the tearful culprit on the
shoulder with her ready fan, in a stern whisper, scarcely less audible
than the child’s impulsive tribute to the great tragedian, she asked,
“How can you bemean yourself so far, miss, to the disgrace of the
school?” and beckoning the child forth, she was passed to Miss Nuttall
at the very back of the box, sobbing more for Mrs. M‘Gibbon than for
Mrs. Broadbent.

This caused a change of places, which brought Miss Ashton more
prominently into view. Laurence Aspinall, an ardent admirer of
beauty, put his hand on the shoulder of the officer before him, and
said—“Good heavens, Walmsley! Do you see that lovely creature in Mother
Broadbent’s box?”

“Which?” was the obtuse answer.

“Which!” (contemptuously echoed.) “The divine beauty in celestial blue.
Who is she?” And his admiring gaze brought a conscious blush to the
young lady’s forehead, although the querist was beyond her hearing.

“In blue?” And Walmsley lazily scanned the group. “Oh! that’s
Charlotte’s cousin, Augusta Ashton! Yes, she is rather pretty;” and the
married man turned away to the stage.

“Rather pretty! She’s an angel! You must introduce me!”

“Well, well!” answered the other testily, anxious to end a colloquy
which distracted his attention from the tragedy, “I’ll see. But she’s
only a school-girl—not yet sixteen!”

“Egad! but she looks seventeen, and she’ll mend of that
disqualification every day;” and still he kept his eyes on Augusta in
a manner extremely disconcerting, though her romantic little heart
fluttered, for in him she recognised the “Adonis” who had reared his
horse so threateningly in front of her Uncle Chadwick’s house.

The green curtain came down amid universal plaudits. Ladies rose to
rest themselves and chat, as was the custom. Gentlemen quitted their
seats to join friends elsewhere, to lounge in saloon or box-lobby, or
to take a hasty glass at the “Garrick’s Head” adjoining.

Amongst the latter were Walmsley and Aspinall; but they did not return
when the prompter’s bell rang the curtain up. There was a _pas de deux_
of Tyrolean peasants by the chief dancers of the company. Then followed
an interlude, and then a comic song, all before the last piece; but the
comrades did not return; and Augusta found herself wondering whether
the handsome officer, with the rich copper-coloured hair, would come
back at all.

They did make their appearance during the progress of the drama
(Monk Lewis’s “Castle Spectre,” in which Mrs. M‘Gibbon gave ocular
demonstration that she was not killed), both seemingly exhilarated, but
they left again before the drama concluded.

Well drilled as were Madame Broadbent’s pupils, they could not quit
their box in the same order they entered it—big people so seldom
recognise the right of little ones to precedence. They straggled into
the saloon, separated by the crowd. There Madame Broadbent, assisted
by Miss Nuttall, collected her brood, and passing on to the box-lobby,
they looked around for their respective attendants.

There was one—a fine young man, in height some five feet ten—who sprang
forward with shawl and calesh for Miss Ashton, at the same time bowing
deferentially to the pompous dame with the big fan. He proceeded to
adjust the shawl round the dimpled shoulders so very precious to him,
and said—

“I hope you have had a pleasant evening, Miss Augusta.”

Then bowing again to Mrs. Broadbent, he offered his hand respectfully
to the young lady, to conduct her home.

On the instant they were intercepted by Aspinall and Walmsley, neither
so sober as he might have been.

“Augusta, here’s my friend, Aspinall; deuced good fellow—quite struck
with you,” was Captain Walmsley’s unceremonious introduction—at a time,
too, when introductions were somewhat formal.

“Quite, Miss Ashton,” he assented. “’Pon my soul, I am! Your charming
face has quite captivated me, and those eyes pierce my heart like
bullets. Permit me to escort you home.”

There was an amusing consciousness of his own attractions in this free
expression of his admiration. A woman of the world, with her weapons
ready, might have dismissed him either with hauteur, badinage, or cool
indifference; but to Augusta Ashton, almost a child in years, it was
bewildering and disconcerting.

Her eyes fell—her colour rose. She stood silent, abashed, and confused.
Native modesty took alarm.

Jabez came to her relief.

“Miss Ashton is under my protection, sir; she requires no other escort.”

The words were cool as those of a man who, having his temper well under
control, did not choose to quarrel, though his pulses were beating
like drums. With cool effrontery his old antagonist looked him full in
the face.

“So it’s you again, yellow-skirt! A nice fellow to protect a pretty
girl: a fellow without skill to defend himself, or spirit to resent an
insult;” and the speaker’s red lips curled with derision.

The eyes of Jabez kindled and his teeth set. There was no lack of
spirit, but not the spirit of which common brawls are made. He was
anxious to get the trembling Augusta away from the gathering crowd.

Madame Broadbent, shorn of half her pretty train, came up aghast.

“Young lady! Miss Ashton! What is——”

A wave of the silver-braided sleeve set her aside, chafed and indignant
at the freedom and impertinence.

“Keep out of the way, Mother Broadbent. Look after the rest of your
lambkins. Miss Ashton’s cousin and I propose to see your pupil home.”

“All right, Augusta,” said Walmsley, thickly; “we’ll see you home.”

But she clung in dismay to the arm of Jabez; and not Hercules himself
could have torn her from him. Ignoring the coarse taunt of Lieutenant
Aspinall, he endeavoured to lead her past them, simply saying to
Captain Walmsley—

“Mr. Ashton committed his daughter to my care. I am answerable for her
safety.”

Aspinall, mistaking his calmness for pusillanimity, again intercepted
their passage, and would have taken Augusta’s hand. But a will
strong as his own—an arm strengthened by lifting and carrying heavy
burdens—was opposed to him. Jabez struck no blow: he thrust out an arm
with muscles like leather, swept the offensive lieutenant aside, and
down he went on the stone pavement of the lobby.

“Bravo, Clegg!” exclaimed a voice from the rear; and the burly form
of Ben Travis parted the curious crowd, as leviathan parts the waves,
before the infuriated Aspinall could rise, or Walmsley interpose;
“that’s right; take the young lady away, and leave these gallant bucks
to me. I’ll guard the honour of our corps.”

The terrified young lady and the inebriated young bully were alike in
sure hands. But consequential Madame Broadbent, ignored, forgotten,
had received a blow to her importance she was not likely to forget or
overlook.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-FOURTH.

MADAME BROADBENT’S FAN.


They had made their exit from the Fountain Street end of the box-lobby,
to avoid the rush from the gallery door in Back Mosley Street, which
somewhat lengthened the short distance Jabez had to convey his precious
charge, who appeared more apprehensive of offending Madame Broadbent by
scant and unceremonious leave-taking than troubled by the impertinence
of the young officers.

Truth to tell, the whole adventure had a savour of Miss Bohanna’s
circulating library about it, and she felt herself elevated into a
heroine by the occurrence. But her appearance before Madame Broadbent
in the morning would be very real and unromantic, that lady resenting
nothing so much as disrespect.

“You see, Jabez, I did not even make a curtsey to her as we came away.
I am afraid she will be displeased.”

“If you think so, Miss Ashton,” he replied, respectfully, “I will
hasten back as soon as I have seen you safely home, and bear your
apologies to Madame Broadbent. She may not have left the theatre.
Besides, I feel that I also owe an apology for leaving a lady of her
age unprotected in the midst of such a scene. It was very remiss on my
part,” he added; “but, indeed, at the time I thought only of placing
you beyond reach of further insult;” and Augusta could hear him mutter
between his teeth, “The impertinent puppy!”

The distance even from Fountain Street was very inconsiderable, and
they had reached the broad steps of the door in Mosley Street, and his
hand was on the lion-headed knocker when this ejaculation escaped him.

Service from Jabez was so much a matter of course that Augusta regarded
his care for herself, and his proffer to run back at her bidding, only
in the light of apprentice-duty; but that muttered exclamation spoke of
smothered passion; and before James was roused from his doze in front
of the far-away kitchen fire by that peal on the knocker, and sleepily
opened the door, she had added a caution as an addendum to her message
to Madame Broadbent.

“I hope, Jabez, you are not going back to—to interfere or quarrel with
Mr. Walmsley and the other officer. If they are not quite sober, you
must remember _they are gentlemen_.”

“I will forget nothing I should remember, Miss Ashton,” said he, as
James unclosed the door for her entrance, and he darted off, the
emphasis she had laid on her closing words having stung him keenly with
a sense of his social inferiority in her sight. “She evidently thinks
the apprentice College-boy has no right to raise his hand against
gentility in uniform, however drunk or disorderly it may be,” he
thought, as he ran along, spurred by a manly desire to show that it was
not cowardice which had caused him to leave his prostrate enemy in the
hands of a deputy.

He was not three minutes more in reaching the box-entrance in Back
Mosley Street; but for all that, the short walk home, and the brief
delay caused by sleepy-headed James, had given ample time to empty and
close the theatre, from which more than half the audience had dispersed
before they left. Even the oil lamps over the doors were extinguished;
and though a few stragglers loitered about—the natural hangers-on to
histrionic skirts—and there were brawlers in the neighbourhood, he saw
none of those he went to seek.

The fact was, Captain Travis had hauled Lieutenant Aspinall from
the ground with little ceremony, and, with a sharp reproof for “the
disgrace he was bringing on their corps by insulting a young lady in
a public place, as if sufficient odium did not attach to the Yeomanry
already,” forced him into a waiting hackney-coach, giving the driver
orders to bear him home to his father’s house on Ardwick Green,
heedless of the young officer’s remonstrance to the contrary. But Jehu,
who knew his fare, drove him instead to the “George and Dragon” on the
opposite side of the Green, and Mr. Aspinall saw nothing of his hopeful
son that night.

Nor would Charlotte Walmsley have seen much more of her husband, had
not kind-hearted Ben gone far out of his own way to land John safely
at home. Perhaps it would be hardly fair to calculate too nicely how
far he was influenced to that by the relation of the Walmsleys to Ellen
Chadwick, since the secret springs of action often lie too far down
even for self-knowledge.

As for Madame Broadbent, no sooner had Miss Nuttall disposed of the
last of the budding misses than she hid her indignation in the deep
shadow of her large calesh, and, with an access of importance, left the
theatre, slightly in advance of her humble dependants, and made her
fearless way through Fountain Street and High street, with a step which
augured unpleasantness for all beneath her roof if her supper were not
done to a turn and served to a nicety.

Augusta was somewhat loth to leave her pillow in the morning, after the
night’s unusual dissipation, and was still more reluctant to encounter
her lessons and Mrs. Broadbent; and she for the first time remarked to
Cicily that she thought she was “quite too old to go to school.” As if
the world was not one huge school, wherein the dunces get punished most
severely, and even the best and brightest do not escape the rod. But
Augusta Ashton, buoyant, blooming, cherished, admired, adored, could
not see that her real schooling would begin when Madame Broadbent’s
reign ceased.

No doubt Mr. Ashton would have been coaxed into granting an extension
of his darling daughter’s Easter holiday, and suffered her to remain at
home that Thursday morning, but he was at Whaley-Bridge; and mamma met
her request with:—

“No, my dear, you have had quite holiday enough. It would be setting
a bad example to infringe Madame Broadbent’s rules. Go, my dear, and
go cheerfully. I will send Cicily for you at noon. The streets will be
rather rough this week.”

She went, though not cheerfully, and Cicily was duly despatched to
bring her home; but neither Cicily nor Miss Ashton had returned when
dinner was put upon the table at half-past twelve o’clock. Then Mrs.
Ashton recalled her own words respecting the rough streets, and the
insult offered as unwelcome tribute to Augusta’s beauty over-night;
and, though by no means a nervous woman, the mother grew restless and
apprehensive—a lovely daughter who is an only child is so very anxious
a charge. As she sat down to her solitary meal, another thought crossed
her mind.

“James, ask Mr. Clegg to oblige me by stepping this way.”

Mr. Clegg was with her in an instant: the summons was unusual.

“Jabez, I’ll thank you to ascertain why Miss Ashton has not returned
from school at the usual time. Cicily has been gone almost an hour.
Should Madame be keeping her in for any breach of etiquette last
night, pray offer an apology for me and my daughter also, but at the
same time politely insist on Miss Ashton’s immediate return to dinner.”

“I believe I owe Madame Broadbent an apology myself,” answered Jabez,
smiling. “I shall be glad of an opportunity to discharge the debt.”

       *       *       *       *       *

The school-room door was midway down the dark, narrow, arched entry.
Groups of girls, with slates and bags in their hands, loitering on the
pathway at the entrance and in the passage, made way for him, with
curious looks and whispers among themselves (Jabez was not unknown to
some of the senior pupils). The school-room door stood ajar: the whole
place was in a commotion unprecedented in that precise establishment.

Madame Broadbent, holding by the copy-slip axiom, “Familiarity breeds
contempt,” preserved her dignity and that of her high office by
avoiding personal contact with her pupils, save at stated hours. Her
assistant-governesses were at their posts from nine until twelve, from
two until four; but Madame herself only sailed into the long room from
the house-door across the entry at eleven o’clock to receive reports,
inspect work, dispense rewards, or administer reproof and chastisement.
“Spare the rod and spoil the child” had not been abolished from the
educational code fifty-five years back.

The double shock her importance had received at the theatre sent
her home to quarrel with her supper; and as a meal dispatched in an
ill-humour does not easily digest, Othello and the Castle Spectre
haunted her pillow, and broke her rest with nightmares.

She rose late, and stepped into her schoolroom later than usual, to
visit her accumulation of disagreeables on minor delinquents, as well
as on the primary offenders.

Let us be just: Madame Broadbent had gracious smiles and approving
words to dispense to the ultra-good, and their very rarity made them
valuable. But if she rewarded any that day, it was only that severity
might stand out in contrast. Little hearts beat, little fingers plied
industrious needles, little eyes bent over work, when Madame’s step
was heard in the entry; but when her august presence fairly filled the
room, every little damsel rose simultaneously, and saluted her entrance
with a low, formal, deferential curtsey.

Two rooms had evidently been thrown into one to give required space,
the back portion being curiously lit by a narrow small-paned window
extending along the side, high above the rows of racks and pegs. It was
the writing end of the room. Madame Broadbent occupied a seat in the
front portion, almost opposite to the door; and as she marched towards
it with more than ordinary loftiness, and beat her fan on her table
with one peremptory tap, instead of a short rapid quiver, to enforce
her command, “Attention, ladies!” the very youngest of those ladies
could interpret the signs portentously. Lucky was the young lady whose
work passed muster that morning; so many were condemned to stocks,
backboard, columns of spelling, recitations from the “Speaker” and
Thomson’s “Seasons,” lengths of open hem, back-stitching, or seaming!

At length Madame Broadbent, having dismissed ordinary business, rapped
her fan upon the table, and in a sharp peremptory tone called “Miss
Ashton!”—and Miss Ashton, who had been expecting the summons all
the morning, came forward at her bidding, but not with the ordinary
alacrity of pupilage. She had left her childhood (I had almost said her
girlhood) behind her, in the box-lobby of the Theatre Royal.

“Miss Brookes!” cried the same sharp voice; and with a painful start
the little girl who had committed such a terrible breach of decorum
before a whole theatre as to utter her impromptu commentary on the
tragedian’s art, rose, trembled, burst into tears, but was too agitated
to obey with sufficient promptitude. Her seat was on a low front form.
Madame took a step forward, stretched out her arm, and dragged the
child by the ear to the side of Augusta, then gave her a smart cuff as
an admonition to more prompt obedience another time.

Then with another rap of her fan on the table, which set all hearts
palpitating, she began an inflated harangue to the mite of a child and
the budding woman, in which she reproached them both with bringing
disgrace on the “Academy,” hitherto so irreproachable. The one had
drawn the attention of a whole theatre to her ill-breeding and want of
proper training; the other by “boldness of look and manner had licensed
the free speech of loose men;” and, as if that were not enough, had
“been the cause of an unpardonable insult to herself.” She, Madame
Broadbent, so highly honoured and respected by the chief people in the
town, to be called “Mother Broadbent!”—it was an outrage not to be
endured!

Her temper interrupted her oration; she shook Augusta violently, and
condemned her to remain in school until she had learned one of Mrs.
Chapone’s letters by heart. Then she darted on the smaller Miss as the
primary cause of all, shook her till the little teeth chattered, and
dragged her by the lobe of the ear towards a dark closet, set apart for
heinous offenders.

Something akin to rebellion had been growing in Augusta’s breast all
the morning. She was a girl of quick impulses and sympathies, and was
not only struck by the disproportion of punishment meted out, but by
the terror on the little one’s face. She threw herself in their path,
and to the utter astonishment alike of pupils and teachers laid hold
of the child to release her, exclaiming as she did so, “You shall not
lock her in the dark! you will kill her with fright, you cruel Madame
Broadbent!”

If Madame Broadbent had been wrathful before she was furious now. Never
in her long experience had she been so braved. Without thought, without
premeditation, she raised her heavy fan and struck sharply at Augusta.
The blow fell on her beautiful bare neck, the collar-bone snapped, as
it will do with a very slight matter, and Augusta dropped!

Cicily, waiting outside at the time, heard Madame’s raised voice and
Augusta’s impetuous remonstrance; then a thud, a fall, and a suppressed
scream from the girls; and without pausing to knock, she pushed
open the door, Cicily had been too long the recipient of Augusta’s
school-girl confidence to stand in much awe of Mrs. Broadbent at best
of times. Now she darted forward to raise her young mistress, whom
she almost worshipped, and certainly did not consult either Madame’s
feelings or dignity in the epithets she launched at her.

No one had been more electrified at the effect of that stroke with
the fan than Mrs. Broadbent’s self. She seemed petrified, and
Cicily’s indignant outburst fell on deaf ears; but as Miss Nuttall
ran for water, and Cicily cried out for a doctor, she roused to
self-consciousness, and closed the school-room door as if to keep the
outer world in ignorance of what was going on inside.

A wide latitude was then allowed for school discipline; but even Madame
Broadbent was sensible that the blow which had felled Mr. Ashton’s only
daughter was a blow to imperil her seminary.

Augusta did not revive. Miss Nuttall suggested that the school should
be dismissed, and a doctor fetched; and, before either could be
effected, Jabez was on the spot. He took in the scene at a glance;
Augusta, white as her frock, her hair all in disorder, lay extended on
a form, her head supported by the kneeling Cicily, whilst excited girls
and teachers flocked helplessly around.

“Good heavens! what is the matter? What has happened to Miss Ashton?”
was his hurried and agitated inquiry.

One said one thing, one another. Wrathful Cicily came nearest to the
mark. “That old wretch has struck ar darlin’ wi’ her great fan. Aw’m
afeared her neckbone’s brokken!”

“Impossible! She could not be so heartless!” he cried, as the group
made way for him to pass, and he knelt down opposite to the sobbing
Cicily, on the other side of the form, and sprinkled the pallid face so
dear to him with water some one had brought in.

There was no sign of revival. “My God! this is terrible! Oh, madam, how
could you do it? Mrs. Ashton will be distracted!” and he started to his
feet, inexpressible anguish in every feature. “But this is no time for
revilings. Where is the nearest doctor?”

“There is Mr. Campbell in Hanover Street—and——”

Brushing unceremoniously past his informant, he was with the Scotch
surgeon before Miss Nuttall had recovered from her surprise, or Madame
from her stupor.

Mr. Campbell was quickly on his way to attend his new patient, and
Jabez speeding towards the top of Market Street. There he hired a
Hackney coach from the stand, close as he was to home, and drove
straight to Dr. Hull’s. He bore the doctor from his unfinished dinner
with impetuosity, brooking no delay. They found Augusta Ashton faint,
pale, but restored to consciousness, in Madame’s own dingy parlour,
where the author of the mischief was doing her best to put a favourable
colour on the disaster.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-FIFTH.

RETROSPECTIVE.


The collar-bone was broken; there was no mistake about that; but Jabez,
mindful of Mrs. Ashton’s protracted anxiety, lingered no longer where
he would fain have remained than to see the surgeon prepare—under Dr.
Hull’s supervision—to reduce the fracture; a delicate process, since to
the collar-bone no splints can be applied.

Augusta’s affection for her mother overcame her pain.

“You will be careful how you tell mamma, Jabez, I know; do not frighten
her more than you can help; she will be so terribly distressed,”
faintly murmured she, as he again departed.

With all his haste and care, so much time had been spent, Mrs. Ashton’s
fears had already conjured up all manner of evils, all of course wide
of the mark. That something was wrong she felt assured, and he found
her dressing to follow her dilatory messengers. The stoppage of the
coach and his evident agitation were confirmatory; but the absolute
facts roused as much indignation as grief.

Yet Mrs. Ashton never forgot herself; and though the waiting coach bore
her to Bradshaw Street, to add her maternal reproaches to the wrathful
utterances of Cicily, the rough rebukes of Dr. Hull, and the prickings
of Madame Broadbent’s own conscience, the natural dignity of her manner
more overawed and impressed the resentful schoolmistress than all which
had gone before. She was as profuse in apologies as in extenuating
pleas, but she was not prepared to combat Mrs. Ashton’s proverbial
argumentation.

“Facts are stubborn things, madam, and she who cannot govern herself is
not fit to govern others.”

Neither coach-making nor road-making had reached the acme of
perfection, and Augusta’s removal home, without the displacement of the
bone, had to be considered.

A sedan chair—the last in the town—was still kept for invalid use at
the Infirmary. Jabez was aware of this, and before Dr. Hull could make
the suggestion he had proposed to go for it, and was back with the
black, brass-nailed sedan long before the doctors thought their patient
fit to be removed.

As the unfamiliar vehicle waited at the “Academy” door, it attracted
the notice not only of neighbours and returning school-girls, but of
passers-by, until Madame Broadbent was in a fever. The reputation of
her school was at stake, and she felt that every extra moment that
hand-carriage and wheel-carriage remained standing there, the bruit of
the lamentable occurrence was spreading farther afield.

There had been no cessation of afternoon school duties, albeit the
teachers alone presided, and discipline was somewhat relaxed. But when
patient, doctors, friends, and vehicles had gone their way, and the
school was soon after dismissed, the harrassed, agitated, and prescient
disciplinarian surrendered herself to alternate fits of hysteria,
passion, lamentation, and overweening assumption.

That first outburst over, the self-important dame stood on her “right
to maintain discipline,” even when confronted by Mr. Ashton, no longer
the easy-going, pleasant parent of a paying pupil, but the angry father
of an injured only child, who had posted from Whaley-bridge, on the
first intelligence of the mischance, leaving his business incomplete.

Not alone to the inmates of the house in Mosley-street was Augusta
Ashton precious. Notwithstanding her sometime waywardness (the result
of her father’s over-indulgence), she had endeared herself, by her
affectionate heart and winsome ways, to a wide circle of friends;
even Joshua Brookes was less grim with Augusta; so no wonder Jabez
was secretly devoted to her heart and soul. Great and general was the
sympathy expressed on the occasion.

Mrs. Chadwick and Ellen were with Mrs. Ashton before the afternoon was
out, and at Augusta’s eager desire her cousin remained behind, not
only for companionship, but as chief nurse, an office for which Ellen
had that peculiar fitness observable in some women, coupled with the
deftness and experience gained in long attendance on her father.

And now, leaving Augusta in the hands of love and skill, with all that
affection and wealth can lavish upon her in furtherance of recovery,
let us step backwards to the previous September, when Peterloo was
fresh, and Jabez yet wore his left arm in a sling.

Whaley-bridge has been mentioned more than once, for in that village,
near the high road from Manchester to Buxton, Mr. Ashton possessed
a water-mill on the picturesque banks of the river Goyt, which
there divided the counties of Cheshire and Derbyshire. It had been
established in the previous century, together with another in the
contiguous vale of Taxal, by a speculative ancestor of Mrs. Ashton,
whose old hall was in the locality. The two places had been chiefly
colonised by his workpeople, many of whom had been pauper apprentices
from Manchester and Warrington.

Besides the mill, Mr. Ashton owned the “White Hart” Inn, close to the
bridge, where the Buxton coaches stopped; and Carr Cottage, a long,
low, rough-cast building, nestling under the shadow of a fine old
farm-house which crowned the elevated ridge of Yeardsley-cum-Whaley,
lang-syne the Gothic stone Hall of the warlike Yeardsleys.

From this farm-house, Carr Cottage was separated by a retired walk at
the back, which, itself a wilderness of nettles, gave access to the
cellarage and a clear well, and led the adventurer away up the hill
between the cottage grounds and the farmer’s tall high-banked hedges,
which almost overtopped the cottage roof. And on the left of the
cottage (as viewed from the high road) spread the granaries, stabling,
and farmyard, enclosed by remains of the ancient wall, and entered by
a step or two through an ancient Gothic doorway, over which ivy and
honeysuckle clambered in luxurious rivalry.

The cottage, which on each floor contained four capacious rooms in
its length, was on the ground divided in the middle by a respectable
lobby; the house-place and kitchen lying on the left, the parlours to
the right as you entered. There were two staircases, one at each end
of the building, the one running upwards in the kitchen itself, the
other from a small enclosed space at the back of a parlour, containing
also a china closet door, and lit by a low window close to the foot of
the staircase, from which it was possible to step out into the garden,
unseen by anyone in the house. Otherwise, both chambers and parlours
had doors of communication from end to end of the building, the two
middle chambers being only accessible through the others.

The lower windows in the front—at least, those of the large
parlours—were brought close to the ground, and overlooked a charming
landscape; descending, at first suddenly, from the wide-spread
flower-garden (with its one great sycamore to the right of the cottage
for shade), then with a gradual slope to a bean-field below, to a
meadow crossed by a narrow rill, then, after a wider stretch of grass,
the alder and hazel fringe of a trout-stream, skirting the high road,
on the far side of which tall poplars waved, and in Autumn shed their
leaves in the wider waters of the Goyt fresh from the bridge, where the
road bends. Rivulets, road, and river ran parallel. And from the road a
broad wooden gate gave access (over a bridge across the trout stream)
to a wide, steep avenue between trim hedges, which rose to the level of
the cottage, in itself as delightful a retreat as any wearied denizen
of town could desire. To Mr. Ashton it was necessary as an adjunct to
his factory; an occasional home for his family in the summer, a lodge
for himself when a visit of inspection was desirable.

Hearing that the general discontent was spreading amongst his own
work-people at Whaley-bridge, Mr. Ashton, without waiting for the
stage-coach, put himself into a long-skirted drab overcoat, with high
collar and small double cape, ordered reluctant James to “find another
for Clegg,” and having stowed away a carpet bag and a case of pistols,
lest they should be molested on the road, he mounted his high gig, with
Jabez by his side, and set off to “take the bull by the horns,” as Mrs.
Ashton had advised.

Away they went through the mild September air, up London road (where
houses had been growing in the years since we scanned it last) and past
Ardwick Green Pond, where a dashing young buck, booted and spurred,
lounged at the door of the quaint “George and Dragon,” and followed
them curiously with his eyes; yet not so swiftly but Jabez had time to
recognise with accelerated pulse his former assailant, Laurence.

Longsight, Burnage, Fallowfield left behind; Stockport-bridge gained,
they go walking by their horse’s head up the steep hill, between
frowning houses, to the “Pack-Horse” in the Market-place, where the
beast was baited, and the travellers dined at the same table, Jabez not
for one moment forgetting the social distance between his master and
himself.

Again seated, they quickly left the smoke-begrimed, higgledy-piggledy
mass of brick and mortar called Stockport behind, and were away on
country roads, where yellow leaves were blown into their faces, where
brown-faced, white-headed cottage children were stripping blackberries
from the wayside brambles, or ripe nuts from the luxuriant hazels which
have since changed the very name of the Bullock-Smithy through which
they drove at a gallop to Hazelgrove.

It was a glorious treat for Jabez, was that drive, and Mr. Ashton,
conversing with him as they went, was surprised to discover his love of
Nature, and his knowledge of her secrets. This induced reminiscences of
the early years of Jabez when Simon took him pick-a-back in the fields
on Sundays; and Mr. Ashton led him on to dilate on his childhood among
his first friends, until he had a closer insight into the young man’s
heart than in all the years he had served them.

But the object of their journey had not been forgotten; and at
Disley, hearing Mr. Ashton remark that they were but three miles from
Whaley-Bridge, Jabez ventured to suggest—

“Do you not think, sir, as I am unknown in Whaley-Bridge, I might make
inquiries, and ascertain the feeling of the people better if I went on
foot, having no apparent connection with you?”

“That is a wise thought of yours, young man. Just so. I will put you
down at the next milestone. Here is a guinea for your expenses at the
‘White Hart.’ But country people are inquisitive; what do you propose
to be?”

“Well, sir, I took the liberty to bring a sketch-book with me—I don’t
get many such opportunities—I could represent myself as an artist; or I
could cram my pockets with plants and roots as I went along, and say I
was a botanist in search of specimens.”

“Stick to the artist, Jabez; our country botanists would soon floor
you on their own ground—they know more of plants than pencils, I’ll
warrant.” And Mr. Ashton, handing the reins to Jabez, took a pinch of
snuff on the strength of it.

Mr. Ashton, putting up the collar of his coat, drove direct to Carr,
much to the surprise of his unprepared overlooker and wife, who had
charge of the cottage. He said nothing of any companion; and Jabez some
twenty minutes later walked into the bar of the “White Hart,” dusty and
weary, as if with long walking; called for bread-and-cheese and ale;
intimated his intention to remain the night, if he could have a bed;
talked of the scenery, and led the host to tell of the best points for
sketching.

Professing fatigue, he kept his seat in the bar-parlour the remainder
of the day. The sling, not yet wholly discarded, drew attention, as he
expected it would. The incomers, eyeing him askance, talked politics
before him, and finding him less glib than themselves, whispered that
he was a refugee from Peterloo, and, to show their sympathy with
the party to which he was supposed to belong, freely discussed the
political aspect of the district before him.

He was young, free with his money, and they were not reticent. He found
that the overlooker had made himself, and his master through himself,
obnoxious to his weavers, and that only prompt measures would prevent
an outbreak.

The next morning Mr. Ashton put his head into the inn, greeted “Mr.
Clegg” as some one he was surprised to meet in so remote a spot, and
invited him to Carr Cottage.

Jabez accepted the invitation for the afternoon, saying he could not
spare the morning. Under pretence of sketching, he took his way by the
Goyt to the neighbourhood of the mill with pencils and sketch-book:
women and children flocked inquisitively round him in their
dinner-hour, and talked to him; then he rested in weaver’s cot, and
when he found his way to Carr in the afternoon, and sat with Mr. Ashton
for privacy under the dropping keys of the sycamore, he had brought
with him the key to the prevailing discontent.

Mr. Ashton listened, took an enormous quantity of snuff, dropped an
occasional “Just so,” and, knowing the sore, set about healing it. He
drove back to Manchester, leaving Jabez as his temporary deputy—high
honour for so young a man—and the overlooker was required to render up
his accounts.

A fortnight later, as Jabez was midway up the avenue to Carr in the
afternoon, he turned, hearing the blithe bugle of the coming Buxton
coach, and watched its dashing progress along the road. To his
astonishment it stopped at the gate. He himself reached the spot at a
run.

His eyes had not played him false. Simon Clegg, in his best clothes,
was there on the box seat; Tom Hulme and Bess and little Sim sat close
behind him. Mr. Ashton was himself an inside passenger.

In the bustle and confusion of alighting, and dragging boxes from
the boot and from the top, curiosity was kept on the stretch. It was
not until the entire party were under the roof of the cottage that
Jabez was enlightened. Tom Hulme was the new overlooker, Bess the new
caretaker of Carr Cottage, which was henceforth their rural rent-free
home: and to Simon, long disqualified by rheumatism for the wet and
slush of the tannery was given the charge of the garden, with a boy
under him. And of all the group old Simon and little Sim were most
delighted.

Some eight months before, Sim (then about two years old) had slipped
on the frosty stones in the old Long Millgate Yard and, rolling down
its rugged declivity, was supposed to have injured his spine, and he
had been too delicate ever since to run about freely. To the child,
therefore, whose shoulders seemed unnaturally high, the change from
the stifling court was something too exuberant for expression. To
Simon Clegg, who, in losing his crony Matt, had felt the old haunts
oppressive, the bountiful expanse of nature before him, and the
comfortable fragrant home, were matters of deep thankfulness.

“Moi lad,” said he to Jabez, when the latter was about to depart with
Mr. Ashton, after they were fairly inducted, “ar Bess said thah would
be a Godsend to us, an’ thah has bin. This Paradise o’ posies has o’
grown eawt o’ thy cradle. God bless thee!”

“I think, my dear, the experiment will succeed. There is a matronly
air of respectability about Mrs. Hulme, that will help to uphold
her husband’s position amongst the workpeople, and I can trust his
soldierly discipline for keeping the rebellious in order.”

Thus said Mr. Ashton to his good lady, sitting by the fire-side after
supper, the night of his return home. Then, after a little pondering
and trifling with his snuff-box, he added, as if reflectively—

“It is all very well, my dear, to serve the young man’s friends and
ourselves at the same time, but I should like to do something for Jabez
himself. It is entirely to his clear head and his tact that we owe the
preservation of peace at Whaley-Bridge. I should like to give _him_ a
rise.”

“My dear William, make no more haste than good speed, and never do
things in a hurry,” replied his calm proverbial philosopher. “We must
not excite the envy of his fellow-clerks, or we shall surround him with
enemies from the first. In removing his humble friends you have cleared
one barrier to his advancement.”

Mr. Ashton did not say “Just so!” for a wonder; he turned his gold
box round and round in his fingers, and at length gave utterance to a
thought which took Mrs. Ashton by surprise.

“If we remove all the young man’s old associations, don’t you think we
ought to provide him with new ones?”

“I think, William, we ought to ‘leave well alone;’ smooth paths are
slippery paths. The young man will be out of his time in six months;
you can then advance him if you think proper—in the warehouse—but I do
not feel disposed to open our drawing-room to him if that is what you
are driving at;” and she drew herself up as if her dignity had received
a blow.

“We-ll no—not exactly!” and Mr. Ashton, unable to express what he did
mean exactly, shuffled and fidgeted till he upset his snuff on the
Brussels carpet.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-SIXTH.

ON THE PORTICO STEPS.


Between that expedition to Whaley-Bridge, with its terminal connubial
conversation, and the breakage of Augusta Ashton’s collar-bone, rather
more than six months intervened—six months during which Mr. Clegg,
as his good master had anticipated, felt the solitary state of his
trim sitting-room somewhat oppressive, the permission to receive
his old friends becoming a nullity on their removal. He occupied a
position midway between parlour and kitchen—above his old associates
of the porringers, the fireside settle, and the sanded stone floor,
and beneath the family seated round the tea-urn, on cushioned chairs
and Brussels carpet. Towards the former he cast few backward looks
of regret—he had put his past behind him—but, oh! who shall tell his
unuttered longings for the “Open Sesame!” to that paradise of which he
had had one rapturous glimpse, and one only—that paradise where his
master’s daughter, so high above him, moved like a seraph, and filled
the air with harmony!

I am afraid that at this time he brooded over his orphanhood, and that
unknown father who had disappeared so mysteriously, and strained his
soaring thoughts in their flight towards possibilities more than was
good for him. He was too much alone for one of his years, and there
were times in those long candle-lit winter evenings, when books and
pencils dropped from his wearied hands, and for lack of a companion he
held dreamy converse with the fire.

Of course his library was restricted, and there were no institutions
in Manchester at that time where young men of his class could meet for
mutual improvement, or that mental polish caused by the attrition of
mind upon mind. Occasionally, at long intervals, and at first to the
utter confusion of James, Captain Travis had inquired for “Mr. Clegg,”
and been shown into the little sitting-room, with a disregard to
“caste” very creditable to both of them; and now and then Mr. Chadwick
and Mr. Ashton would drop in together for half-an-hour’s chat, the
gratitude of the former being deeper than the surface.

But rarely did a feminine face save Cicily’s brighten up his solitude,
and she, devoted to her young mistress, had always something to say
about Augusta, if only what she wore or how she looked, which sent him
off into dreamland immediately.

Sunday was a very chequered day, when he missed his old friends most.
True, he followed the family to church, perhaps carried Augusta’s
prayer-book, exchanged a word of kindly greeting with old Mrs. Clowes,
and Parson Brookes, who was not as hale as he had been; but there was
no old Simon to grip his hand, no Bess to give him a motherly smile,
and unless the weather was fine enough for a ramble in the fields with
Nelson for companion, the rest of the day was very dull indeed.

The fan which broke Augusta’s collar-bone broke down a barrier for
Jabez. No personal sacrifice attended the service he rendered. He
but went and came as an active messenger. But he went and came with
intelligence and promptitude, and exercised for mother and daughter
both the care and forethought of a much older man.

In the father’s absence the father was not missed. What came under Mrs.
Ashton’s own eye Mrs. Ashton could appreciate, and the commendation of
Dr. Hull was not without its weight. He had said,

“Capital fellow to send for a doctor, that messenger of yours, Mrs.
Ashton! A determined, persistent fellow! Would see me, and haul me off
with only half a dinner, though I protested, and he had already got a
surgeon there before me!”

His thought about the sedan chair, which he had accompanied to Mosley
Street to insure care on the part of the chairmen, and had ordered
into the very lobby of the house; the cautious manner in which he had
lifted Augusta thence, and borne her to the ready couch, coupled with
his protection of her daughter in the theatre the night before, weighed
down the scale already trembling in the balance, and Mrs. Ashton’s
“Jabez, I am deeply indebted to you,” was not mere words. He was her
messenger to the Chadwicks, her amanuensis to Mr. Ashton; and when
Ellen and her mother arrived somewhere about tea-time, for the second
time he was invited to join their party; and one, if not two, pair of
cheeks burned as the invitation was given.

Then, the night Mr. Ashton returned home, to find Augusta an invalid,
he was gratified to see Jabez again at the tea-table, and after that
at odd times, until the restraint upon him gradually wore away, and he
would read to Augusta and Ellen, as the latter sat at work, and do his
best to make the time pass pleasantly.

Next Mr. Ashton took it into his head to teach him backgammon and
cribbage, to help to make his own evenings at home more lively.

And Mrs. Chadwick, who for some occult reason had resisted her
husband’s desire to show courtesy to his preserver, could scarcely be
less gracious than her grander sister, who owed him so much less; so
now the green-parlour door in Oldham Street was opened to him, and as
Jabez refreshed his memory with Hogarth’s prints, he felt that he had
made another step up the ladder.

Those were halcyon days; while Augusta, too tall to be robust,
recovered so slowly, and was so much gratified by his attempts to
entertain her. Halcyon days for more than one.

Yet, ere Jabez was out of his apprenticeship, or Augusta had left her
pillowed sofa, a pebble was thrown into the stream which broke the
surface of the tranquil waters, and disturbed them for ever.

Mr. Ashton was one of the original shareholders in the Portico, a
classic stone building erected in 1806 as a library and reading-room,
on the other side of Mosley Street, which, with its pillared _facade_
and flight of steps, like an Ionic temple, looked down on the plain
red-brick front of the Assembly Rooms, though its opposite neighbour
stood quite as high in repute, and was equally exclusive in its
constitution.

Mr. Aspinall, the Cannon Street cotton-merchant (who dined with the
Scramble Club, instituted by business men whose homes were in the
suburbs), was likewise a shareholder in the Portico; and from constant
meeting at the long tables within the book-shelved, galleried walls
of its lofty reading-room, he and Mr. Ashton had a tolerably lengthy
acquaintance, although it had never ripened into intimacy—the men were
so dissimilar.

Charlotte Walmsley was naturally troubled by the result of Madame
Broadbent’s notions of discipline, and not unnaturally (considering the
condition in which Ben Travis had taken him home) blamed her husband
as the primary cause. As naturally he shifted the onus to the shoulders
of Laurence Aspinall, and, taking him to task, plainly told him he
ought to apologise. Laurence snatched at the proposal.

“My dear Jack, nothing would please me better! I’ll make a thousand
apologies, if you’ll only introduce me.”

John Walmsley had had quite enough of introductions; besides, he stood
in some awe of Mrs. Ashton, and did not know how she might take it,
especially as his friend Aspinall had acquired the character of “a wild
spark.” He emphatically declined. But if Laurence Aspinall once set his
mind on a thing he would attain it, if within the range of possibility,
whether by fair means or foul, whatever might be the consequences.

For a few days he was on his best behaviour at home; and having won
his father over by expressions of deep contrition, and promises of
reformation, and the assurance that he would never again do anything
“unbecoming a gentleman,” he prevailed on him to introduce him to Mr.
Ashton, with a view to making his own apologies in person.

“Well, Laurence, you can go with me to the Portico tomorrow morning,
and if Mr. Ashton is there we will see what can be done;” the tone in
which this was said clearly implying, “If _we_ seek an introduction to
the Ashton’s for the purpose of making the _amende honorable_ as befits
gentlemen, there can be no doubt of its acceptance.”

But when they met Mr. Ashton on the steps of the Portico the following
morning, the self-complacence of the lofty gentleman received a slight
but uncontemplated check. Mr. Ashton nodded to Mr. Aspinall with a
beaming face, and would have passed his acquaintance with a mere “Good
morning,” but the other stopped, and after shaking hands, and remarking
that trade was slack, presented, with due formality, the handsome,
elegant six feet of dandyism who bore him company.

“Mr. Ashton, let me make you acquainted with my son, sir—Mr. Ashton, my
son Laurence; Laurence, Mr. Ashton.”

The young gentleman raised his stylish beaver from his rich coppery
curls, and bowed with courtly grace in acknowledgment of Mr. Ashton’s
formal bow, whilst his father continued, almost in the tone of one who
confers an honour—

“The fact is, my son, sir, desires an opportunity of expressing to Miss
Ashton his deep regret for the indiscretion of which he was guilty in
the lobby of the Theatre Royal, some ten days back.”

The smile faded from the face of Mr. Ashton, who, with a reserve
very foreign to him, put his hand into his pocket for his snuff-box
instead of extending it to the young man, and, tapping it with a little
impatience, caught at his words.

“Indiscretion, sir? What you are pleased to call ‘indiscretion’ has
placed my daughter in the doctors’ hands with a broken collar-bone.”

Before Mr. Aspinall could reply, Laurence, better skilled to temporise,
interposed.

“So, to my infinite regret, my friend Mr. Walmsley has already informed
me, sir. And I assure you I take shame to myself that any word or
action of mine should have led to consequences so lamentable. No one,
sir, can deplore the injury Miss Ashton has sustained, more than
myself—the unhappy cause. It is this, Mr. Ashton, which impels me to
seek an opportunity to express the sensibility of my grave offence, and
my extreme regret, to Mrs. Ashton and Miss Ashton in person. I cannot
rest until I have implored their pardon!”

The tones in which this apologetic speech was delivered were at once
so suave, remorseful, and sympathetic that Mr. Ashton, whose sternness
was seldom of long duration, was considerably mollified. He looked at
the handsome, dashing blade before him, whose blue eyes seemed full of
gentleness and pity, and felt as though the boy he had seen torturing
old Brookes, and the yeomanry officer who had slashed at Mr. Chadwick
and Jabez Clegg, could never be one and the same. He reverted to the
latter circumstance—

“I think, young sir, you owe an apology to someone else under my
roof—the young man who received the sabre-cut you designed for my
brother-in-law, Mr. Chadwick.”

Aspinall’s handsome face flushed. His father’s quick reply gave him
time to think.

“You surely, Mr. Ashton, would not expect _my_ son to apologise to an
apprentice-lad, a mere College-boy.”

“Just so! I would expect him to apologise to _anyone_ he had injured,
were it a beggar!”

Here the son interposed: “My good sir, do not remind me of the horrors
of that dreadful day! I shudder when I recall it. We acted under
orders, and I swear I was utterly unconscious and irresponsible for my
actions throughout the whole affray.”

And Laurence seemed desirous to wash his hands of the responsibility.

“The fact is,” said Mr. Aspinall, coming to his son’s rescue, “Laurence
had taken more wine than his young head would stand on both occasions.
It takes years to season a cask, you know, Mr. Ashton, and we must not
be too hard on young fellows, if they slip sometimes. We have all had
some wild oats to sow.”

This was a platitude of the period, but Mr. Ashton’s “Just so!” was not
a cordial assent; and Laurence, fearing the conversation was taking
an unfortunate turn, led it back to its original request. But Mr.
Ashton tapped his box, and, offering it to his interlocutors, took a
pinch himself, and then a second, before he came to a decision. It was
evidently a debatable question.

“I will mention your request to Mrs. Ashton, young gentleman, and if
I find her agreeable to receive you, I can take you across with me
to-morrow morning, provided you meet me here. Good day.”

Mr. Aspinall’s “Good day” was somewhat stiff. He had held his head very
high all his life, metaphorically as well as physically, and was not
disposed to be snubbed by one whose status he considered scarcely on a
par with his own. He was disposed to look on his son’s peccadilloes as
some of those “wild oats” which young gentlemen of spirit were expected
to sow, and considered his fine figure and beautiful features, his
education, accomplishments, and prospects, passports to any society;
and that Mr. Ashton should for one moment hesitate to open his heart
and his doors to _his_ son, was an indignity not to be borne.

“The fact is, Laurence, that, if you make an apology to those people
after this, you have less spirit than I take you to have!” was his
conclusion.

“Never you mind, father, I know what I’m about. I want to get my foot
in there,” answered subtle Laurence. And he managed it.

Mr. Ashton went home to dinner full of his conversation on the Portico
steps, and set his romantic daughter’s heart in a flutter by mooting
the point at issue in her presence.

“Oh, papa! do bring him; I want to see him again, he is so handsome!”

“‘Handsome is that handsome does,’ Augusta,” was Mrs. Ashton’s
commentary on that young lady’s impulsive exclamation.

“Charlotte says he is very wild,” remarked Ellen, “and I feel as if I
should shudder at the sight of him, after his conduct at Peterloo.”

“You don’t shudder when Captain Travis calls, and you don’t shut the
door in John Walmsley’s face, and they may have done things just as
bad, if you did but know it, Ellen,” retorted Augusta, standing on the
defensive for the absent “Adonis.”

“Just so, my dear, so they might,” admitted Mr. Ashton, whilst Ellen
held her peace, silenced by something in her cousin’s retort.

“Yes, William, but look on the poor bandaged neck and shoulders of our
child, and think of that ruffian’s cruelty to Jabez and others when a
schoolboy. I don’t think either John Walmsley or Mr. Travis could have
done anything so bad.”

“Well, but, mamma,” argued spoiled Augusta, “Jabez forgave him; and
I think Madame Broadbent is more to blame than Mr. Aspinall—he only
offered to bring me home.”

Mrs. Ashton shook her head as she rose from table.

“Besides, mamma, he says he only wants to apologise, and you know you
need not invite him again unless you like. It would be so rude to
refuse.”

“Just so, just so,” assented Mr. Ashton, willing to humour his pet in
her invalid state, “and perhaps it might do the young fellow good to
see the consequences of his folly.”

As usual, where Augusta enlisted her father on her side, Mrs. Ashton’s
dissent grew feebler.

The next day Mr. Ashton made at least _one_ false step in his life, and
brought over his own threshold a blight.

Faultless were the curves of the stylish hat, faultless the fit of
pantaloons, and coat, and Hessian boots, and York-tan gloves; graceful
the figure they adorned; graceful the apology tendered so adroitly—more
to the mother than to the daughter—but if ever a graceless
good-for-nothing cast a shadow on a good man’s hearth, it was the wolf
in sheep’s clothing whose hungry jaws were watering for the pet lamb of
the fold, and who made so courtly an exit full in the sight of Jabez,
as he crossed the end of the hall to his solitary dinner in his own
room.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-SEVENTH.

MANHOOD.


Young as he was, Laurence Aspinall was wont to say he “wouldn’t give
a fig for any man who could not be anything in any society; and the
Laurence Aspinall of the cock-pit, the ring, and the bar-parlour, was
a very different being from the Laurence Aspinall of the Assembly or
drawing-room. He could be a blackguard amongst blackguards, a gentleman
amongst ladies.”

Nature had done much for him, art had done more. Nature had given
him at twenty-one a symmetrical figure, and art an easy carriage.
Nature had given him the clear pink-and-white complexion which so
often accompanies ruddy hair, and art had trained his early growth of
whisker to counteract effeminacy of skin. Nature had given him a lofty
forehead, art had clustered his bronze curls so as to hide how much
that brow receded. Nature had given an aquiline nose, eyes of purest
azure, flexile lips with curves like Cupid’s bow; and art had taught
that eyes set so close, whose hue was so apt to change as temper swayed
him, and lips so cruelly thin, might be tutored to obey volition, and
contradict themselves, if so their owner willed. To crown all, nature
had gifted him with a flexible voice, and art had set it to music.

The Liverpool schoolmaster had obeyed Mr. Aspinall’s instructions to
the letter; all that education and accomplishments could do to polish
and refine the physical man into the gentleman, as the word was then
understood, had been done for him; but under the stucco was the rough
brickwork Bob the groom had heaped together, and which no trained or
loving hand had removed.

Be sure Laurence Aspinall did not carry this analysis into society,
written on his forehead. Instead, he had cultivated the art of
fascination; and in the brief space occupied by this apologetic
introductory visit in Mosley Street he not only contrived to dazzle
the romance-beclouded eyes of Augusta, but, what was almost as much
to his purpose, to win over Mr. Ashton, and to weaken the prejudice
of Miss Augusta’s less pliant mamma. Ellen Chadwick was the only one
on whom he made no impression, the only one who retained a previous
opinion—confirmed. Possibly, as Charlotte Walmsley’s sister she
knew something of his life below the surface, and had imbibed that
sister’s notion that he “led John Walmsley away.” Possibly, too, as
Charles Chadwick’s daughter, she contrasted the silken speech of the
drawing-room dandy with the hectoring, sword-in-hand, yeomanry cavalry
lieutenant who, in striking at her father, had wounded Jabez his
deliverer instead.

At all events, she met the enthusiastic admiration of Augusta after his
departure, the gratified encomiums of her uncle, and the more subdued
approbation of her aunt, with the unvarying expression, “He would have
murdered my dear father but for Jabez Clegg, and Mr. Clegg is worth a
hundred of him.”

Mr. Laurence knew better than to presume on that introduction all at
once. From their gardens and greenhouses at Ardwick and Fallowfield,
he sent small baskets of early flowers and fruit to Mrs. Ashton, for
her daughter, with courteous inquiries; but he allowed several days to
elapse before he presented himself in person, and then his call was of
the briefest.

He knew he had prejudice to overcome, and worked his way gradually.
Meanwhile Augusta progressed favourably; and if Aspinall grew in favour
with the family, so did Jabez.

May, sweet-scented month of promise, brought to Jabez Clegg in 1820
his natural and legal heritage—manhood and manhood’s freedom. He was
no longer an apprentice bound to a master by the will of others. He
had a right to think and act for himself, subject only to the laws of
God and of the realm. True, that free agency brought with it a train
of responsibilities, but the new _man_ was not the one to overlook or
ignore the fact. He had thought long and keenly of the coming change,
and all it might involve, months before it came.

His fixed wages as an indoor apprentice, according to indenture, were
no great matter; but, supplemented by coin he extracted from his
paint-box after business hours, he had found a margin for saving,
besides contributing to the humble wants of his early fosterers. The
latter duty he had never neglected, but Simon was as sternly just as
the lad had been gratefully generous, and, even when poverty bit the
hardest, would never accept the whole of his earnings.

“Si thi, Jabez, if thah dunnot keep summat fur thisel’ to put by
fur a nest-egg, thah’ll ne’er see the good o’ thi own earnin’s, an’
thah’ll lose heart in toime,” the old tanner had been wont to say, when
sturdily limiting the extent to which his foster-son should open his
small purse.

So Jabez, leading a steady, industrious life, spending little on
personal gratification, save what he invested in books, had quite a
little store laid by—the result of very small savings—against the
time when he might have to shift for himself. Two things had troubled
him—the possibility of having to find a situation elsewhere, Mr. Ashton
having said no word of retaining him, though, on the contrary, he had
said nothing of his removal; and the necessity for quitting the house
which had been to him a home so long that even the grumbling cook and
the affectionate dog had welded themselves into his daily life, how
much more the kind master and mistress, and that beatific vision, their
beautiful, bewitching daughter, who had held him in vassalage from
the very day of his apprenticeship, and tyrannised over him as only a
wayward, spoiled beauty—child or woman—could.

The bright morning of the fifth of May set this at rest. He was
called into the inner counting-house, and passed the high stools of
inquisitive-eyed, quill-driving clerks with a palpitating heart,
conscious how much depended on the issue of that interview.

As he opened the curtained glass door, to his surprise he found himself
confronted by not only Mr. Ashton, but Mr. Chadwick, and Simon Clegg,
who had been brought from Whaley-Bridge for the occasion.

Business men, as a rule, are not demonstrative over business, and after
the first salutations and surprised greetings, the congratulations of
the day were soon said, and the stereotyped “And now to business” put
sentiment to flight. And yet not entirely so, as will be seen.

There was nothing luxurious in that counting-house of the past. Besides
the high desk and stool, it contained an oilcloth-topped hexagon table,
with a deep rim of partitioned drawers, three wooden chairs, a sort
of fire-guard fender, and a poker; but there was neither carpet nor
oil-cloth on the floor, and the walls had but a dim recollection of
paint.

Mr. Ashton, snuff-box in hand, occupied one of these chairs; Mr.
Chadwick, resting hands and chin on a stout walking-stick, another; the
third, a little apart, had been assigned to old Simon (now on the shady
side of seventy). Jabez remained standing.

Mr. Ashton, as was his manner, tapping his fingers on his snuff-box lid
whilst he spoke, opened fire, “No doubt, Jabez, you have been expecting
me to say something respecting your prospects and position when your
indentures are given up?”

“Well, sir,” answered Jabez with a frank smile, “I believe I have.”

“Just so! I knew you would. It was but likely. And I should have spoken
to you some time since, but for brother Chadwick here. Both Mrs. Ashton
and myself have watched your conduct and progress, during the whole
term of your apprenticeship, with entire satisfaction.”

Here a pinch of snuff emphasised the sentence, and both Simon and Jabez
felt their cheeks begin to glow.

“You have been unusually steady and persevering—have not been merely
obedient, but obliging, and your rectitude does full credit to the
‘honourable’ name Parson Brookes gave to you.”

This was quite a long speech for Mr. Ashton; he paused to take breath;
and old Simon, proud of the young man as if he had been his own son,
feeling the encomium as some sort of halo round his own grey head,
exclaimed—

“Aw’m downreet preawd to yer [hear] yo’ say it, sir. It’ll mak’ ar
Bess’s heart leap wi’ joy.”

But Jabez, blushing, half ashamed of hearing his own praises rung out
as from a belfry, could only stammer forth—

“I’ve endeavoured to do my duty, that is all, sir.”

“A—ll!” interjected Mr. Chadwick, in his imperfect speech, “Nelson
sa—said du—u—ty was all Engla—and expected of ev—ev’ry man, but it
w—won the b—battle of Tr—Trafalgar!”

“Duty wins the battle of life, brother,” put in Mrs. Ashton, who had
quietly entered the counting-house by the door behind Jabez.

“Just so, just so!” assented Mr. Ashton, as he rose and handed his
chair to the lady whose stately presence seemed to fill the room; “and
Jabez has only to continue doing his duty to win his battle of life, I
take it. But to our business. You have hitherto served us well, Jabez,
in the warehouse and out of it; you have been doubly useful to me as a
designer and as a detector of the roguery and mismanagement of others.
Then, to my daughter, who is far dearer than either warehouse or trade,
you have rendered more than one service.”

“Oh, sir, do not name it, I beg. It has been my highest pleasure to
serve Miss Ashton—or yourself,” Jabez exclaimed, the two last words
rising to his lips simultaneously with the thought that his sudden
outburst might fail of appreciation by Miss Ashton’s wealthy relatives.

“Just so! but I must name it, Jabez, as a reason for my proposal to
retain you in my employ, and for assigning to you a situation and
salary higher than is usually accorded to an apprentice just out of
his time. But as you have shown stability and judgment beyond your
years, and I know you to be honourable in _all_ respects, I feel I am
justified in making the offer.”

Mr. Ashton then stated, with a little seasoning of snuff, the salary
he proposed to give the young man, and the duties he required as an
equivalent, if Jabez accepted his proposition.

The eyes of Jabez sparkled and his cheeks glowed. As for Simon, he
seemed dumb with delight and astonishment at the good fortune of the
foundling.

“IF!” cried Jabez, “there can be no ‘if,’ sir; you overpower
me with an offer so far above my deserts. I accept it most gratefu——”

“Stay, Mr. Clegg,” interrupted Mrs. Ashton, as Mr. Chadwick raised his
head from its rest on his hands and stick, and made an ineffectual
effort to speak. “‘Think twice before you speak once,’ my bro——”

“Oh, madam! there is no need,” Jabez began, but she silenced him with a
mere gesture of her raised hand; and Mrs. Ashton, acting as interpreter
for her slow-tongued brother-in-law, resumed—

“You have done _us_ some services, Mr. Clegg, but ‘a man will give all
he possesses for his life,’ and Mr. Chadwick feels that his debt to you
is greater than ours.”

Jabez looked from one to another, bewildered.

Mr. Ashton took up the thread—“Just so! and that brings me to the point
we have been driving at. You see, Jabez, Mr. Chadwick is not so capable
of managing his business as he used to be; things go wrong he scarcely
knows how, and he is desirous to bring some one into his warehouse on
whom he can rely. He therefore offers to take you at a higher salary
than I think at all suitable for so young a man, and if you prove your
competence to take the management within a reasonable time, to give it
over into your hands, and ultimately—it may be in a very few years—to
give you a small partnership interest in the concern.”

It is difficult to say whether Jabez or Simon was the most completely
stunned.

“You must not look on this altogether as a testimony to your business
qualifications, Jabez, I think,” continued Mr. Ashton, “but as the
outflow of a grateful heart, and the proposition of a man who had no
son capable of keeping his trade together. Is not that so?”—turning to
Mr. Chadwick.

“Cer—certainly!”

Jabez looked from one to another, then to Simon, but no help was
forthcoming from that quarter.

Mrs. Ashton came to his relief: “I think, Mr. Clegg, you had better
‘look before you leap.’ Whatever decision you make will equally satisfy
us. But I see you need time to consider. Suppose you consult your
foster-father, and give Mr. Ashton your decision at the outcome-supper
to-night.”

The hesitation of Jabez was only momentary. We are told that all the
marvels and glories of Paradise were revealed to Mahomet before a
single drop of water had time to flow from a pitcher overturned in his
upward flight; and even whilst Mrs. Ashton spoke, Jabez had time to
think.

“Thank you, madam,” said he, “but I need no deliberation. I know not
for whose kindness to be most grateful; but I do know that I should be
most ungrateful if I were to quit the master and mistress to whom both
myself and my dear friends owe so very much, for the first tempting
offer made to me. Mr. Chadwick overrates my service; Mr. Mabbott
rendered quite as efficient aid; besides, I have no acquaintance with
the manufacture of piece-goods, and have no right to take advantage of
Mr. Chadwick’s extreme generosity, knowing my own disqualifications.
And pardon my saying so—if Mr. Chadwick has no mercantile son, he
may some day have a son-in-law better fitted in every way for the
office and promise held out to me.—I trust, Mr. Chadwick, you will not
consider me ungracious in declining your liberal offer, but indeed I
have been trained to the small-ware manufacture, and here lies my duty,
for here I feel I may be able to render something of a _quid pro quo_.”

Before anyone had time for reply, the Infirmary clock struck twelve;
and as if simultaneously, there was a rush from the warehouse into the
yard, an outcry and a din, as if Babel had broken loose, the sacred
precincts of the counting house was invaded, and Jabez was carried off
_vi et armis_.



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-EIGHTH.

ONCE IN A LIFE.


Customs change with the manners of the times, and as the apprentice
is no longer the absolute bond-slave of his master, release from the
seven years bondage is now seldom accompanied by the active and noisy
demonstration which of old marked that epoch of a tradesman’s or an
artisan’s career.

But, if the sudden uproar which chased quiet from the precincts of
Mr. Ashton’s warehouse and manufactory when the Infirmary clock told
noon, broke prematurely upon the conference in the counting-house,
it was not unexpected. Every apprentice had been similarly greeted
at the same period of his life. Until the clock proclaimed twelve,
business routine had been undisturbed, but those twelve beats of the
timekeeper’s hammer had been the signal for every apprentice and
workman on the premises to rush pell-mell into the yard, each bearing
with him some implement or symbol of his trade, anything which would
clash or clang being preferred. Remnants of fringe, bed-lace, and
carpet-binding, waved and fluttered like streamers from the hands of
the women; umbrella sticks were flourished; strings of waste ferrules,
brass wheels, brace-buckles, button and tassel-moulds, cops, and
spindles were jingled and jangled together; tin cans were beaten with
picking-rods, punches, hammers, leather stamps, and other tools, by
apprentices and men; whilst Jabez himself, hoisted on the shoulders
of the two smallware-weavers who had seized and borne him from his
master’s presence, claiming him as one of their own body, a recognised
lawful member of their craft, was paraded round and round that inner
court-yard, with the crowd in extemporised procession, amid shouts,
hurrahs, songs, and that peculiar instrumental accompaniment which
was—noise, not—music.

The household servants had crowded to the scullery door, clerks stood
aloof under the gateway, where Simon Clegg kept them company in an
ecstasy of satisfaction; Mr. and Mrs. Ashton and Mr. Chadwick surveyed
the proceedings from the counting house window, whilst even Ellen and
Augusta were curious enough to look on from those back hall steps where
they had once before received the hero of that scene, wounded, from a
very different one.

More than six years had elapsed since the last indoor apprentice had
been borne in triumph round that yard (Kit Townley’s indentures had
been prematurely cancelled), and Jabez may be pardoned if he contrasted
the two occasions, and construed the wilder excitement and enthusiasm
of this in his own favour, when his employers and their daughter
noticed it also.

“It is easy to tell what a favourite Jabez must be in the warehouse, by
the uproar. The last outcome, I remember, was quite tame beside this.”

“Well, Augusta,” answered Ellen, “I believe he deserves it. I know my
father thinks there is not such another young man as Mr. Clegg in all
Manchester.”

“Yes, he’s very kind, and obliging, and clever, and perserving, and all
that, and I like him very well; but then you know, Ellen, he is not a
gentleman, and he is not handsome by any means,” responded Augusta, in
quite a patronising tone.

Ellen looked grave.

“He is all that is good and noble, if he was not born a gentleman; and
_I_ think him handsome. He has a frank, open, expressive countenance,
and a good figure, and good manners, and what more would you have?”

Augusta turned her head sharply, and looked up archly in her cousin’s
face.

“It’s well Captain Travis does not hear you, Ellen, or he might be
jealous of the prentice-knight,” she said, banteringly.

Ellen coloured painfully.

“When shall I make you understand that Mr. Travis is nothing to me?”
asked she.

“When my cousin makes me understand that she is nothing to Mr. Travis,”
was the quick reply, as Jabez was being borne past for the last time,
and the young ladies once more waved their handkerchiefs in salutation.

It may be very gratifying and very triumphant to be borne aloft on
other men’s shoulders, but it is neither dignified, nor graceful, nor
comfortable; and Jabez, being carried off bareheaded, had neither hat
nor cap to wave in return. He made the best use of his right hand,
his left being required to steady himself, yet I am afraid he was more
desirous to make a good impression on the romantic young lady muffled
in a shawl—to hide the swathing bandages—than on his less-attractive
and elder champion by her side.

It was half-past twelve; the dinner-bell rang, Jabez was lowered to
_terra firma_, and there was a general rush to the packing-room, which
had been cleared out to receive tressels and planks for tables, and an
abundant supply of cold meat, cheese, bread, and ale, provided by the
master.

And then and there, before a mouthful was cut, Mr. Ashton, standing
at the head of the table, with Mr. Chadwick by his side, and Simon
Clegg close at hand, presented Jabez with his indentures, with many
expressions of his good will and his good opinion, and an intimation to
those assembled that Mr. Clegg would in all probability continue in his
employ, an announcement which was received with loud acclaim: and the
hungry operatives set to at the collation with right good will.

This was the master’s feast; that of the apprentice, for which it was
customary to save up long in advance, was at night, and held at the
neighbouring “Concert-Hall Tavern” in York Street, opposite to the then
“Gentleman’s Concert-Hall.”

Prior to that, however, Mrs. Ashton had somewhat to say to the young
man, and she chose his own sitting-room to say it in. Of course, his
apprenticeship over, it behoved him to shift his quarters; and he had
looked forward to his abdication with regret undreamed of by Mrs.
Ashton, or she would certainly have hesitated ere she made the proposal
she did.

As it was, she kindly and thoughtfully considered that Jabez had no
good parental home to return to; that she had no other use for the
rooms he occupied, so she proposed to him that he should continue to
occupy them whilst he thought fit, since he had elected to remain in
their service.

He had already looked at lodgings in Charlotte Street, close at hand;
but this unexpected proposal came like a reprieve to an exile, and
he was as prompt in his acceptance as he had been in that previous
decision which had so thoroughly swamped all Mr. Chadwick’s plans
for his advancement. His eager “Oh, madam, you cannot mean it! You
overwhelm me with kindness. Remain under this roof! It is a privilege
I had not anticipated, and I shall be proud to embrace it!” sent Mrs.
Ashton away well pleased.

It was doubly satisfactory to find the comforts of their home
appreciated after seven years’ experience, and to be able to refute
Mr. Ashton’s theory that “all young men like to shake a loose leg, and
Jabez would be too glad to escape from grumbling Kezia’s jurisdiction
to accept the offer.”

Mr. Ashton, however, did not abandon the opinion he had formed. “I’ll
wager my gold snuff-box against a button-mould,” asserted he, “that
Clegg only said ‘Yes’ because gratitude would not let him say ‘Nay!’
It’s not likely a young man would care to be always under the eyes of a
master or mistress, however steady he may be.”

Ah, but neither Mr. nor Mrs. Ashton knew there was a magnet under their
roof, stronger than all the ordinary inducements which might otherwise
have drawn him away—and perhaps it was as well for him they did not.

Simon, who was present at the time, seemed literally overpowered with
gratitude for all the good which was falling into the lap of the child
of his adoption. He, however, took his own views of the matter, views
not calculated to puff Jabez up in his own esteem, and when Mrs. Ashton
was gone he broke out—

“Oh, Jabez, lad! but thah’s lit on thi feet! Thah’s bin a good lad, aw
reckon, an’ thah’s sarved thi master gradely; but thah sees many a lad
does that as never gets a lift such as thah’s getten. an’ aw canno’
but thenk it o’ comes o’ that prayer o’ thy Israelite neamesake, as aw
towt thee when thou wer no bigger nor sixpenn’orth o’ copper. yo’ hanna
furgetten it, aw hope?”

No, Jabez had not forgotten it! It would be strange if he had. Nay,
only that morning, in the flush of success he had carried from the
counting-house, with the buoyant presumption of youth, a conviction
that it was not so much a prayer as a prophecy nearing fulfilment.

Simon brought his soaring pinions down from their Icarian flight.

“Well, lad, it may be ‘the Lord has enlarge thi coast,’ but if so be He
han, thah sees theer’s moore room fur thee to slip as well as to stond,
and theer’s moore rayson whoi thah shouldn be thenkful and humble! for
the big book says, ‘Let him that stondeth tak’ heed lest he fall,’ an’
aw shouldna loike t’ see thi young yead torned wi proide.”

His lecture was somewhat of a cold shower-bath to Jabez in his hour of
triumph, but no doubt it was salutary in its ultimate effects. At all
events, it kept the vaulting ambition of the new man a little in check.

People—especially work-people—then observed early hours. At seven
o’clock the outcome supper was on the tables at the “Concert Hall
Tavern;” and the elder apprentices, and all such of the workmen as were
absolutely engaged on the premises, were there to partake when Jabez
found old Simon a seat, himself taking the head of the table, with the
two senior apprentices on his right hand and left.

The cost of such suppers usually fell on the apprentice, but sometimes,
as in this case, the master added his quota. If plain, the provision
was substantial and ample. Rounds of beef and legs of mutton, piles of
floury potatoes, and red cones of carrot on pale beds of mashed turnip,
smoked on the board, and the two-pronged forks and horn-hafted knifes
were flanked with earthenware jugs and horns of ale.

It was the first essay of Jabez in the art of carving, and no doubt
he made rather an unskilful president. But in the then condition
of the lower classes a large joint of meat was a rare sight to a
working-man, and so he cut away with no fear of critics. Amidst the
rattle of cutlery and crockery, and the rapid play of jaws, beef and
mutton disappeared, and were succeeded by a tremendous plum-pudding—the
contribution of old Mrs. Clowes—and half a cheese, which came to
the table in the then common japanned receptacle locally known as a
cheese-biggin.

Appetite and the viands fled together, the noise of tongues succeeded
to the noise of knives and forks, and Lancashire humour vented itself
in jest and repartee, sometimes coarse, but seldom mischievous. Old
Simon enjoyed it immensely. It seemed like a renewal of his own youth.

It was not, however, until the supper-table was cleared that the
chief ceremonial of the evening took place. Then an arm-chair was
mounted upon the table, in which Jabez was enthroned, the two eldest
apprentices standing, also on the table on either hand as supporters.
An immense bowl of steaming punch was brought in, which was held
over the head of Jabez by the one apprentice (when he was said to be
crowned), whilst the other, wielding the punch-ladle as a symbol of
authority, with many a theatrical grimace, began to ladle the odorous
compound into the glasses of the guests; and the head over-looker
of the manufactory, from the opposite end of the table, prepared to
propose the health of the late apprentice, as a new member of their
craft.

At this juncture in walked their master, Mr. Ashton, closely followed
by Mr. Chadwick, leaning on the arm of the Rev. Joshua Brookes, who
with many a “pish!” and “pshaw!” and “pooh!” had professed to come
reluctantly, “to see a sensible lad make a fool of himself.” Their
entrance, and the volley of cheers which greeted it, made a momentary
pause in the proceedings. Then Mr. Ashton, being duly supplied with a
ladleful of punch, took his overlooker’s place, and the glass serving
as a substitute for his snuff-box, he proposed and drank “Mr. Clegg’s
health and prosperity,” and welcomed him among the confraternity of
small-ware weavers.

This was succeeded by a prolonged cheer; and then, as one by one
each man’s glass was filled, ere he touched it with his lips he sang
separately (with whatsoever voice he might happen to have, musical or
otherwise) the following toast to proclaim the released apprentice a
freeman of the trade, the chorus being taken up afresh after every
repetition of the quatrain:—

  “Here’s a health to he that’s now set free,
    That once was a ’prentice bound,
  And for his sake this merriment we make,
    So let his health go round;
  Go round, go round, go round, brave boys,
    Until it comes to me;
  For the longer we sit here and drink,
    The merrier we shall be.”

  _Chorus_—“Go round, go round,” &c.

Mr. Ashton had ordered up another bowl of punch, and that being
distributed with like ceremony over the new small-ware monarch’s
head, Jabez, from his temporary throne, with all the warmth of
freshly-stimulated gratitude, delivered a very genuine oration on the
excellence of the master then present, and proposed as a toast, “Mr.
and Mrs. Ashton, our worthy and esteemed master and mistress.”

Now-a-days I’m afraid the master would have been dubbed a “governor,”
and the mistress ignored altogether; but though it is only fifty-five
years since, servants were not ashamed to own they had masters and
mistresses, and consequently were not above being amenable to rule.

During this digression, at a hint from some one (I believe old Simon),
Jabez, whose eloquence must surely have come from the punch-bowl,
dilated on the spiritual relation between the reverend chaplain and the
party assembled, there being scarcely an individual present who had not
been either baptised or married by the Rev. Joshua Brookes; and he
wished “health and long life to him” with much sincerity.

A general shout rose in response, but Joshua made no other reply than
to turn on his heel (the better to hide his face), and growl out, “Long
life indeed! Ugh! pack of tomfoolery!” as he hurried from the room,
before either Mr. Ashton or his paralysed brother-in-law could follow.
Yet, in spite of his gruff disclaimer, he added another bowl of punch
to the “tomfoolery”—at least, one was brought in soon after, and no one
there was called upon to pay for it.

Relieved from the restraining presence of the gentlemen, tongues wagged
freely, long pipes were introduced, song, jest, and toast succeeded
each other, and as the fun grew and the smoke thickened, they mingled
confusedly, until at length clear-headed Simon drew his arm through
that of the novice, and watching his opportunity, led him unnoticed
into the open air, with his head spinning like a teetotum.

Jabez awakened the next morning with a terrible headache, and a dim
recollection of having encountered stately Mrs. Ashton in the hall
overnight, when the very statues had seemed to shake their heads at
him, and her mild, “Fie, Jabez!” followed him upstairs, apparently
carpeted with moss or india-rubber for the nonce. It was his first
dissipation, _and his last_. He never forgot it. And if anything was
wanting to destroy the germs of self-sufficiency and elation, it was
found in the consciousness of his own frailty, and the sense of shame
and self-reproach it engendered.

Experienced heads knew that the surrounding fumes of liquor and tobacco
had been more potential than the small quantity of punch he had
imbibed. But he did not know it, and by the hail-fellow-well-metishness
of those workmen who were most inclined at all times to keep Saint
Monday, and who came to their work, or stayed from their work, unfit
for their work, was a sensitive chord of his nature struck, far more
than by the quiet caution of Simon, the light badinage of Mr. Ashton,
or the jeers of captious Kezia.

In making light of it, Jabez felt they made light of him, and he was
long after afraid lest those whose opinion he held in esteem should
make light of him also—Augusta Ashton chief of these.

[Illustration]



CHAPTER THE TWENTY-NINTH.[20]

ON ARDWICK GREEN POND.


It was in vain Madame Broadbent waited on Mrs. and Mr. Ashton, and
solicited Miss Ashton’s return to her establishment on her ultimate
recovery. The pupil was not more shudderingly reluctant to be re-placed
under her despotic rule than the parents were peremptory in their
refusal.

When her plea for the “maintenance of discipline” failed, and she
tried cajolery as ineffectually, she gave way to the expression of her
natural fears that it would “be the ruin of the Academy” if Mr. Ashton
did not reverse his decision. He loved his daughter too well to yield,
and Mrs. Broadbent went back to Bradshaw Street to find, as years
rolled on, that she had been a true prophetess.

The injury done to Miss Ashton’s collar-bone had been bruited
about, and slowly but surely it helped to sap the foundation of the
once-flourishing seminary. It continued to exist for some years, but
its prestige was gone, its glory departed. Yet she maintained her
personal importance to the last, and exhibited her flock in the “lower
boxes” of the Theatre Royal on Mrs. M‘Gibbon’s benefit nights with
undiminished dignity through successive seasons.

The rapidly-ripening young lady had her will; she had done with the
schoolroom for ever, and her lessons on the harp from Mr. Horobin,
and on the piano from George Ware, the leader of the Gentleman’s
Concerts, came under quite another category. Nor did she think it
beneath her aspirations to retain her place in Mr. Bland’s fashionable
dancing-room, where she practised cotillons, quadrilles, and the
newly-imported waltz, with partners on a par with herself. But these
were _accomplishments_, and we all know, or ought to know by this
time, that accomplishments require much more prolonged and arduous
application than the merely useful and essential branches of
knowledge, theorists for the higher education of women notwithstanding.

Miss Augusta was desirous to be captivating and shine in society,
and so proud was Mr. Ashton of his beautiful daughter, that he fell
in readily with the expansive views of the incipient belle; and new
steps or new melodies were paraded for his gratification week by week.
But Mrs. Ashton, telling her daughter that “knowledge was light of
carriage,” sent her to Mr. Mabbott’s to take lessons in cookery and
confectionery, and into the kitchen to put them in practice under
the eye of Kezia; and, exercise being good for health, according to
the same sensible mother, she was required to assist in bed-making,
furniture polishing, dusting and general household matters, for which
the young lady had little liking, and was not to be spurred into liking
by any citation of her cousin Ellen’s qualifications in these respects.
She preferred to dress with all the art at her command to make her
beauty more bewildering, and to take her place at harp or piano, or
embroidery frame, ready to receive visitors either with or without
her mother, and to be as fascinating as possible, especially when
Laurence Aspinall was the caller; or she would sit in déshabillé in the
retirement of her own chamber, and read Moore and Byron because they
were tabooed and the handsome lieutenant quoted them so enchantingly;
whilst Cicily, who had something to answer for in this respect, bustled
about and overworked herself to spare her darling Miss Augusta, who,
with all her faults, must have been a loving and lovable creature to
win such devotion from a dependent.

It happened that the young lady received visitors alone more frequently
than was desirable, Mrs. Ashton being unusually tied to the warehouse
through the interest Mr. Ashton took in the establishment of the
Manchester Chamber of Commerce, and in the project for the widening
of Market Street, and others of the cramped thoroughfares of the
growing town—which necessarily took him much from home and his private
business—to say nothing of the excitement consequent on the trial of
Queen Caroline during its long progress.

But the year 1820, which had opened only to close the long volume
of George the Third’s life, and to open that of George the Fourth’s
reign at a chapter of regal wife persecution which has few parallels,
had itself grown old and died, and 1821 had thrust itself prominently
forward.

It came with a white robe and a frost-bitten countenance, which grew
sharper and more pinched as weeks and months went by. It looked down
on the currents of rivers and canals, on the secluded still waters of
Strangeways Park, the oblong pond in front of the Infirmary, and the
leech-shaped lakelet within the area of Ardwick Green, until their
ripples curdled under the chilling glance of the New Year.

Sterner grew its aspect as the shivering weeks counted themselves into
months, and the shrinking waters spread first a thin film, then a thick
and a thicker barrier of ice between them and the freezing atmosphere.
Every gutter had its slide, along which clattering clogs sped
noiselessly; every pool its vociferous throng of boys, and every pond
its mingled concourse of skaters and sliders. Of these, the Infirmary
and Ardwick Green waters were most patronised; the former having the
more numerous the latter having the more select body of skaters, and
consequently the more fashionable surrounding of spectators.

The amusements of the town were then on so limited and exclusive a
scale that long frost was quite a boon to the younger portion of the
community; and during the sixteen weeks of its continuance, the Green
became a promenade gay with the warm hues of feminine attire, as ladies
flocked to witness and extol the feats of husbands, brothers, cousins
or particular friends. There was no fear of vulgar overcrowding (except
on Sundays); working-hours were long, and there were no Saturday
half-holidays, so that only those whose time was at their own disposal
could share the sport or overlook it.

Amongst these, much to the annoyance of Mr. Aspinall, his son Laurence
chose to enrol himself, with less regard to the fluctuation of the
cotton market, or the comparative value of American or East India
staples than the Cannon Street merchant thought necessary to fit him
for his future partner or successor. The younger man had chosen to
construe liberally the word “gentleman,” which had been the be-all and
end-all of his training, and to regard elegant idleness as its synonym.
What availed his fine figure and proficiency in arts and athletics, if
he had no opportunity for the display of his person or his skill? And
to throw away the rare chance the Winter had provided was clearly to
scorn the gift of the gods.

Accordingly he spent more time on Ardwick Green Pond than in the
counting-house, varied occasionally with a visit to the Assembly
Billiard-room in Back Mosley Street, or a morning promenade in the
Infirmary Gardens, from the open gates of which he generally contrived
to emerge as Miss Ashton descended the steps from Mr. Mabbott’s, and
just in time to hand her courteously and daintily across the roadway,
and bear her company to her own door, discoursing of recent assemblies
or concerts, from the former of which she had hitherto been debarred,
and of the last occasion on which he had “the exquisite pleasure of
seeing her at Ardwick Green”—occasions which were seldom reported at
home, any more than the chance meetings on her way from Mr. Mabbott’s;
and the reticence, be sure, boded no good.

Dr. Hull had long ago advised “out-door exercise” for the
rapidly-growing girl, and there was no embargo on her walks abroad,
Mrs. Ashton suspecting no danger, and no surreptitious meetings. Her
visits to the Green during the long skating season were quite as
unrestrained, except that an escort became a necessity. Occasionally
her mother accompanied her, sometimes Mrs. Walmsley and John (then
there was generally a nurse and baby in the rear), sometimes Ellen and
Mrs. Chadwick; and Augusta had always returned so exhilarated by her
country walk, and so delighted with all she had seen, that once or
twice, when imperative business withheld Mrs. Ashton from bearing her
daughter company, as promised, rather than disappoint, the lady had
made Mr. Clegg her deputy, an honour on which he perhaps set far too
high a value.

Mrs. Ashton would have drawn herself up with double dignity, and
repudiated as an insult the suggestion of any other of their salesmen
or clerks as an escort for her beautiful daughter; but Jabez lived
in the house, had lived there so long, had even from her childhood
been the girl’s frequent guardian, and proved himself so worthy of
the trust, that she committed her to his care now much as of old, and
perhaps all the more readily because she saw, or fancied she saw, a
disinclination on Miss Augusta’s part to be so accompanied.

In March the cold was as intense as in January, and Miss Ashton as
eager to watch the skaters. One afternoon towards the close of the
month, when the breaking up of the frost was anticipated, quite a
family party had gone to the Green, wrapped in fur-trimmed pelisses of
velvet or woollen, with fur-rimmed hats and Brobdignagian muffs.

It was not quite closing time when Mr. Ashton, always disposed to be
friendly with Jabez, accosted him.

“The ladies are gone to the Green, Clegg. Suppose you lend me an arm
along the slippery roads, and we go to meet them, eh?”

The sparkling eyes of Jabez confirmed his ready tongue’s “With
pleasure, sir,” as, sensible of the honour done him, he left the
sale-room, whistled his black friend Nelson from the yard, and they set
off at a brisk pace, to keep the blood in circulation, the dog leaping,
bounding, and barking before them, in token of good fellowship. As they
passed the Infirmary pond, Jabez remarked that the ice began to look
watery, to which Mr. Ashton replied,

“Yes; I think Jack Frost’s long visit is near its end, and there must
be some truth in the old saw that ‘a thaw is colder than a frost.’”

At that moment Mr. Aspinall’s carriage rolled past them, bearing the
merchant homewards in distinguished state (private carriages were by no
means common), whereat Mr. Ashton observed with a shrug,

“How pride punishes itself! Fancy a tall fellow like Mr. Aspinall
cramped up in a stifling box upon wheels on a day like this, when he
has the free use of his limbs!”

Contrary to expectation, they did not come in sight of the ladies until
they gained the Green, which they found a scene of wild hubbub and
commotion; skaters and spectators gathering towards the centre of the
Green, whence came a confused noise of voices, shouting, crying, and
screaming.

The quick eye of Jabez was at once arrested by the figure of Augusta
on the opposite bank, the centre of an appalled group, wringing her
hands in the very impotence of terror, and as he penetrated the excited
crowd, he saw the hatless head of a man, whose body was submerged,
resting with its chin upon a ledge of the ice, which had apparently
broken under him. At the first glance he failed to distinguish the head
from the distance, and rushed forward, apprehensive lest it should be
that of either Mr. Walmsley or his friend Travis, whom he knew to be of
the party.

Recognition came accompanied by a shock that staggered him. If the ice
had attractions for Aspinall and Walmsley, Ellen Chadwick had certainly
as great attractions for Ben Travis; but it is certain that neither
cousins, nor mother, nor aunt were sensible that they had been drawn
thither simply as a sort of decorous train to Miss Augusta Ashton,
whose inspiriting had in turn been the fascinating lieutenant, the most
graceful and accomplished skater on the pond. Perhaps she hardly knew
it herself, not being given to searching her own heart for its motives.
But a hint from him had set her longing for “another sight of the
skating before the chance was gone,” and her imperative will no less
than her persuasive voice had swayed the rest.

Laurence had made the most of the occasion, glad of an opportunity
to cultivate the acquaintance of the whole family, and display his
graceful figure, and his skill to the best advantage. Now and then he
joined the Chadwicks and the Ashtons on the bank, anon darted off,
wheeling hither and thither, so swift in his evolutions, the eye could
scarcely follow him.

Amongst the skaters the man and his feats stood out. He was the
observed of all observers, and not vainer was he of his accomplishments
than was Augusta at being singled out for attention in the face of
so many damsels of his acquaintance, all, as she foolishly supposed,
equally desirous to bask in the sun of his smile.

A small match will kindle a large flame if combustibles be there.
Fired by her too apparent satisfaction, and Mrs. Ashton’s presence,
his excessive vanity induced him to perform what, with the imperfect
skates of the period, was a distinguished feat. He was ordinarily proud
of his calligraphy. Now, he wound and twisted, lifted his skates or
dashed them down, until he had scored upon the ice an alphabet in bold
capitals; but whether he had miscalculated his space, or the strength
of the ice—broken into for the use of cattle at the upper end—or the
crowd of inquisitive or envious followers had been too great for its
resistance as he had made the last curl of the letter Z, the ice gave
way, and he was plunged in up to the neck, amid the shrieks of women
and the shouts of men. His chin had caught upon the ice with a stunning
blow; but it rested there, and, aided by the buoyancy of the water
beneath, upheld him until, with returning sense, he struggled to bring
his shoulders above the surface, and upheave himself. He trod the
water, and it sustained him, but the _ice_ would not. He was forced
to content himself with the use of his hands beneath as paddles, to
relieve the pressure on his chin, and wait for help, which seemed an
eternity in coming.

He had been in the water some time when Jabez and Mr. Ashton appeared
on the scene, amongst women shrieking with affright, and men rushing
about without presence of mind, or paralysed to powerlessness. Mr.
Travis alone seemed to have a thought, and he had sent for ropes and
hatchets to cut a way to him through the ice itself. But there was a
question, would his strength hold out?

“Will no one save him? Will no one save him?” cried Augusta, piteously.

“Fifty pounds to him who will save my son!” was the cry of the frantic
father, who had witnessed the accident from his own carriage window.
“A hundred!—two hundred pounds!—five hundred pounds to anyone who will
save him!”

“It’s noan a bit o’ use, measter,” said a working man, with a shake of
his head. “Men wunna chuck their lives aweay for brass; an’ yon ice is
loike a pane o’ glass wi’ a stone through it.”

Unfortunately, impulsive Ben Travis had darted forward to his rescue at
the outset, and his ponderous weight had cracked the already broken ice
in all directions. He had himself retreated with difficulty; and now
no offers of reward would tempt men to put their own lives in peril,
though Kit Townley was there, urging others to the attempt, and Bob,
the ex-groom, had rushed for ropes they had neither pluck nor skill to
use, since a noosed cord, flung like a lasso, would have strangled him.

“Oh! save him; save him, Jabez!” implored Augusta, as he and her father
came up.

Jabez looked at her strangely. His head seemed to spin. His face
went livid as that on the ice. Had his secret devotion no other end
than this? True, she had called him “Jabez,” but so she had called
him in his servitude. She had appealed to him as one she trusted in
implicitly; but the appeal sounded as made for one she loved, and
that was not himself, but he who, as boy and man, had wounded him in
soul and body. The very tone of her cry was as a knell to his hopes
and himself. It was his foe and his rival who was perishing! Was he
called upon to risk his life to warm a serpent to sting him again? The
conflict in his breast was sharp and terrible. “If thine enemy hunger,
give him food,” seemed to float in his ears.

There was a small gloved hand on his arm, a pale, sweet face looking up
into his. The moments were flying fast.

“Oh! Jabez, Jabez, do try!”

“I will,” said he, hoarsely.

Had he not often declared in his secret heart that he would give his
life to serve her?—and should he be ungenerous enough to shrink now?

“It is folly to attempt. I forbid it!” exclaimed Mrs. Ashton, laying
her hand on his arm. And Ellen Chadwick, pale as Augusta, tried to stop
him with—“You must not! you must not! You will perish!”

Even strangers from the crowd warned him back. But he was gone ere Mrs.
Chadwick softly recalled her daughter to herself. “Hush! Ellen. This is
not seemly. Mr. Clegg will attempt nothing impossible.”

He hurried to the side nearest Laurence; called to him, “Keep up; help
is coming!”—asked for ladders; gave a word or two of instruction to
Mr. Ashton and Travis; sent Nelson on the ice to try its strength;
secured a rope round his own waist; then, lying flat on the cold ice,
cautiously felt his way to the farther side of Aspinall, whose eyes
were closed, and whose strength was ebbing fast. He hardly heard the
words of cheer addressed to him.

Two long ladders had been lashed side by side to give breadth of
surface. These, by the help of cords and Nelson, whose sagacity was
akin to reason, he drew across the cracked and gaping ice; and crept
slowly from rung to rung, watched from the land breathlessly, until he
reached his almost insensible rival. With rapidly benumbing fingers he
secured strong ropes beneath each shoulder, sending Nelson back to the
bank with the main line, in case his own strength was insufficient to
lift the dead weight of Laurence, or that the ice should yield beneath
the double weight.

Someone sent a brandy-flask back by the dog.

“Can you swallow?” he asked. There was no answer, but a gurgle.

He moistened the blue lips, while the head bent slightly back,
introduced a small quantity of the potent spirit between his set teeth;
and, having warmed himself by the same means, essayed to lift the
freezing skater, who was almost powerless to aid. But the latter with
an extreme effort raised an arm above the ice, and grasped recumbent
Jabez. And now Nelson proved his worth. He set his teeth in Aspinall’s
high coat-collar, and tugged until their united strength drew him
upwards and across the ladder sledge, almost as stiff and helpless as a
corpse.

To lessen the weight, Jabez crept from the ladders; they were drawn to
the side with their living freight before he himself was out of danger;
for the heavy pressure and the swift motion set the ice cracking under
him, and with extreme difficulty he dragged himself to the bank to sink
down on the hardened snow, overcome by the strain of mind and muscle,
whilst the approving crowd set up a shout, and Augusta Ashton thanked
him tremulously.

“I’m afraid, Clegg, you’ve spent your strength for a dead man,” said
Travis, grasping his hand warmly, “and Aspinall was scarcely worth it,
alive or dead.”

But Jabez made no reply. He rose slowly and painfully, shook off the
congratulatory crowd of strangers and friends, on the plea of needing
to “warm and dry himself,” refused pointblank to accept the grateful
hospitality of Mr. Aspinall, and taking the proffered arm of Travis,
turned towards the “George and Dragon,” as little like one who had done
a noble action as could be imagined.

Mr. Ashton followed, tapping his gold snuff-box in wonder and
perplexity. He saw that something was wrong, but knew not that
Augusta’s hasty thanks had closed the young man’s heart against all but
its own pain.



CHAPTER THE THIRTIETH.

BLIND!


So white, so cold, so still was the rigid figure borne from the pond to
Mr. Aspinall’s house, Travis might well count him “a dead man,” as the
rumour ran concerning him; and feeble old Kitty set up a lamentation as
over the dead.

Mrs. Ashton, who knew that to be a home without a thinking woman at its
head, volunteered her services, and entered the house with the bearers,
leaving the trembling Augusta with their friends. She gently put the
old woman aside, and felt pulse and heart.

“There is life,” said she, “and while there is life there is hope. Keep
tears until there is time to shed them; now we must act.” Then turning
to the scared and scurrying servants, she gave her orders much as
though she had been in her own warehouse, and with a stately authority
there was no disputing.

The butler was bidden to “Bring brandy, quick!” The footman was
required to “wheel this sofa to the fire, and pile up the coals!” A
maid was asked for “hot blankets without delay!” and moaning Kitty was
set to work to “help to strip her young master and chafe his limbs.”
And so promptly were her clear, cool orders obeyed, that when the
doctor arrived in hot haste with Mr. Aspinall, half his work was done.
The pulse had quickened and the limbs began to glow, though the eyelids
remained closed.

Most grateful then was Mr. Aspinall for the efficient matronly service
rendered to his motherless boy by the stately lady, who was drawn
nearer to him in his helplessness by her own kindly act than by all
the conciliatory visits and peace-offerings with which Laurence had
himself sought to propitiate her. And for _once_ Mr. Aspinall accepted
a kindness as a favour, not as a tribute to his personal importance,
and he placed his carriage at the disposal of Mr. Ashton and herself
for their return home, without a sign of his usual self-inflation.

His importance received a considerable shock, however, when he called
at the house in Mosley Street the following day to report progress, and
relieve himself of his obligation to his son’s preserver by paying over
the five hundred pounds he had in his extremity offered as a reward.

“I do not think Mr. Clegg will accept a reward,” said Mr. and Mrs.
Ashton in a breath.

“Not accept it!” and the portly figure seemed to swell; “five hundred
pounds is a large sum for a young man in his position; only a fool or a
madman would refuse it.”

“Just so, just so,” replied Mr. Ashton, offering his open snuff-box to
his visitor, whilst Mrs. Ashton stirred the fire as a sort of dubious
disclaimer; “but I think, for all that, you will find we are right; Mr.
Clegg is not a common man, and is not actuated by common motives.—My
dear?” He nodded, and Mrs. Ashton pulled the bell-rope.

Mulberry-suited James answered on the instant.

“Mr. Clegg is wanted.”

Mr. Clegg, labouring under the disadvantage of a cold caught the
previous afternoon, to which any huskiness of voice might be
attributed, obeyed the summons. He was presented duly to Mr. Aspinall,
and much to that gentleman’s surprise, was invited to take a seat.

“Absolutely invited to take a seat!” as he afterwards recounted in
indignation to a friend; “these Whigs have no respect for a gentleman’s
feelings.”

Nor had Jabez. He was pale enough when he entered, but his face
flushed, his lips compressed, and the scar on his brow showed vividly,
as Mr. Aspinall drew forth a roll of crisp bank-notes from his
pocket-book, and loftily offered to him the reward he had “earned by
his bravery.”

He flushed, put back the notes with a movement of his hand, and said,
coldly: “You owe me nothing, sir. The meanest creature on God’s earth
should have freely such service as I rendered to your son. I cannot set
a price on life.”

“But I offered the reward, and the fact is, I must discharge the debt.
Reconsider, young man, it is a large sum: many a man starts the world
with less.”

“A large sum to pay for your son’s life, or for mine, sir?”
interrogated Jabez, drawing himself up stiffly; adding, without waiting
for reply, “I do not sell such service, sir. You owe me nothing. Let
your son thank Miss Ashton for his life; he is her debtor, not mine.”

The words seemed to rasp over a nutmeg-grater, they came so hoarsely,
as did his request for leave to withdraw; and he closed the door on the
five hundred pounds, and on the smiles of husband and wife, before the
rebuffed cotton merchant could master his indignation to reply.

The notes in his palm were light enough, but lying there they
represented liberality contemned; a debt unpaid; an undischarged
obligation to an inferior; and not thrice their value in gold could
have pressed so heavily on Mr. Aspinall as that last consideration. The
frigid manner of Jabez he construed into Radical impudence; he resented
the salesman’s repudiation of reward as a personal affront, and did not
scruple to express his views openly, then and there, winding up with a
question which startled his interlocutors.

“What did the singular young man mean by his reference to Miss Ashton?”

Had they followed the “singular young man” across the hall to the
sanctuary of his own sitting-room, seen him dash himself down into a
chair, and bury his head in his hands on the table with unutterable
anguish on his face, and heard burst from his lips—more as a groan than
embodied thought—“Oh, Augusta, adored Augusta, what a presumptuous
madman I have been!”—they would but have had half the answer. But had
they mounted the polished oaken stairs to the dainty chamber where
Augusta Ashton lay in bed with a “cruel headache,” brought on by
the fright, and eyes red with weeping at the catastrophe which had
befallen her adorable admirer, the gallant lieutenant, and heard her
half-audible lamentations, the answer might have been complete.

Mrs. Ashton had heard Augusta’s frantic appeal to Jabez at at the
pond, had seen him stagger and turn livid as if shot, noted the inward
struggle ere he said, “I will;” but she had ascribed it to old and
unforgiven injuries, and thinking it hard that he should be called upon
to hazard his life for his known enemy with chances so heavy against
him, had herself forbidden the attempt. This was all the solution she
had to offer Mr. Aspinall. In the excitement of the accident and the
rescue, she had overlooked Augusta’s excessive emotion, but now her
mother’s heart took alarm. Could it be that the younger eyes of Jabez
had seen a preference for the handsome scapegrace which she had not?

The matter was talked over by husband and wife long after Mr. Aspinall
had left; and the anxious mother questioned the maiden in the privacy
of her own room, to come thence with the sad conviction that Augusta
had prematurely been led captive by a handsome face and a dashing
air, irrespective of worth or worthlessness. Yet she consoled herself
and Mr. Ashton with the reflection. “It is, after all, only a girlish
fancy, and will die out.”

“Just so, and as the young rake is laid by the leg for one while, there
is all the more chance,” assented Mr. Ashton.

“If his immersion does not convert him into a hero,” added the matron,
with a clearer knowledge of her daughter. Yet neither asked themselves
how the intuitive perception of Jabez came to be more acute than their
own, nor what power impelled him to risk his life for an enemy at the
mere bidding of Augusta. Indeed, they set the hazardous exploit down to
the score of magnanimity and bravery only.

Equally unobservant were they of Ellen Chadwick’s remonstrance, or her
feverish watch of every perilous turn Jabez and Nelson had taken on
the ice, or of the caresses she lavished on the dog when all was over.
Only Mrs. Chadwick had seen that, as she had seen fainter signs years
before; but she held her peace, and, having a leaven of her sister’s
pride, “hoped she was mistaken.”

There were three young hearts consumed by the same passion—that which
lies at the root of the happiness or misery of the world,—one nursing
the romance, two fighting against its hopelessness in silence and
concealment; but “the race is not always to the swift, nor the battle
to the strong.”

Jabez Clegg could not tell when he had not loved Augusta Ashton, from
the time when she was young enough to play about the ware-rooms, or
to be lifted across the muddy roadways in his strong apprentice arms,
when it was his pleasant duty to protect her to and from school. But
he could trace back the time when Hogarth’s prints gave to that love
a definite shape, and he began to look upon his master’s daughter as
a prize to be attained. All things had tended to confirm his belief
in its possibility, and love and ambition had gone hand in hand,
and fed each other. The child had come to him for companionship and
entertainment, the girl under his protection had confided to him her
school-day troubles, and come to him for help in difficulties, with
lessons on slate or book. She had looked up to him, trusted him, clung
to him; and though she was as a star in his firmament, he had had a
sort of vague impression that the star which shone upon him from afar
would draw nearer, and, as he rose to it, come down to meet him.

His first sharp awakening was her reminder that the pair of intoxicated
officers who had insulted her in the theatre were “gentlemen,” and so
not to be chastised by _him_. His second—and then jealousy added a
sting—was meeting Aspinall face to face in the hall, when the latter
smilingly bowed himself out on his first visit. And now he brooded in
despair over the final dissipation of his dream beneath the icicle-hung
boughs on Ardwick Green; for the first time conscious that she belonged
to another sphere.

Never by look or word had he done himself, or her, or her parents, the
dishonour of giving expression to his ambitious love; and now another
had looked on his divinity, and won her for himself. It came upon him
like a flash when that white-faced agony, that piteous cry, called
him to imperil his own life—worthless in the scale against another,
and _that_ other. It came upon him with a flash that scathed like
lightning. He had forgiven the boy Aspinall long ago; and the man—well,
Augusta’s happiness demanded the sacrifice, and he had made it. Out of
his very love for Augusta he had saved the rival’s life she had prayed
for. And he had been offered _money_ for the act which wrecked his own
life. Thank God he had rejected it with scorn!

A kind hand laid on his shoulder interrupted a reverie which had
induced torpor.

“Mr. Clegg, you are ill—your cold requires attention. You had better
seek repose: you are quite feverish.”

Repose! The man’s soul was on fire, as well as his body. Yet from his
chamber a fortnight later emerged a grave business man, without an
apparent thought beyond the warehouse.

And what of Laurence Aspinall, whom we left with closed eyes, wrapped
in blankets, on a sofa? He had hung suspended in the water for an
hour by the clock in the tower of St. Thomas’ ivy-clad church; and
notwithstanding he had kept his limbs and the water in motion so long
as he had power, the chill had extended upwards, and though life had
been called back, sight and reason were in abeyance.

Shorn of his rich curls, for weeks he raved and struggled in the grasp
of brain fever; and old Kitty, forgetting everything but her promise to
his dead mother, watched and tended him night and day, albeit nurses
from the Fever-Ward relieved each other in their well-paid care of him.

The frost was gone; vegetation, bound so long, had leapt upwards from
its chains. Lilacs and May-buds greeted him with perfume through
the open windows, and even the daffodil and narcissus sent up their
incense from the brim of the garden-pond when he began to show signs of
amendment.

“Better,” “Much better,” were the answers to inquirers (among whom may
be cited Kit Townley, and Bob, their sometime groom); but the lilac and
the hawthorn ripened and faded, and the daffodils gave place to the
wallflower and carnation, and the rosebuds opened their ripe lips to
June, yet the rich cotton merchant’s son saw nothing of the glow.

Over the blue eyes of Laurence the lids were closed, and not an oculist
in the town had skill to open them. Dr. Hull, the consulting physician
of the Eye Institution, and his surgical colleagues, Messrs. Wilson and
Travers, had laid their heads together over a case peculiar in all its
bearings, but the lids remained obstinately shut.

At length, when Hope had folded her drooping wings in despair, and
Mr. Aspinall was borne down with grief for his sightless son, someone
suggested that, as water had done the mischief, water in action might
cure it.

“Can he swim?” asked rough Dr. Hull curtly of Kitty.

“Swim? ay, he can do owt he shouldna do,” replied the old woman, having
no faith in the value of her charge’s peculiar accomplishments.

“Is he a good swimmer?”

“Aw reckon so! He usent to swim fur wagers i’ Ardy (Ardwick) Green Pond
when he wur quoite a little chap.”

“That will do.”

Mr. Aspinall was conferred with, and the next day’s mail coach took the
blind patient, his father, Kitty, and one of the surgeons to Liverpool.
After a night’s rest at the York Hotel, they were driven down to St.
George’s Pier, a very humble presentment of what it is in this our day.
Like Manchester, Liverpool has vastly swelled in size and importance
within the last fifty years, and her docks have grown with the shipping
needing shelter. The Mersey was not the crowded highway it is now—there
were fewer ships and _no_ steamers to cross each other’s track, and set
the waters in commotion, defying wind and tide.

Mr. Aspinall had engaged a boat to be in readiness. The sightless
athlete was rowed a short distance from curious spectators on the pier,
and then, his face being turned towards Birkenhead, he plunged into the
swelling river, which he breasted like a Triton, so welcome and native
seemed the element to him. And as the salt wave buoyed him up, or
dashed over his cropped head, he appeared to gain fresh strength with
every stroke.

Anxiously his three attendants followed in his wake, lest cramp should
seize him, or his impaired strength give out before the river—there
rather more than a mile in breadth—could be crossed. Yet not a yard of
the distance bated he.

By instruction he had bent his course slightly down stream, so as to
meet the opposing tide, then rolling in with a freshet. He struck out
boldly, the very dash of the salt waves invigorating him as they broke
over his bare poll, or laved his naked limbs. Still well in advance
of the boat, he seemed at last to cross the current as a conqueror.
He touched the shore at Rockferry, and—miracle of miracles!—his eyes
were opened. Laurence Aspinall, who for weeks had cursed his darkened
existence, could once more see!



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-FIRST.[21]

CORONATION-DAY.


Misfortune binds closer than prosperity. The calamity which tied
Laurence Aspinall down in a strait-waistcoat to a bed of fever, with
shaven head and sightless eyes, touched the Ashtons in a tender point.
Themselves the parents of an only child, the very crown and glory of
their lives, their sympathies went forth to Mr. Aspinall, in spite
of his haughty assumption. Indeed, distress brought him down to the
common level of humanity; and having neither sister, aunt, nor cousin
to undertake the care of his sick son for love, and not for fee, he
learned the comparative powerlessness of wealth, and hailed with all
the gratitude in his nature the occasional visits of Mrs. Ashton, in
whose stately bearing, no doubt, he recognised a sort of kinship.

It was, however, not Mrs. Ashton the business woman, not Mrs. Ashton
the lofty lady, but Mrs. Ashton the mother who laid her cool hand
on the young man’s fevered forehead, questioned the nurses, made
suggestions for the benefit of the invalid, and by means of a “Ladies’
Free Registry” in Chapel Walk, found a staid woman of experience to act
as housekeeper, and bring the disorganised household into order without
treading on the toes of attached but incapable Kitty.

The head of Antinous shorn of its glorious locks, swathed in
lotion-cloths, tossing in delirium, would scarcely appear so attractive
as to fill the most timid mother with fears for a romantic daughter’s
heart, and so whilst sympathy was awake vigilance slumbered. Yet never
need vigilance have been more awake. She saw him as he was—Augusta,
as he had been. Through other channels than the maternal she heard of
his condition from day to day, and how in his delirium he had mixed
up her name with the slang of the cock-pit, the race-course, and the
prize-ring; but with strange infatuation she ignored all that should
have warned, and clung to all that was pleasant to her own self-love.
Never had she been so assiduous in her visits to her aunt Chadwick and
her cousin Walmsley; and her smiling “I’ve brought my work and come
to sit with you this afternoon,” should have been translated, “I hope
John or Mr. Travis will drop in. They are sure to have something to say
about Mr. Laurence; it is so dreadful not to know how he is going on.”

And pretty generally her calculations were correct; the two gentlemen
were interested in Aspinall as a member of their yeomanry corps, apart
from private friendship, and were constant in their inquiries, even
finding their way to his bed-side; and Mr. Benjamin Travis, who could
not very well every day manage to meet Mr. Chadwick accidentally on his
way from the warehouse, and lend his stout arm as a support, appeared
only too glad to be the bearer of bulletins from Ardwick, as an excuse
for calling in Oldham Street and hovering about the chair or the window
where Ellen Chadwick sat at her sewing or knitting, and grew silent on
his entrance, blushing when she heard his footstep or his voice in the
hall, from motives sadly misinterpreted.

There was no mistaking the true purport of his frequent visits and
assiduous attention to the crippled old gentleman; so Augusta having
settled in her own mind that Ellen was either too reserved or too shy
to give her big, good-natured but timid lover proper encouragement,
took upon herself to play into his hands and make opportunities for his
wooing.

“What a delightful afternoon for a walk!” Whether he or she made
the observation, the other was sure to assent; and then wilful Miss
Augusta, unaccustomed to be gainsaid, and seconded by her aunt, also a
secret ally of Ben Travis, would drag her cousin forth in defiance of
any excuse or protestation, to the undisguised satisfaction of their
magnificent cavalier.

It was remarkable that on these occasions, whether they took their way
up Ancoats, or Dale Street, or Piccadilly, or Garret Road, they would
eventually be led so near to Ardwick Green that it would have been
unkind had not Mr. Travis “just stepped across to see how Mr. Laurence
progressed.”

And so, too, whenever she went abroad with Cicily at her heels, or when
Cicily was sent on errand, nothing would content her imperative young
mistress but that she should hasten (whether in her way or out of it),
with “_Mrs._ Ashton’s compliments,” to ascertain the condition of the
invalid scapegrace.

Many a scolding did breathless Cicily get in consequence from angry
Kezia, the queen of the kitchen, which Augusta paid her messenger for
with coins, or ribbons, or kerchiefs, or smooth words, as might be most
convenient at the time. And Mrs. Ashton was accredited by the Aspinalls
with a degree of attention never contemplated by herself.

But there was one person in the house Augusta avoided from that
afternoon at the end of March, when her fascinating hero would have
lost his life but for a much humbler hero, of less pretension and
fewer attractions. She might have been blind as father and mother to
his attachment until that afternoon; but that one wild, impassioned,
agonised look of Jabez into her eyes had opened them for ever, she felt
she had tasked him beyond human endurance, and was ashamed to look him
in the face.

The presumption of the ex-apprentice paled before his devotion and
self-abnegation, but, self-conscious, after that first outburst of
thanks on the Green, she had shrunk from meeting him in hall or
staircase, and had always a reason ready why he should not be invited
to their own tea-table when father or mother proposed it.

Public events march on irrespective of private joys or sorrows, and
no individual goes out into the world after three months’ seclusion
to find things just as he left them. The first use Laurence Aspinall
made of his eyes was to look at himself in a mirror; the second on his
return to Manchester, to select a substitute for the clustering curls
of which he had been despoiled. Closely shut in the carriage which Mr.
Ashton lightly designated a box, he was driven down Market Street,
to discover that the Spirit of Improvement, “fell bane of all that’s
picturesque,” had touched the ancient, many-gabled, black-and-white
houses with which his earliest recollections were associated, and
they were crumbling into dusty ruins before the potent incantation
“Space.” It was the beginning of a very necessary widening of the main
thoroughfares of the growing commercial metropolis; but the blanks in
the narrow street took Laurence by surprise.

There was a newspaper the more for his restored sight to scan, albeit
the _Manchester Guardian_, which Jeremiah Garnett and John Edward
Taylor first gave to the world on the fifth of May, was scarcely likely
to take his view of party politics, or of his share in the Peterloo
massacre, which was still a disturbing element in the town. Just now
the paper, which he found at the perruquier’s, was given over to the
discussion of the approaching coronation of George IV., which likewise
formed the theme of conversation, not only at the wig-maker’s, but
whithersoever he turned when once more presentable.

Somehow, though he found his way to the warehouse, and the cockpit,
and the Assembly Billiard Club, and to Tib Street, where Bob the
groom had a pretty daughter very much at the young man’s disposal,
he did not present himself at his Mosley Street friend’s as soon as
might have been expected, considering all things; and Augusta, in
the most becoming of morning robes, watching with eager expectation
for his coming, began to pant and chill with the sickness of hope
deferred. He was by no means the only admirer of the lovely heiress,
and was sufficiently desirous to complete his conquest before other
competitors were fairly in the field; but he was in perplexity how to
deal with Jabez Clegg, who stood in his way after another sort. He
was grateful—after a fashion—for the preservation of his life; but
_ungrateful_, inasmuch as Jabez was the preserver.

“Hang it!” said he, in conference with himself, as he tied on a
neck-cloth at the glass, “if the fellow had but taken the five hundred
pounds, there’d have been an end of it; and one could have wiped one’s
hands of him. What right had the beggarly charity-boy to refuse a
reward, as if he were a gentleman, I should like to know? I wonder what
Kit Townley and Walmsley were about—the cowardly ninnies—to let an
upstart like that pull me out of the hole. I’d almost as lief have been
drowned.”

And away went a spoiled cravat across the room in his temper; and he
rummaged for a fresh one, to the detriment of linen, as he went on—

“There’s one thing, I must either bring down my pride or give up the
girl, and be d—— d to it! That old Ashton, with his ‘Just so!’ like
a cuckoo, would certainly shut the door in my face if I neglected to
make a set speech, and thank his precious _protege_, who knocks you
down with one hand and picks you up with the other. Well, I don’t feel
inclined to surrender the finest girl in Lancashire, and with such
a fortune as she’ll have, so I’m in for it. I must make a virtue of
necessity. Egad! I’ll write to this Mr. Clegg. No, I won’t. It would be
a feather in his cap to have a thanksgiving letter of mine to exhibit.”

Having at length determined his course, Mr. Laurence betook himself
to Mosley Street, made his bow duly and gracefully to Mrs. Ashton and
the young lady, keeping the hand of the latter as long within his own
as etiquette would permit, and sending the warm blood mantling to her
cheek, with a supplicating glance of devotion as potent as words.
Then, with some little prolixity, he professed his desire to “thank
his noble preserver” for the life he had saved; and at his request Mr.
Clegg (whom he might just as well have thanked in the warehouse without
ceremony) was sent for. Coming into the parlour all unwittingly as he
did, to find Laurence Aspinall, handsome as ever, and more interesting
from illness, standing under the lacquered-serpent chandelier in close
proximity to Augusta, sparkling with animation, and blushing like the
rose he had just offered her with a pretty simile, his emotions so
overmastered him that the polished gentleman had him at a disadvantage,
and shone in comparison.

Both Augusta and her mother noted the contrast between the elegant
manner, suave tones, and rounded periods of Laurence Aspinall’s
thanks and the curt disclaimer of Jabez, though their deductions were
different. Augusta was in raptures with the rose-giver.

“Ah! my dear, all is not gold that glitters. There is more sterling
metal in your father’s salesman, mark my words, than in the tinselled
lieutenant,” was the summing-up of the elder, as she replaced cake and
wine in side-board and cellaret. She was clearly no friend to Aspinall
now that he had recovered sense and sight.

The town, which had been strong and outspoken in its condemnation of
the new king during the trial of Queen Caroline, was now all alive with
preparations to celebrate his coronation with befitting magnificence,
one branch of trade vying with another which should make the greatest
display in the coming procession to the Green, the like of which never
had been, and never would be again. And this competition, productive of
marvellous results, due, in a great measure, to trade rivalry and an
ambitious desire to outshine, was set down by historians, rightly or
wrongly, as a proof of the excessive loyalty of the Mancestrians.

In all classes, from the highest to the lowest, something was being
done, and nothing was talked of, thought of, dreamed of, but the
coronation and the procession. In courts, and alleys there were making,
and mending, and washing, and no little pinching was undergone by
hard-working fathers and mothers to provide the girls with white
cambric frocks, tippets, and net caps, or the lads with fresh jackets
and breeches and shoes, so as not to disgrace the Sunday-schools under
whose banners they were to walk.

The finest horses of the Old Quay Company and Pickford’s were put into
new harness and the finest condition, and every lurry (a long, flat,
sideless waggon) was called into requisition. Smiths, saddlers, sign
and scene painters, were at work day and night for weeks; and such was
the request for banners that ladies undertook the work when skilled
labour was not to be found.

The important ceremony was fixed for the 19th of July. On the 17th a
deputation of small-ware weavers waited on Mr. Ashton in despair. They
could get neither flag nor banner; the painter had thrown over the
order at the last moment.

“An’ Tummy Worthington’s getten a foine un, measter. It’ll be a sheame
an’ a disgrace to us o’ if we let Worthington’s cut us eawt.”

[The said Worthington was a rival small-ware manufacturer].

Mr. Ashton had recourse to his snuff-box, and then to his wife.

“My dear, what is to be done? There will be no flag. The painters
cannot execute the jobs in hand. Worthington’s have a fine one I hear.”

“No flag! That will never do. We must have a flag. Let me consider.”

Ellen Chadwick was busy helping Augusta to make favours for the men.
She looked up.

“Do you not think Mr. Clegg could paint you one?” she suggested.

Mr. Ashton brightened, but his “Just so!” was nipped in the bud by the
recollection that there was no time.

“Where there’s a will there’s a way,” said Mrs. Ashton, and sought out
Jabez.

“It is quite out of my line, but I can try. It would be a pity to
disappoint the men,” answered he.

“And nothing beats trying but doing!” added Mrs. Ashton.

Silk and colours were procured. There was no leisure for complex design
or elaboration. At that time the dark blue covers of the Dutch tapes in
gross bore the symbolic device of the flax plant within a rude scroll.
This Jabez transferred in colours to his silk on a colossal scale, both
sides bearing the same emblem of their trade, more effective on its
completion than any elaborate work. He had bargained to be left without
interruption. The men fidgeted about the warehouse in a state of
nervous trepidation (it was an important matter to them), but at dawn
on the 19th it was finished, and borne off by the weavers in triumph
and exultation.

Market Street Lane being in ruins at one end, and a narrow gully at
the other, Mosley Street became the natural course for the procession
(two miles and a half in length) from Peter’s Field to the Green,
where a royal salute was to be fired; and like every other house on
the line of route, Mr. Ashton’s was filled with guests, and from
garret to basement every window had its streamer, and was crowded with
gaily-dressed spectators, mostly feminine, the gentlemen of the town
taking part in the procession, officially or otherwise. The Chadwicks
and Mrs. Walmsley were there of course, and Mrs. Clough amongst others;
and on another floor Jabez—who being above the warehousemen, and not a
master, did not walk—had as a companion good Bess Hulme, who with her
husband had come over from Whaley-Bridge, where there was, of course, a
holiday. To Tom had been assigned the honour of chief standard bearer.

In all such processions the military element, with its brilliant
uniforms and stirring music prevails. But here (where every item of
the cavalcade had its own brass band) were also all the dignitaries
of the church, with every silver badge of office resplendently
burnished for the occasion; the borough-reeve, and other magistrates,
and constabulary, in new uniforms; the lamplighters with new smocks,
carrying their ladders and cans; the firemen and fire-engines, bright
as paint and polish could make them; the gentlemen of the town, all
with favours; the Sunday-school children, marshalled under their
respective banners or tablets, walking six abreast; the Ladies’ Jubilee
School; the Green-Coat School; and the Blue-Coat School, on which Jabez
looked down with curiously-mingled feelings.

But the marked feature of the magnificent procession was the display
made by the trades, with their banners, a lurry accompanying each,
bearing well-dressed workmen and machines in full operation.

At the head of these came two figures, representing Adam and Eve,
in a perfect bower of greenery, as representatives of the primitive
condition before dress was invented. They were followed by a lurry, on
which tailors (whose art is the first on record) sat cross-legged, and
stitched and pressed, as if on a shopboard, whilst a select band of
journeymen walked after, bearing minature miniature garments on wands,
or ferruginous geese and sleeveboards.

The blacksmiths wrought on their anvil, and carried also on long poles,
horse-shoes, &c. The brass and copper smiths, likewise at work, had a
bright array of kettles, candlesticks, and a mounted man in armour,
as had also the tin-plate workers. The glass-blowers made a goodly
array, and gave away tokens as they went. The men wore hats and caps
brittle and brilliant, with wavy plumes of spun glass, whilst birds,
ships, goblets, and decanters on their poles glistened in the beams of
the hot sun. A printing-press distributed appropriate verses, worked
off in the course of the procession. And St. Crispin’s followers waxed
their threads and plied their awls on boots and shoes as they and their
benches were borne along, followed by their leather-aproned fraternity,
holding aloft their productions, from the most gigantic of Wellingtons
to the tiniest infant’s slipper.

All branches of the cotton trade were represented. There was cotton in
bags; twist in bales; carding, roving, spinning, weaving, all going on
under the eyes of the onlookers, with the workpeople following in their
best and brightest.

Shouts and hurrahs attended the whole line of march, not wholly
unaccompanied by hisses; but as the small-ware weavers passed Mr.
Ashton’s the cheers were deafening. A loom was at work weaving lengths
of binding for garters, on which was inwoven “God save King George
IV.,” with the date, and these were lifted on long wands to the ladies
at the windows on their way, or scattered to others in the street;
and as Tom Hulme caught the eye of Jabez, he pointed proudly to their
banner, which had no rival in all the elaborately painted flags waving
in the wind, and the impromptu artist was well satisfied. But the
brightest day has its cloud. As the Manchester Yeomanry went prancing
past, Travis and Walmsley alike saluted the ladies at the drawing-room
window, but to the pain of Jabez and the indignation of Mrs. Ashton,
Lieutenant Aspinall had the audacity to kiss his hand to Augusta.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-SECOND.

EVENING: INDOORS AND OUT!


The two-miles-and-a-half-long procession was not the only popular
demonstration which made the Coronation of George IV. memorable in
the annals of Manchester. There were no telegraph wires to flash
intelligence to the supporters of Queen Caroline that she had been
repulsed from the Abbey gates, and driven thence to die broken-hearted
and uncrowned. So, in the absence of a cause for indignation, loyalty,
or its substitute, contrived to add a pendant of disorder and excess
only to be recorded as the dung-heap out of which grew flowers of
promise.

As in most of the private houses along the line of route, a cold
collation had been prepared for the refreshment of the friends who
crowded Mr. Ashton’s open windows. But no calculation had been made of
the space the unwonted pageant would cover, or the time it would occupy
in passing; and Mrs. Ashton, having discovered that sight-seeing in the
dust and glare of July was parching and fatiguing, issued orders for
tea to be handed round when the last banner had disappeared, and before
her less intimate friends should rise to depart.

In giving these orders, she unwittingly stirred the kitchen fire into
a white heat. Lavish hospitality was a characteristic of the time,
and when a family of good position professed to keep “open house,” it
was generally equal to the most extravagant demands. But, as a rule,
Mrs. Ashton had little leaning towards impromptu parties, and Kezia
considerably less, preferring those grand and formal receptions which
involved elaborate preparation, and placed imaginary feathers in the
caps of mistress and maids.

Kezia herself considered the honour of the house involved in everything
under her control being “in apple-pie order;” and the surprise which
put her on her mettle, put her also in a fume.

Recalled from the window—whence her head had been poked far as the
farthest—to provide tea and its concomitants for an indefinite number
of strangers, she accompanied her erratic movements about her domain
with explosive outbursts of spleen at “bein’ takken unawares when
nowt’s ready to hand.”

“Here’s missus bin an’ ordered tay fur th’ whole boilin’ of folk
up-stairs; an’ theer’s Cicily and t’other wenches a’ agog ower th’
crownation, an’ not worth ’toss of a pancake!”

She jerked out her anger in the ears of Bess Hulme, who, seated on the
settle, had just lulled to sleep Mrs. Walmsley’s crying baby, which
(neglected by its gaping nurse) had commemorated the day by a fall from
a high bed.

Bess made a temporary couch for the baby in a snug corner, and quietly
came to Kezia’s assistance; then Ellen Chadwick, intuitively perceptive
of kitchen troubles, busied herself in bringing reserves of china,
glass, plate, linen, and sweetmeats from closets and store-room; Cicily
and Dolly came down in due time; and the credit of the establishment
lost nothing in Kezia’s hands, even though there was an additional
influx of visitors, and a supper also to provide.

That was Mr. Ashton’s affair. He had tired of his processional march in
the broiling sun by the time they had skirted Ardwick, and defiled into
Chancery Lane. The two friends by his side, Mr. John McConnell and Mr.
John Green (both cotton-spinners with whom he dealt), being of the same
mind, they had fallen out of the line in Ancoat’s Lane, and turned down
Canal Street to the house of the latter, to refresh themselves with
something less dry than snuff or road-dust.

Mr. Green was the uncle of Henry Liverseege, the artist, fragile of
form and spiritual of face, but the latter was then only a genius in
his nineteenth year—with fame and an early grave dimly foreshadowed.
They found him on the doorstep, with his fussy and fidgety, though
kind-hearted aunt, just back from Mr. Gore’s in Piccadilly, whence they
had seen the show. The gentlemen’s requirement, a “draught of ale,”
was soon supplied, accompanied by a spasmodic comment on the “grand
display,” and the exhibition of a pair of the loyally inscribed fillets
she had secured as the smallware-weavers passed.

“By-the-bye, that was a wonderfully effective banner of yours, Mr.
Ashton,” interposed the thin voice of Liverseege. “Who painted it?”

“A young fellow in my employ, who occasionally designs for
us,” answered Mr. Ashton, handing his snuff-box to the group in
rotation—“quite a self-taught artist!”

“Indeed! It was not much like an amateur’s brush. I should like to know
him. You see I do something in that way myself.” The young painter,
conscious of his own latent power, was sensitively alive to undeveloped
art in another.

“Would you? Just so! Then you shall. Come along, all of you, and
finish the day with us. Mrs. Ashton will find us a dish of tea, and I
am sure, Mrs. Green, she will be proud to see you also.” Turning to
the gentlemen, who had by this time emptied their tallboy glasses, he
added, “And I think I have a few bottles of rare old port waiting among
the cobwebs for us to drink the King’s health.”

It was a period of much pressing and many excuses, but the excitement
of the day had so far destroyed ceremony that even Mrs. Green, who
was somewhat punctilious, after a little nervous trepidation anent
the fitness of her last new cap for company, consented, and accepted
the arm Mr. Ashton gallantly offered to pilot her across the crowded
street, along which the tail of the procession had only just trailed.

Graciously, though with her natural stateliness, Mrs. Ashton received
the new-comers; Mrs. Green, finding the company generally in morning
visiting dress, was at ease about her cap; the tea was exhilarating;
the viands toothsome; the wines excellent; there was one common topic
for discussion; the ice of ceremony had thawed hours before; and genial
Mr. Ashton, having locked the doors to prevent the escape of a guest
before the supper he had bespoken was demolished, was thoroughly in his
element.

Mrs. Ashton was not quite so much at ease, though she was too well-bred
to manifest her disquiet, which had two sources. In the first place,
the presumptuous salutation of Augusta by Lieutenant Aspinall had
jarred a sensitive nerve. In the second, Mr. Ashton, generously
impulsive, had introduced Mr. Clegg to their friends, and _as_ a friend
of whom he was himself proud. She thoroughly appreciated Jabez, and
equally contemplated his advancement; but she was for “making no more
haste than good speed,” and considered it more prudent to raise him
by insensible degrees. And as she watched her husband, radiant with
good-will, cross the room with Jabez (discomposed at the very doorway
by the wondering eyes of Augusta), and present him to Mr. Green and Mr.
Liverseege, thus ran her thoughts:—

“Dear me! William is very inconsiderate! He will turn the young man’s
head, and insult our visitors at the same time. I hope Mrs. Clough
will not recognise him. How indignant she would be if she thought we
expected her to associate with one who once wore her son’s cast-off
clothes! Certainly he is well-conducted, and worthy in all respects,
but—people don’t forget such things! If Mr. Green and Mr. McConnell
only knew William was introducing our Blue-coat apprentice, what would
they say?—I am glad, however, to see young Mr. Liverseege so affable
with Jabez.”

To her surprise, at this juncture, Mr. McConnell drew his chair close
to Jabez and Mr. Liverseege, and attributing the evident embarrassment
of the former to the newness of his position, endeavoured to dissipate
it by taking part in the conversation, to which quiet Mr. Green
occasionally added a word. The lady, who was so afraid of touching
the dignity of her friends, had not heard her less exclusive loud
whisper to the two cotton-spinners, “I’m afraid I’ve committed a grave
misdemeanour in Mrs. Ashton’s sight, by bringing young Clegg among our
party; but kings are not crowned every day, and I thought it a good
opportunity to bring a worthy lad out. You and I”—and he tapped his
snuff-box—“know what Manchester men are made of, and that young fellow
has good stuff in him! He was made to rise, sirs.”

Mr. Ashton’s friends nodded in acquiescence, and willing to humour
their kindly host, and perhaps desirous to test the calibre of an
aspirant so introduced, wittingly or unwittingly did their part in
helping him to “rise” by the very distinction of their prolonged
attention. It was an act quite in the way of John McConnell, who had
already given a lift to his rising young countryman, Fairbairn the
engineer.

Presently Mr. Chadwick, beckoning attentive Ellen to his side,
and using her shoulder as a support, involuntarily seconded his
brother-in-law by joining the group, and, putting out his hand to Jabez
(who rose at his approach, and offered his own seat to the paralytic
gentleman), said—

“Wha-at inter-rests yo-you so m-much, M-Mr. Clegg, th-that you f-forget
old f-friends?”

“No, Sir, I had not forgotten you, nor Miss Chadwick either” (Ellen
coloured), “but Mr. Ashton having honoured me with an introduction to
Mr. Liverseege and these gentlemen” (bowing to them), “I was not at
liberty to break away, had I felt so disposed.”

“We were discussing the influence of art on our local manufactures,”
added Henry Liverseege, and thereupon the subject was resumed,
Ellen necessarily in close attendance on her father, standing there
with sparkling black eyes, an animated and attentive listener, well
pleased that Mr. Clegg’s merits (as seen by her) had at length found
recognition.

Meanwhile Augusta, the centre of a group of young people, indulged in
sentimental chit-chat, and trifling with her fan and human hearts,
completed the enslavement of her last admirer, a fair-haired Mr.
Marsland; while Jabez, from his distant seat, looked and longed in vain.

Cards were, as a matter of course, proposed for the amusement of this
extemporised party; and in filling up tables for whist or loo, Mrs.
Ashton’s fears for the sensibility of her friends were forgotten. They
were utterly put to the rout by a loud rat-tat-tat at the street-door,
followed by the entrance of Mr. Clough and the Reverend Joshua Brookes,
the latter less vigorous than of yore, but in a state of unusual
excitement. His loud voice was heard before he was seen. “Hogs, sir,
hogs! They are no better than hogs, sir!” he was saying even as he
came into the drawing-room. He appeared too much ruffled to respond
composedly to the kindly greetings of his many friends; even Augusta,
who put forth her little white hand with her most winning smile,
attracted no more attention than a hurried “How d’ye do, lass? How d’ye
do?”

“What is the matter, Mr. Brooks? You seem——”

He interrupted Mr. Ashton’s inquiry with—

“Matter, sir? Waste and riot, intemperance and indecency, are the
matter. These old eyes have seen that which is enough to bring a curse
upon the coronation and a blight upon the town.”

Conversation was arrested, flirtation forgot its part, cards were laid
down, save by three or four inveterate players, and young and old were
alike on the _qui vive_, crowding round the speaker.

“Permit me,” said Mr. Clough, commencing an explanation. “I suppose you
are all aware that the new market in Shude Hill is the chief station of
the nine appointed for the distribution of meat, bread, and ale to the
populace?”

“Populace, indeed!—the very scum and dregs of the town—say rather the
lowest, roughest rabble!” broke in old Joshua.

“Well, Parson, for the credit of our working population, let us hope
so,” chimed in Mr. Clough, resuming—“Whilst Mr. Brookes and I were
at tea in his sanctum, Tabitha ran in breathless to tell us that the
platform erected for recipients in front of the storehouse had given
way, that several persons were injured, and one had been killed on the
spot.”

“Ah!” said the Parson, drawing a long breath between his teeth, while
Jabez, unobserved by either, drew nearer to listen, and the ladies put
up their hands in horror.

“It was not our most direct route, but either curiosity or compassion
took us round by Shude Hill Market on our road hither, and never shall
I forget the scene we witnessed. Loaves and junks of meat were being
pitched high and far amongst the crowd from the warehouse doors and
windows, as if flung to hounds.”

“Hounds, sir!” burst in impatient Joshua, “don’t slander the better
animal. Only the commonest curs would have yelped, and scrambled, and
struggled, and fought for their rations, as did the human beasts we
saw clutching and gripping from weaker women and children that which
had fallen within their reach, or trampling in the mud underfoot the
food they were too greedy or too drunk to devour. Ay, mud, for the very
kennels ran with ale thrown in pitchers-full amongst the people, to be
caught in hats, and bonnets, and hollowed hands, as if it were rain
in an African desert. Ale! the atmosphere reeked of ale! Men, women,
and children of all ages carried it away, or drank it from all sorts
of vessels; reeled, hiccoughed, and staggered under their burden, or
sank down by the wayside; whilst others, shouting like maniacs, drained
the half-empty mugs. I tell you, sirs, Captain Cook never fell in with
greater savages. Even death and disaster in their midst had not awed
them! Ugh! I say again they are hogs, absolute hogs!”

As Joshua paused to take breath, and sank into a chair, Jabez modestly
put the question to the excitable chaplain—

“Do you not think the distributors are most to blame for this wanton
waste and excess, to say nothing of the loss of life? Surely the
arrangements of the committee must have been defective.”

The Parson’s harsh tones softened as he put out his hand to grasp the
speaker’s.

“Ay, Jabez, lad, is that thee? I’m glad to see thee _here_”—and he laid
emphasis on the word—“Ay, the distributors are answerable for——”

But the personal recognition had created a diversion. The question
Jabez had mooted was talked over by separate knots of individuals
in different quarters of the large room, whilst Mr. Clough, to Mrs.
Ashton’s amazement—yes, and gratification also—shook the salesman
warmly by the hand, and congratulated him on his apparent success.
Moreover, he bore him away to Mrs. Clough, at the loo-table, and called
her attention to the change time had effected in the old tanner’s
foster-child, in the most cordial manner.

Thanks to Mr. Ashton, Mr. Clegg had truly got his first foot into
Manchester society that coronation-day, and his old hopes might have
revived, had not a disturbing element crept into the room during the
denunciatory oration of his clerical friend.

John Walmsley, not finding his wife at home when released from yeomanry
duty, had come in quest of her, bringing two of his comrades; and when
Mr. Clegg retired from the loo-table with a bow, his eye fell first
on the conspicuous figure of Captain Travis, in the silver-and-blue
glory of uniform, bending deferentially to address Miss Chadwick; and
in another moment on the elegant Adonis he had dragged from icy death,
toying with Miss Augusta’s carved ivory fan, and whispering low to her,
whilst she hid her India-muslin robe and too eloquent face behind the
screen of her convenient harp, and drew her flexible fingers lightly
across the chords.

The lustre of that evening’s introduction was dimmed for Jabez. Augusta
scarcely looked at him as she brushed past to supper, leaning on the
arm of Lieutenant Aspinall, her white dress in strong contrast to his
dark uniform; and no doubt his pain was pictured on his face, for Ellen
Chadwick sighed, as she too passed him with her martial cavalier, and
half turned to look pitifully as she went.

There was no lack of ladies, so Mrs. Ashton paired Mr. Clegg off with a
chatty damsel of thirty or thereabouts, and he did his best to listen
and make himself agreeable, but not even the novelty of his situation
could keep his thoughts or his eyes from wandering where they should
not.

Along the whole course of the procession the Manchester Yeomanry had
been greeted with more hisses and groans than cheers. This had chafed
their noble spirits, and on disbanding they had sought consolation in
the wine-cup, which temperate Jabez was not slow to observe, although
their degree of exhilaration was not then considered a disqualification
for the drawing-room or for the society of ladies.

Mr. Ashton’s strong home-brewed supper ale was not a sedative, yet
still Augusta smiled on Laurence, in spite of her mother’s frowns,
driving Mr. Marsland to desperation, and Jabez to despair.

Indeed, he was glad when the repast was over, for then Joshua Brookes
rose to depart, sober as when he sat down, and the Chadwicks also. He
had thus an opportunity of escaping from his torment, by offering his
escort to tottering Mr. Chadwick and the parson in succession, if the
latter did not object to the slight detour. Jabez foresaw that Mr.
Travis was ready to do Miss Chadwick suit and service; but in offering
his arm to assist the slow feet of the disabled father, he little
dreamed how gladly the daughter would have made an exchange; nor, had
he been wiser, would he have thrust himself in big Ben’s way, any more
than would Mrs. Chadwick, who openly favoured the “personable and
unimpeachable” captain.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-THIRD.

CLOGS.


Leaving the Chadwicks at their own door, where Captain Travis would
fain have lingered had he been encouraged, Jabez and he fell back as
guards to their reverend friend, whose excitability might otherwise
have involved him in some unpleasantness, so disorderly a riff-raff
occupied the streets.

Turning down Church Street, they pursued their dimly lighted way
along Cannon Street, (so named from dismounted cannon captured from
“rebels” which served as corner posts), through Hanging Ditch to Hyde’s
Cross; thence past the deserted Apple Market, and Dr. Smith’s ancient
labyrinth of a house, to the Parson’s less antiquated domicile in the
corner by the Grammar School and those College-gates which had been
the portals of peace and promise to Jabez, and not only to him, but to
hundreds besides.

The excitement of old Joshua had been toned down amongst the wax-lights
and pleasant faces around the Ashtons’ well-spread supper-table, and at
first he was disposed to be conversable after his own peculiar manner.
They had purposely avoided Shude-Hill Market by an ample circuit;
but stragglers of both sexes from the scene of riot lay maundering
or asleep in their path, or crossed it at every turn, in all stages
of inebriation and disorder; until the natural irritability of the
chaplain (increased by failing health) broke forth in loud-voiced
indignation, ending in a wail that he was “getting old and powerless,”
or he would “rise like another John Knox, and denounce the wickedness
rampant in the land.”

“A good man lives there, Jabez,” said he, pointing to the
black-and-white home of the head-master, where lighted windows told of
hospitality awake, “a good man, but for whom I should not be alive to
tell you; but there are those in the pulpit, my lads, whom the Church
ought to spue out, lest they poison the flocks it is their duty to
feed. Can the stream be pure if the fountain be polluted? And how shall
we rebuke the gross excesses of the untaught rabble whilst chambering,
gluttony, and drunkenness defile the high places of the land? Ugh!
There wants another flood to wash Europe sweet and clean. The sin on
the earth was not greater in the days of Noah!”

They were crossing the space before the two closed gates when he paused
for lack of breath; and Travis, with no thought but to change the
subject, observed to Jabez, over the head of the panting pastor—

“How quiet this little nook of ground is now! Yet to me and no doubt to
you, Mr. Clegg, it is haunted by ghosts of old times!”

That set Joshua off again.

“Ugh! to hear a lad of five-and-twenty talk of old times! What’s the
world coming to? Ghosts indeed! It had like to have been haunted by
ghosts of something more than old times as Jabez and I know to our
cost. I’ve never been right since the young ruffians had me in their
clutches! And mark you, my lads, and think of it when you have young
ones of your own to rear: there’s no worse sign for a country or a
family than when the young jibe and jeer, mock and scorn their elders.
When grey hairs fail to command respect, virtue, principle, and
religion are at their lowest ebb.”

He stood within his own gate as he said this, and as Tabitha opened the
door for her master, he checked all reply with—

“There! you’ve had a sermon for nothing. Ugh! you’ll forget it when the
old man’s back turns. Good night, lads! See you steer clear of brawls,
and give drunken fools a wide berth.”

Leaving the young men so abruptly dismissed to retrace their steps
towards Hyde’s Cross, it may be as well if we throw a light on some of
Parson Brookes’s dark allusions. Time had not smoothed the old man’s
eccentricities, nor modified the antagonism between the Grammar School
boys and the ex-master. They were always at war, and there never was
wanting a _casus belli_. The previous September he had been more than
usually irritated by a lampoon which began—

  “O Jotty, you dog
    Your house we well know
  Is headquarters of prog——”

the purport of which was to fix on him the stigma of inviting a friend
to dine, and regaling him with a black-pudding only.

Lashed to fury, he burst into the Grammar School when the first and
second-form boys were assembled in the afternoon to rehearse the
speeches which, according to custom, they were to deliver in public
at the annual commemoration in October. He braved them in his hottest
style, winding up with, “You are a set of blockheads! I would not come
to hear your speeches if you would pay me for it!”

There was a general cry, “Turn him out! Turn him out!” But Jotty would
not be turned out. He stuck himself in the doorway with his legs
against the door-post, and his back against the door itself, to the
extreme risk of broken limbs, whilst his young and vigorous opponents
brought their strength to bear upon the door to force him out.

With such odds he was sure to be overcome; but, driven into the yard,
he fought with his antagonists like a mastiff at bay, and they, like
the cowards they must have been, to have assailed in a body an old man
(under any provocation), by sheer force of numbers, bore him backwards
to the wall, and, but for the opportune arrival of Dr. Smith, would
have repeated the outrage perpetrated on Jabez Clegg eight years before.

He might well say Dr. Smith had saved his life. Such a fall, whether
in high or low water, to so old a man, would have been certain
destruction. They broke his heart, I think, if they did not break his
limbs, for he never was the same man afterwards. Even old Mrs. Clowes
used to rally him on his frequent “fits of the dumps.”

Whether Jabez and Ben Travis had, or had not, lost sight of the
Parson’s homily, they were linked arm in arm, the rich yeomanry officer
and the unpretending smallware-salesman, just as, nearly nine years
previously, the big, raw-boned youth, with a heart large enough to
match his frame, had linked his arm in that of the poor Blue-coat boy,
as a friend and protector, when as yet his admittance into society was
undreamed of.

Where the four roads met at Hyde’s Cross, a staggering Charlie (as the
watchmen were called, much as, at this day, they are Bobbies) passed
them, with his horn lantern and staff, and his rattle in his belt,
proclaiming—

“Past ten o’clock! (hiccup). And a foin moonleet neet!”

The two stood for a moment; then, animated by a desire to ascertain if
Joshua Brookes had spoken sooth, or, in his spleen exaggerated, they
turned up Shude-hill, all alive with people who were ordinarily at that
hour in bed, and made their way to the market.

Exaggerate! Joshua Brookes had seen but in part, and painted but in
part. Every avenue to the market was a scene of debauchery. Hogarth’s
print of “Gin Lane” was feeble beside it. The distribution of food was
over, but that of drink continued. The oil-lamps of the street, the
dying illumination lamps, and the misty moonlight showed a picture of
unimaginable grossness; whilst their ears were assailed with foulness
which would have shocked a hardened man of the world—how much more
these inexperienced young friends!

Children, men, and women, their clothes torn or disarrayed, lay singly,
or in groups, on the paths, or in the gutters, asleep or awake, drunk,
sick, helpless, exposed; there was fighting and cursing over the ale
yet procurable; there were loaves in the gutters, and meat trampled in
the mire; food which, properly distributed, would have gladdened many a
poor, hard-working family, too self-respecting to join that clamorous
mob.

The two young men turned away sick and disgusted.

“Henry Hunt, in advocating the disuse of excisable liquors,” said
Jabez, thoughtfully, “may only have designed to cripple the Government;
but surely no one could witness scenes like these, whether Whig or
Tory, without feeling that some restriction on drink is absolutely
necessary for the safety of the State and the comfort of the people.”

“You are right, Mr. Clegg,” responded Travis, heartily. “Men of all
politics ought to meet on this ground. I shall see how far my little
influence goes to check intemperance henceforth. Something must be
done, and that promptly.”

“Whatever I can do to second you, you may depend on, though beyond our
own warehouse my opportunities are small,” said Jabez; “still, if I can
influence one within our walls, that one may act on two outside, and so
we may prevail in the end.”

“Yes,” added Travis, “and if this night be not eloquent in its protest
against drink, all humanity must be equally debased and brutalised.”

Some caution had been necessary to cross the Market, so as to avoid
insult, the captain’s bulk and uniform rendering him conspicuous, and
his corps being in anything but good odour. They had kept well within
the shade of the pillared piazza which extended along the side to their
right, and, stunned by the uproar of brawling and fighting crowds,
picked their way between degraded humanity in heaps on the pavement,
crushed hats and bonnets, torn caps and shawls, boots and shoes which
had done duty as drinking vessels, sodden meat and bread, and had much
ado to avoid splashing through puddles of ale and other abominations.
They had emerged into Oak Street, glad to have got tolerably clear of
the clamour and brutality, when a cry from the direction of Tib Street,
“Watch! help! watch!” fell on their ears in tones which had a strangely
familiar ring to Jabez.

Hastening on at a run, they came upon a decently-dressed man struggling
against three or four drunken ruffians with heavy clogs on their feet.
They had got the man down, and were vociferating with oaths not to be
repeated here.

“Gi’e him a lick wi’ thi clog!” “Punce him well!” “Shut up his
tater-trap fur him!” “Purr him i’ th’ bread-basket” “Fettle his mug wi’
thi clog!”

Before Jabez and his companion could prevent it, a heavy thud, followed
by a groan, told of a brutal kick; the two only dashed among them in
time to arrest the other clogs, already on the backward swing for
force; and saved the prostrate man by turning the fury of the savages
on themselves. The cowardly brutes, however, stood little chance
against sobriety and skill, backed by the muscular frame of Jabez
and the herculean one of Travis, even though they carried weapons of
offence on their feet, and plied them vigorously; and before a droning
watchman hove in sight to spring his rattle for assistance, they were
overmastered or put to the rout.

Most thankful was Jabez for the impulse which had directed their steps
that way when, on raising the fallen man, the light of an adjacent
oil-lamp projecting from the wall fell on his blood-stained face, and
revealed Tom Hulme, who had been drawn into that unusually disorderly
neighbourhood by like curiosity with their own, and been set upon
without provocation. He walked with pain, and they supported his steps
to the Infirmary, not finding Mr. Huertley, on whom they called, at
home. But so fertile had that evening been of serious injuries, he was
some time before he could obtain attention. Thirteen far more urgent
cases had preceded his. At length his head and cut lip were plaistered
up, a reviving draught administered, and after some examination of
bruises, and poking and pressing of his body, three of his ribs were
pronounced “broken.” His defenders were disposed to smile at the
surgeon when, besides an embrocation for bruises, he prescribed “a
succession of oatmeal poultices applied internally”—in other words, a
cushion of as much oatmeal porridge as the patient could consume, to
press the crushed ribs gently into position.

It was, however, not much of a laughing matter to Tom Hulme, or to
loving Bess, who looked aghast at this deplorable termination of a
day’s jollity. Nor was there a trace of mirth on the face of Jabez when
at parting with Ben Travis on the Mosley Street door-step, he gripped,
more in pain than pleasure, the big hand extended so cordially.

It was after midnight, but from the open windows of the still-lighted
drawing-room the thin quick ears of Jabez had caught the sound of
Augusta’s melodious voice blending with that of Laurence Aspinall
in a popular duet, although the notes of the latter were neither
so clear nor so steady as they might have been. The pallor on her
foster-son’s face Bess attributed to tender-hearted sympathy for her
injured husband; but Jabez hurried away from her oppressive thanks to
the solitude of his own chamber, where he could bury his face in his
quivering hands, and unseen wrestle with emotions of which she had no
conception.

Never had he known a day so chequered. The same sun which had looked
down at noontide on the triumph of his amateur brush, had beamed on
Augusta Ashton’s conscious cheeks, as she accepted his rival’s familiar
act of gallantry without so much as a frown. The evening had made a man
of him—lifted him into a new sphere—brought him, so to speak, nearer
to his divinity, within the radius of her smiles, the music of her
voice. She had put her small white hand within his, and blessed him
with a word or two of shy recognition; but Laurence Aspinall had again
come like a cloud between him and his sunbeam; her sweetest smiles,
her softest tones, were for the intruder; her arm had rested willingly
on his, her voice had blent with his in sentimental song, and darkness
once more shut out hope from Jabez.

“Common sense might have taught me that my love was folly, presumption,
madness!” he argued with himself; “that the heiress of a wealthy
man would not stoop to her father’s Blue-coat apprentice. But oh!”
he groaned, “I had hoped to raise myself step by step nearer to her
level—to make myself worthy of her as a man, if I had not riches to
lay at her feet. She is young, and what might I not accomplish with
industry ere she came of age? but now——”

He tore his neckcloth off, and cast it from him, stripped off coat and
vest, and flung them aside, as though they held his passionate folly,
and he had done with it, then sank into a chair, the very impersonation
of listless hopelessness. He had gone through all this struggle once
before, and thought he had overcome his weakness; but at the touch
of the enchanter’s wand love had blazed up afresh, and was not to be
smothered.

His reverie was broken into by the tread of many feet on the staircase
below, and the murmur of voices calling one to another; the hall-door
shut with a clang, and then a light foot came tripping up the stair
alone, and from heart and lips dropped unconsciously the soft refrain
of that too well-known duet. She, too, was carrying to her chamber
memories of the night, and bearing the burden blithely.

He listened until a door closed upon step and song. Then as if its
echoes pierced his soul, he set his teeth and clenched his outstretched
hands in mute agony. There was more than hopeless love in this—there
was jealousy also. Then he murmured half audibly, “If he were only
worthy of her I could bear it better; but to see her cast her heart at
the feet of one who will trample on it, is beyond mortal endurance.”

He started to his feet. A bright thought irradiated his face.

“Coward that I am! I am quitting the battle without striking a blow.
I am myself unworthy of Augusta if I surrender her to a heartless
profligate without an effort to save her. ‘Faint heart never won fair
lady.’ Women have stooped lower, and lowly men have looked higher ere
now. I am making way, but I must make money too, if I would look above
me. Father and mother look on me with favour, and why not the daughter?
She may learn the worthlessness of the fine gentleman in time. Courage,
Jabez! Work with a will; do your duty. Miss no opportunity, and the
gold and the goddess may both be yours in the end, and honestly won.”

He sprang into bed fresher and lighter than he had been all day, the
prayer of that other Jabez rising from his heart with the fervour of
old times.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-FOURTH.

BIRDS OF A FEATHER.


The Palace Inn on the north side of Market Street Lane was the last
relic of that cramped thoroughfare to disappear at the bidding of
Improvement. Possibly because its many eyes and bald dark-red-brick
face looked out on a space so much beyond the twenty-one yards assigned
by Act of Parliament to the regenerated street that the Improvement
Committee had no powers to meddle with it, for surely its historic
associations were not sufficient to protect it. Prince Charles Edward
had been hospitably lodged and entertained beneath its roof by its
owner, Mr. Dickenson, long ere it became an inn; he had harangued
his devoted followers from the stone plateau of its double flight of
steps, with his hand perchance on its smooth rail of unornamented
iron; but in isolated dignity rather than palatial pretensions lay its
chief safeguard. Be that as it may, fourteen or fifteen years elapsed
between the first act of demolition for widening (at the shop of a Mr.
Maund), and that last feat of narrowing, which blocked up and darkened
history (as represented by the Palace) with common stone warehouses
for every-day merchandise. Alas! Clio and all her sister muses _must_
succumb when Mammon is on the march!

But Mammon had only got his first foot in the street on that Thursday
morning in July, which blushed at the doings of the Coronation night,
and the Palace Inn yet held its head high as beseemed its historic
state. The open space in front was enlivened by the newly-painted
London stage-coach, the Lord Nelson, the fresh scarlet coats of
coachmen and guards, the assembling of passengers and luggage, the
shouting and swearing of half-awake ostlers and porters, the grumbling
of the first-comers (shivering in the raw air) at the unpunctuality of
the stage, the excuses of the booking-clerk, the self-gratulations of
the last arrival that he was “in time,” the dragging of trunks and
portmanteaus on to the top, the thrusting of bags and boxes into the
boot, the harnessing of snorting steeds, the horsing of the vehicle,
the scrambling of the “outsiders” to the top by the ladder and wheel,
the self-satisfied settlement of the “insides” in the places they had
“booked for,” the crushing and thrusting of friends with last messages
and parting words, the crack of the whip, the sound of the bugle, the
prancing of horses, the rattle of wheels, and the dashing off up Market
Street Lane of the gallant four-in-hand, amid the hurrahs of excited
spectators.

Every morning witnessed a somewhat similar scene of bustle and
excitement at five o’clock, when the London coach started, but every
morning did not see Jabez mounted on the box-seat with the coachman.
Nor did every morning see the coach an hour behind time, or the
driver’s face quite so red, or the spectators so heavy-eyed, or so
much handing up of horns and glasses to the passengers, to be returned
empty, or leave Mr. Ashton standing there when the Lord Nelson had
bowled away.

That Coronation day had much to answer for.

When Tom Hulme should have risen at four o’clock to return home, his
bruised limbs were so stiff and sore that the soldier, who had borne
the fatigue of many a campaign, who had bivouacked on the battle-field,
after a forced march, and being ready with the sun for the day’s
duties, had to confess himself “fettled” by Lancashire clogs, and
unable to stir. There was no alternative but to acquaint Mr. Ashton.
The mill could not be left without a manager.

After the night’s unwonted dissipation, Mr. Ashton slept heavily, and
was with difficulty aroused. When once he comprehended the state of
affairs, he was on the alert.

“It’s a bad business!” said he to his wife, as he dressed in haste.

“‘There is nothing so bad, but it might be worse,’” was her consolatory
reply. “Never bewail a loss till you have done your best to repair it.
Can you not send Mr. Clegg to Whaley-Bridge for a few days?”

“My dear, your counsel is invaluable, but I fear there is not time to
catch the coach; it is twenty minutes past four now.”

“It is sure to be late this morning, and Jabez will catch it if it is
to be caught,” was her quick rejoinder.

Bess had already awakened Jabez, and he, fully dressed, met Mr. Ashton
at his bedroom door with “Can I be of any service, sir?” A prompt
commentary on Mrs. Ashton’s declaration.

A few necessaries hastily crammed into a carpet bag; a bowl of milk and
a crust of bread as hastily swallowed; and Jabez, accompanied by Mr.
Ashton, was on his way to the Palace coach-office confident they were
in time, not having heard the guard’s bugle, or met the coach. There
was, however, barely time to claim for Mr. Clegg the place already
booked for “Mr. Hulme” (Mrs. Hulme’s seat was forfeited), and for him
to take his seat, before they were off in a canter, and Mr. Ashton’s
business mind was relieved.

As the manufacturer, satisfied that the mill-hands at Whaley-Bridge
would not be left altogether to their own devices, stood within a short
distance of the high steps looking after the vanishing coach, a party
of roisterers came swaggering out of the inn, hallooing with all their
tipsy might. One in advance of the rest, observing an elderly gentleman
below, pointed him out to his companions as fair game, and leaning over
the rail to steady himself, cried out—

“Halloo, old fogey! are you a Tory or a Radical? D—— me, take your hat
off before gentlemen!” and, suiting the action to the word, extended a
riding-whip he carried, and jerked Mr. Ashton’s hat off into the dust;
whereupon his worthy comrades set up a loud guffaw in admiration of the
feat.

Naturally Mr. Ashton, his brief reverie disturbed, stooped to pick up
the fallen beaver, and making due allowance for the unwonted occasion,
turned to remonstrate good-humouredly with an excited stranger who had
evidently drunk the king’s health too frequently.

It was not with more surprise than annoyance that he recognised four of
the hilarious party in the doorway and on the steps of the inn, which
had apparently been open the night through. Not one of the four was in
a condition to recognise him, although two of them, John Walmsley and
Laurence Aspinall, had supped overnight at his own table, although the
third, Kit Townley, had good reason for remembrance, and Ned Barret was
anything but a stranger.

Loud laughter hailed the fall of the hat. A second attempt to “uncover
the obstinate old fogey” was made, but dexterously avoided by Mr.
Ashton in his absolute astonishment stepping backward beyond range.

“Young gentlemen, do you know whom you are insulting?”

There was another laughing chorus. Aspinall almost toppled over the
rail as he leaned forward, impotently striking out with his whip.

“I protest the old rad’s demnibly li-ike the lovely Augusta’s snuffy
old dad,” drawled out he, in a sort of tipsy-wisdom.

“Just so!” appended Walmsley, mimicking the old gentleman’s peculiarity.

Mr. Ashton, though a reasonably temperate man himself, was not
so greatly shocked at these young carousers as we might be. Long
usage blunts sensibilities. It was a glorious distinction to be a
three-bottle man; the inability to drink a solitary bottle of wine at a
sitting was a sort of disqualification for good fellowship; and it was
considered a fine thing for a boy of seven to “toss off a glass like a
man;” so the genial old gentleman was inclined to allow some latitude
for the special occasion. But they had touched him on a tender point.
The light mention of his darling daughter’s name roused his blood.

“John Walmsley,” he cried angrily, looking up, “what brings you, a
married man, with these young rakes at this hour of the morning?”

“Pray wha-at brought y-you here, old fogey?” hiccoughed Aspinall,
answering for the other.

One of the ostlers—Bob, the ex-groom—squeezed between the rollicking
fellows to whisper in the ear of Laurence. He was impatiently thrust
back with an elbow.

“Tchut! don’t believe it. Old snuff-an’-tuppeny’s fast ’shleep in bed
shure sh a gun. I know b-better. I say, you——”

But “old snuff-an’-tuppeny” had turned on his heel, too wise to enter
into contention with a set of inebriated boobies, though not proof
against the disrespectful epithets of Laurence, or the derisive
laughter of his boon companions. His irritation half emptied his
snuff-box before he got home, so often he tapped smartly on its golden
lid, and so often his finger and thumb travelled between it and his
nose with a touch of ruminant displeasure.

Neither he nor Mrs. Ashton was disposed to overlook the fact that Kit
Townley and Ned Barret—scapegraces by repute—were of the party, nor
that Augusta’s name had been familiarly used in their midst.

“‘Birds of a feather flock together,’” said the lady; “and if Mr.
Aspinall’s son associates with that reckless and dishonest Kit
Townley, he is a very unfit friend for John Walmsley, and still worse
for our dear Augusta.”

“Just so; for a dashing blade with a handsome face, who sports a
uniform, talks poetry, and sings sentimental songs, is just the fellow
to take a silly girl’s fancy, before she is old enough to think. I know
I regret I ever brought him _here_,” said Mr. Ashton seriously, as
Augusta came in the room to breakfast, entering at the door behind her
mother’s back.

“Well, William,” observed Mrs. Ashton loftily, her hand on the china
coffee-pot, “you can imagine _my_ annoyance when John and Mr. Laurence
walked in arm-in-arm last night, after the liberty he had taken in the
morning—kissing his hand to our daughter from the public procession
in the face of all our friends, as if Augusta had been a flaunting
barmaid. I was most indignant!”

Augusta said “Good morning,” and took her seat with a heightened
colour. Such a construction of the gallant officer’s salute had not
occurred to her, and native delicacy took alarm.

Mrs. Ashton continued to pour out her thoughts along with the coffee.
It was fit Augusta should know her sentiments on this head.

“It would have been a breach of hospitality to resent it before our
friends, and not good policy either. But I shall put a stop to his
visits henceforth.”

“Oh! mamma,” exclaimed Augusta, dropping her hands at this climax, “you
cannot mean that!”

“Yes, my dear, I do. If Mr. Aspinall has depraved associates, he must
be depraved himself; and I am sure my daughter”—she drew herself
up proudly—“would not choose her friends from those of Christopher
Townley.”

Augusta’s colour suffered no decrease. She paused as she was taking her
dry toast from the silver rack, and half-hesitatingly remonstrated.

“Of course I should not wish to associate with Mr. Townley’s friends.
But papa may be mistaken. I do not think Mr. Aspinall would mix with
them. People meet and mingle at coach-offices who are strangers.”

“Just so, my dear; but——” interposed her father.

“Why, mamma,” the persistent young lady went on, “no more perfect
gentleman enters our doors than Mr. Laurence Aspinall. His manners are
most refined. Then he talks enchantingly, and sings divinely. And”—this
she thought conclusive—“is he not intimate with Charlotte and John?”

“Just so,” quickly answered Mr. Ashton, glancing across the table at
his attentive wife, “and all the worse for Charlotte and John. I shall
have a word with them on the subject. I called in Marsden Square on my
way home, and found Charlotte with red eyes. John had not been home all
night.” And Mr. Ashton battered the top of an egg whilst delivering
what he regarded as a crushing argument.

Breakfast and the discussion were unusually prolonged, the only
impression left on the young lady’s romantic, impressible, and
inexperienced mind being that her parents were unaccountably harsh to
her, and unjust to Mr. Laurence, in her eyes the beau-ideal of a man.
Such a figure and such a face could only enshrine divinity. And if he
was a little wild, so were all heroes at his age.

Let not the inexperienced young girl be over-much condemned for this.
The opinion generally prevailed in her day; she had heard the sentiment
expressed in farces on the stage, in society at home and elsewhere;
even her own father’s hospitality trended in the same direction.

Mrs. Ashton was a woman of her word. The door in Mosley Street was
closed against Mr. Laurence Aspinall, and James was incorruptible.

But the teaching of Miss Bohanna’s library being that Love was
far-seeing and parents were blind, it followed that Miss Augusta
(who would have resented any supposition of wilful disobedience or
intentional disrespect towards the good father and mother she loved
so dearly) met the fascinating gentleman (always by chance) either at
her cousin’s in Marsden Square or in her walks abroad, and scented
billet-doux came and went between the leaves of four-volumed romances,
which Cicily carried to and from the library. One of these fell into
Mrs. Ashton’s hands, when finding her advice contemned, she took
measures to check this premature and clandestine love-making, as she
thought, effectually.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-FIFTH.

AT CARR COTTAGE.


Tom Hulme was most anxious to get back to Whaley-Bridge and the mill,
and motherly Bess was equally uneasy to return to her poor little Sim,
afraid lest he should tax his grandfather’s strength over-much, or
meet with some fresh accident. Yet more than a week elapsed before her
husband was fit to travel, and in the interim Mr. Ashton had himself
gone thither to ascertain how the new substitute filled the post.

He was still at Carr Cottage when the “Lord Nelson” stopped at the end
of the avenue, and Jabez, with fragile Sim mounted on his shoulder,
trotted down to the gate to welcome Bess and her invalid home. They had
travelled inside, but John Loudon Mac-Adam had not yet been appointed
“Surveyor of Roads,” and Tom Hulme had suffered severely from the
jolting of the coach.

Bess clasped her child tenderly, and held him up for his father’s
kiss; but she put him down to walk on before them (he could not run),
whilst she and Jabez helped the injured corporal to ascend the steep
incline. Old Simon, who seemed to have got a new lease of life from the
invigorating country air and occupation, had already breakfasted, and
was in the bean-field gathering the first ripe pods for a dinner of
beans and bacon.

“Eh, Tum, lad!” said he, as he entered the house-place, and saw his
son-in-law’s pale face against the blue-and-white check cover of the
arm-chair, “whoi, thi feace is as whoite as a clout! Tha’ll noan be
fit to wark fur one whoile. Thah’s nobbut fit fur t’ sit under th’
sycymoore tree, an’ look at th’ fleawers, an’ watch me put th’ garden
i’ fettle.”

“Just so,” said Mr. Ashton, bringing his pleasant face in at the door;
“I think Mr. Clegg will have to do duty for you a while longer. And
don’t distress yourself about it, Mr. Hulme, for I fancy a little fresh
air will do _him_ no harm this hot weather; he has been overworking
lately, and does not look too brisk.”

“You are very kind, sir,” responded Jabez, “but I trust a few days’
rest will set Mr. Hulme on his feet again.” He said nothing of himself.

But Tom Hulme had received unsuspected internal injuries, and many
weeks went by before he was stout as before—weeks pregnant with fate
for Jabez; and not Jabez alone.

Factory hours were long, but the Summer days were longer, and he was
glad after work was over to ramble away through the valley of the Goyt,
following the winding of the stream, or over the larch-clad hills
above Taxal, whence he would return with the rising moon, bringing
pockets full of the crisp-brown fir-cones for Sim to play with. In the
pine-woods, alone with nature, he could give vent to his emotions, or
indulge in meditation at his will.

Mr. Ashton, however, found him other occupation for his spare hours.
The landlord of the “White Hart,” bearing in mind that Mr. Clegg had
come under his roof first as a travelling artist, had expatiated to Mr.
Ashton with much pathos on the deplorable condition of the inn sign,
not without sundry broad hints that Mr. Clegg’s temporary residence on
the spot was a glorious opportunity not to be neglected. Mr. Ashton had
smiled, said “Just so,” taking a pinch from the immense snuff-box lying
on the bar-parlour chimney-piece, then fallen back upon his own, gone
away, and forgot the dingy sign altogether, until another hint from his
tenant refreshed his memory.

As he stood at the inn door waiting for the Manchester coach, an upward
sly glance of the jolly host’s caused him to say to the young man by
his side, “Do you think you could manage to paint a new sign for the
‘White Hart,’ to oblige Chapman and me?”

Jabez hesitated, not from unwillingness.

“I’m afraid, sir, to attempt. It’s not in my line, and——”

“Oh! you can do it well enough. Remember the banner.”

“I’ve no materials here, sir, else——”

“If that is all, you shall have them in a day or two.”

In a few days an easel, a new sign-board, and colours were sent by the
Manchester and Buxton carrier, and Jabez set to work, to the especial
wonder and admiration of little Sim, who delighted to stand by his
side, and grew rebellious when “bed-time” was announced. Jabez was,
however, but an untaught artist, and his painting hours were few;
the _couchant_ hart was rubbed in and wiped out over and over again
before he was satisfied even with the outline; but then it grew in fair
proportion under his brush, until he felt there was something in him
beyond the region of tapes and braces.

The graceful animal, resplendent in golden collar and chain, looked
mildly out from the easel in the parlour nearest to the passage (used,
when the family was there, as an eating-room), and little Sim gravely
reported to his elders it only wanted “gass, an’ tee, an’ ky,” when
the inmates of Carr Cottage were startled by the arrival of unexpected
visitors.

It was the second week in August; the air was heavy with the perfume of
clove carnations, honeysuckle, mignonette, lavender, musk, and mint.
Golden sunflower and crimson hollyhock were in their glory; bees and
wasps hovered over balsams and china asters, or hid themselves in the
blue Canterbury bells or the amber nectary of the stately white lily.
Fruits were ripe for the gatherer, grain was falling under the sickle.
Bess, in a fair white muslin cap, a large check apron over her dark
chocolate-and-white-print gown (her blue bed-gown days were over), was
moving quietly about the house-place, preparing their early breakfast,
no longer restricted to oatmeal porridge.

Tom, looking worn, but clean and neat as loving hands could make him,
leaned back in his soft arm-chair, and watched her with well-satisfied
eyes. Little Sim was already in the garden with his grandfather,
helping to gather raspberries and currants for preserving.

The tall oak-cased clock struck seven, and then, true to time, the
guard’s bugle announced the coming of the coach from Manchester.
Instinctively Bess went to the door, as was her wont, when the coach
came in. She uttered an exclamation of surprise.

“Eh, Tum! aw declare t’ coach is stoppin’ at ar gate. Happen theer’s a
parcel or summat for ar Jabez.”

And off she set past the kitchen window and the farm-yard Gothic
doorway, and down the avenue, with the light foot of a younger woman.
Before she reached the avenue gate, the stuffy vehicle had yielded
up three ladies and two bandboxes, and the guard having unlocked the
capacious boot (a kind of closet at the back), dragged thence, with
much superfluous puffing and straining, two hair trunks of moderate
dimensions. Yes, there stood Mrs. Ashton, grandly calm; bright-haired
Augusta, tall, slim, and, it must be added, unamiably silent; and Ellen
Chadwick, whose black eyes had an absolute glow of expectancy in their
depths. Bess put up her hand in amazement.

“Eh, Mrs. Ashton, madam! yo’ han takken us unawares! an’ theere is na a
bit o’ flesh meat i’ th’ heause; an’ th’ butcher’s cart wunna be reawnd
agen till Setterday! But awm downreet glad to see yo’ an’ th’ young
ladies” (she dropped a respectful curtsey), “an’ a’ lookin’ so weel. Aw
wur afeard yo’ wur no’ comin’ this Summer.”

“Never mind the butcher’s meat, Mrs. Hulme; having come to Carr we must
do as Carr does; I do not doubt we shall fare very well,” said the
stately lady, reassuringly. “I trust we shall find your good husband
free from pain, and Mr. Clegg and your family in health.”

Bess thanked Mrs. Ashton for her kind inquiries, but somehow she
boggled over the “Mr. Clegg.” She was proud enough of his advancement,
but to her he was still “Jabez;” and he did not seek to be otherwise.

There was a difficulty about the luggage, no men being about. By this
time old Simon was nearly down the hill, little Sim following at his
heels, his face, hands, and pinafore stained with fruit.

“I run for Joe,” cried crippled Sim, as Bess tried the weight of a
trunk, and Ellen interposed. Run indeed! It was the very travestie of a
run!

“Well, yo’ see as heaw o’ Moore’s folk are eawt i’ th’ fields cuttin’
whoats [oats]. Feyther an’ me con carry one on em atween us. They’re
noän so heavy.”

Mrs. Ashton would not hear of it. Just then little Sim came back
with Joe—his most particular friend, to whom he was chief patron—a
drivelling idiot, a man in frame, a child in heart and brain. He was a
pitiable object, the scoff of the rabble, but he had sense enough to
know his protectors. At the instance of the four-years-old child, he
shouldered the box with a vacant chuckle; and Sim, loaded with an oval
pasteboard bandbox half as big as himself, waddled after him as fast as
his deformity would permit.

Before the travellers could reach the top of the avenue Jabez Clegg
was with them, the other trunk upon his shoulder. He had heard at the
“White Hart” of their arrival, and had almost sacrificed the dignity of
his position in _his_ desire to run.

There were more greetings, accompanied by a cordial shaking of hands;
and Bess and Simon looked on with pleasure, not unmixed with pain, that
the foundling they had adopted and reared had mounted far above their
heads, albeit in rising he had drawn them up too.

He breakfasted not with them in the house-place, but with the
new-comers in the parlour; and Bess herself waited upon them, Meg, her
little maid, being off in the harvest field gleaning for a bed-ridden
mother.

She heard him conversing freely, if deferentially, with the lofty Mrs.
Ashton on topics and in a language her provincial tongue could never
compass. She saw him turn to answer the arch sallies of Miss Ashton,
and the quieter observations of Miss Chadwick, and noted that the dark
eyes of the latter kindled when he spoke, and her cheeks had a warmer
glow, as if they caught their hue from the flushed face of Jabez.

Breakfast over—little Sim had sat on the door-step to share his with
Crazy Joe,—whilst Ellen and Augusta retired to unpack. Mrs. Ashton
graciously accepted the escort of Mr. Clegg to the mill, and they trod
the avenue and the high-road side by side, discussing business matters,
her dignity losing no whit by the companionship. Mrs. Ashton was one of
those who can lift up without stooping.

Clouds never lingered on Augusta’s face; she had been transported
thither, as she said, “with no more ceremony than a bale of twist,” but
she put off her displeasure with her travelling bonnet, and danced into
the kitchen airily as a sylph, to help Bess out of the quandary caused
by their advent.

“I am afraid our arrival has been very inauspicious,” Augusta said,
“but I can assure you I was not consulted, and am not to blame” (she
had certainly not been consulted—blame was another matter). “And now
what can I do for you, Mrs. Hulme?”

Augusta tucked up the sleeves of her peach-coloured gingham dress,
borrowed a linen apron from Bess, who confessed to being “rayther a
heavy hond at paste,” and soon the matron was at ease respecting pies,
and tarts, and custards. Simon Clegg brought in a dish of trout fresh
from the stream; the larder supplied savoury ham and eggs, the garden
furnished peas; so Mrs. Ashton was not far wrong.

It was but a spurt on Augusta’s part; her tender impressionable heart
had melted at Mrs. Hulme’s first look of dismay, but, the impulse over,
there was no more tucking up of sleeves or handling of paste pins.
Fortunately for their digestion, Ellen Chadwick had no less skill,
since, quiet as she was, she seemed to lack an outlet for superabundant
energy, and, obtrusively restless, helped Bess she hardly knew how, or
how much.

Augusta wandered about cottage and garden, or sat for hours under the
shade of the great sycamore tree, singing low-voiced plaintive ditties;
feeling herself the most ill-used and wretched being in existence,
separated from her adorable lover; and the more she brooded, the more
discontented and melancholy she became. It was all very real and very
much to be deplored. No knife cuts so keenly at the heart-strings as
the sharp edge of a first love turned in upon itself; and Augusta was
as much in love as ever was maiden of seventeen.

Mrs. Ashton went daily to the mill, but a casual remark of Mrs.
Hulme’s on “Miss Ashton’s mopin’ an’ malancholy” aroused the attention
of the energetic mother, and she did her best to counteract morbid
fancies with long sharp walks in the early morning (extending, on one
occasion, as far as Shawcross Hall, where she astonished her relatives
by an informal visit), and a repetition of the dose in the evening,
when Mr. Clegg made one of the party, thus unconsciously adding fuel
to the fires which, unknown to her, consumed alike her niece and her
warehouseman.

At the end of ten days, Mrs. Ashton returned to Manchester, leaving the
girls behind. She had extorted a promise from Augusta that she would
not write to Mr. Laurence Aspinall, and relied on that promise being
faithfully kept. Moreover, after some debate with herself, as they
walked from the mill together on the last afternoon of her stay, she
committed her daughter and niece to Jabez Clegg’s care.

“You are a very young man for so important a charge,” she said, “but
you are steady as old Time, and of your integrity and fidelity we have
had many proofs. Miss Ashton’s health demands a prolonged stay on this
breezy hill-side, but I fear she feels it dull after Manchester. If you
will endeavour to amuse her when you see her drooping, I shall consider
myself your debtor, sir; and should anything _unusual_ attract your
notice, I depend on your calling our attention to it.”

“I feel honoured by the trust you repose in me, madam,” replied he, a
grave consciousness of his own danger stirring at his heart; “you may
depend on my watchfulness over Miss Ashton and her cousin.”

But of any danger to Miss Ashton beyond that arising from a
sensitively delicate frame, which might need the sudden summons of Dr.
Hull to allay the fears of parents anxious for their only child, he
had no suspicion or perception. He had no more clue to Mrs. Ashton’s
hidden meaning than she to his secret emotions. It had been wiser to
have been more explicit. Without that charge he might have made it a
point of honour, if not of duty, to hold aloof from the young ladies
lest he should be obtrusive: as it was, the more he pondered, the more
he became satisfied that it was only a delicate way of giving sanction
to a companionship he might otherwise have regarded as presumptuous.

Accordingly, he constituted himself their cavalier after business
hours, fulfilling to the letter his instructions to endeavour to amuse
Augusta whenever he found her drooping, well rewarded if he could win
back a smile or a peal of the rippling laughter he had heard so oft in
her school-girl days. His attentions to Miss Chadwick were tinctured
with the profoundest respect, but there was no effort to entertain or
be agreeable; on the contrary, it was Miss Chadwick who kept the light
shafts of her cousin’s wit within bounds when they were likely to
wound—as they did sometimes.

The White Hart, to Sim’s disquiet, would have suffered long from dearth
of herbage, had not thunderous clouds emptied their reservoirs amongst
the hills, until brooks became rivers, and roads almost impassable.
Then Jabez resumed his brush, Sim clapped his thin little hands
with delight, whilst the sedate young lady of twenty-four, and the
bewitching damsel of sweet seventeen, varied the monotony of piano,
book, or embroidery-frame, with an occasional criticism of his work.

It was a time fraught with intoxicating delight, but of terrible
temptation to Jabez. The frequent fits of langour which bowed Augusta
down like a drooping lily, made her only more dangerously dear to him,
and it needed all his strength to remember that she was his master’s
daughter, and confided to his care. If he now thought of Laurence
Aspinall and his fascination, it was only as a butterfly beau, for whom
no sensible maiden could entertain a permanent liking. Not even when,
turning back one forenoon for something in the closet which he had
forgotten, he found her in tears on the low ledge of the open window at
the foot of the staircase.

“Good heaven, Miss Ashton, what is the matter? Are you ill? Is anything
troubling you?”

“Nothing,” sobbed she, the clear drops falling faster.

“Nothing! oh, Miss Ashton, this cannot be for nothing,” and he sat down
on the window-ledge beside her, not daring so much as to touch her
hand, his own were in such a quiver.

“Miss Ashton—Augusta—you told me your troubles when you were a
school-girl, am I less worthy your confidence now? Can I do anything
to serve you? I would lay my life down to save you from pain;” and the
earnest tenderness of his voice spoke volumes.

She had subdued her emotion. Gathering herself up with a reflex of her
mother’s stateliness, she said haughtily, “It is nothing, sir, I am
better,” and swept past him up the staircase, leaving him to set his
teeth and turn away with clenched hands, alike exasperated at his own
loss of self-command and grieved for her grief.

On the narrow landing which ran parallel with the staircase like a
balcony, Augusta found her cousin Ellen, with one hand on her side,
leaning against the chamber door-post, as if for support, with closed
eyes and pale lips. She had been “overcome by the heat”—so she said.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-SIXTH.

THE LOVERs’ WALK.


Jabez held a responsible post, and had no more leisure than other
business men for emotional indulgence. He hurried out of the cottage,
and down the avenue, shutting up his bitter feelings within the doors
of his heart as he went. But the process closed his eyes and ears to
external sounds, and the old postman, with his long tin horn, which
had been echoing through the straggling village a full quarter of an
hour, passed him in the avenue and said, “Good-day,” without so much as
arresting his attention.

At the mill he found letters waiting—one, which had been post-paid as a
double letter, conspicuous amongst the wafered business communications,
not only because of its thick, gilt-edged paper, and crimson disk of
crested wax, but from its curious folding, as if to baffle prying eyes.

It was signed “Ben Travis,” and was so long, it went into a pantaloon
pocket, to be read when his multifarious duties allowed him more
leisure.

When the hands were dismissed at noon, and the one clerk had left
the counting-house, he took out the voluminous epistle, which was
dated September 10th, and certainly found therein matter of interest.
Amongst a few preliminary items of news, he learned that the excesses
of the Coronation night had created so much disgust in the minds of
thinking men that many of those who had denounced Henry Hunt’s advocacy
of abstinence, and at the public expense had formerly disseminated
printed laudations of good brown ale, the “old English beverage,” as “a
cheering and strengthening drink,” no longer branded the water-drinkers
as “enemies to the corporeal constitution of Englishmen,” but had given
their countenance to social gatherings whence intoxicating liquors were
excluded. Travis himself was doing what he could to promote these
temperate meetings, and looked for the earnest co-operation of Mr.
Clegg on his return to Manchester. (And he did not look in vain; though
neither of the young social reformers saw in advance how universal
would become the temperance movement of which this was the unpretending
precursor).

The letter went on to say—

“Miss Chadwick and her fair cousin were spirited away mysteriously. At
first I blamed myself as the unhappy cause. I have since discovered
my mistake, through a quarrel between Mr. Walmsley and Mr. Laurence
Aspinall, when both were slaves to Bacchus—_In vino veritas!_ I suppose
you know that Mr. Aspinall the elder is a martyr to the gout, and has
been driven by his enemy to the Buxton baths. The cause, I have heard,
was a gentlemanly debauch in a fit of passion or wounded pride. His son
joins him to-day. I scarcely think he will call on your young ladies
after what has occurred.”

“What has occurred?” repeated Jabez, “what can he mean by that? I wish
correspondents would be more explicit!”

He pondered over this sentence, but could make nothing of it, and after
reading a little way, came to the real object of the letter, prefaced
as it was with much circumlocution.

“It may seem strange that a great, big, burly fellow like myself should
be such a booby as to seek the intervention of a third person in an
affair of the heart. Yet, if I have any insight into your nature, I
think I may confide in you, and depend on your good offices. After so
many months’ dangling and craven hesitation, I summoned up courage to
make my pretensions known to Miss Chadwick. I know I did it clumsily
and ungracefully; the very strength of my passion fettered my tongue.
I shall never forget the pitiful look of the sweet girl as she burst
into tears, assured me of her esteem, but declined my suit. Her tears
unnerved me, and I had not power to plead my own cause. Do not despise
me, Clegg; neither Samson nor Hercules was any stronger. I cannot
resign myself to that verdict. I would throw myself again at Ellen’s
feet, and beseech her pity, but that I dread its repetition. Can I
count on your good offices to move her in my behalf? I know the value
Miss Chadwick sets on your opinion, and how highly she esteems you, or
I should not think of asking this. The trust I repose in you is the
best proof I can give of friendship. Do not hesitate to tell me the
worst. I trust I am brave enough to bear my fate—when I know it. Mrs.
Chadwick does not believe her daughter’s decision final.”

This was a disquieting letter. Mr. Travis had been his firm, true
friend, in spite of difference in position and fortune. He had
overlooked that difference from the first, but would Miss Chadwick, his
employer’s niece, overlook it, if he stepped beyond privileged bounds?
From the depths of his own conscious heart he felt for his friend, but
how to approach so delicate a subject to serve him was perplexing. He
never thought of shirking the trust.

It was late when he got home to dinner. Ellen and Bess were both on
the look-out for him. He quickened his pace, fearing some evil to his
beloved Augusta, whom he had last seen in tears.

“What an anomaly is woman!” he thought, as he found her fingers
rattling over the keys of her piano in accompaniment to the merriest
ditty he had heard from her lips since she was a child.

There was a strange sparkle in her eyes, a vivacity in her manner so
opposed to her sadness that he asked himself if he had been dreaming
before, or was dreaming then. She blushed over her willow-pattern plate
as she took her seat, but, after that first token of susceptibility,
chatted with a volubility unusual to her, and curiously in
contradiction to the silence and reserve of Ellen Chadwick. In the
morning he had debated whether that secret trouble came within the
category of “unusual” things Mrs. Ashton required to be informed of,
and, behold! it was gone!

She rallied both Jabez and Ellen on their gravity, and at length, as
if on a sudden inspiration, asked, playing with her green-handled,
two-pronged fork—

“Shall you be very busy at the mill this afternoon, Mr. Clegg?”

It was an unusual question. He answered—

“Rather. Some bales of twist have come in from Messrs. Evans, of
Darley-Abbey Mills. I must see them unpacked, and compare the twist
with samples. But—your motive for asking?”

“Oh, if you are busy—— Well, perhaps after tea will be better; it will
be cooler. I wish you would just take Ellen a good long walk; I found
her fainting with the heat this morning.”

Ellen coloured vividly.

“Augusta!” she remonstrated.

“And yourself, Miss Ashton?” questioned he.

“Oh, I have a heap of clear-starching to do. My frills and laces are in
a woeful plight. I shall be clap-clap-clap all the afternoon, and this
sultry weather prohibits ironing until there is a cool evening breeze
to fan me through the window. Without it I should be as likely to faint
as Ellen.”

Miss Chadwick made light of her faintness, and objected, if not too
strenuously, to be so disposed of; but Augusta, in her old wilful way,
insisted, and Jabez, with his friend’s letter on his mind, was not
likely to throw opposition in the way. So, notwithstanding his recent
rebuff, he was once more “Miss Ashton’s humble servant to command.”

After an early tea, which was but a fiction to all three, Augusta
was left behind, busy with a box-iron and her lady-like laundry of
lace and muslin in the house-place, whilst Ellen Chadwick and Jabez
went rambling with the winding waters of the translucent Goyt, under
umbrageous trees on pleasant mountain slopes, where foxgloves nodded
and horsetail grasses bent before them, and only an occasional reaper
or gleaner crossed their path.

Had these two been incipient lovers, no more embarrassing silence
could have fallen upon them. If Jabez, her junior by two years, had
had a tussle to keep his love within bounds, there had at least been a
glimmer of hope in the distance, and the struggle was upwards. Ellen
had been trained from her childhood to keep her naturally strong
feelings under control; but there was a war in her breast between
maidenly shame and unsought, hopeless love, and the two hacked at
each other and at her heart in the rayless dark, and the struggle was
downwards.

Here she was, for the first time, alone with the man she loved with all
the strength of a strong heart, with the newly-gained knowledge that
he “would die to save her cousin pain;” and he, conscious of a sacred
and delicate mission, all unaware of her secret love for himself, was
perplexed how best to approach the subject, and take advantage of the
opportunity so afforded him. At length—

“I had a letter from my friend, Captain Travis, to-day,” he began.

With little perceptible emotion, she replied,

“Indeed! I hope he was in good health. You are honoured in your
friendship, sir. Mr. Travis is a noble gentleman, and I esteem him
highly.”

This paved the way for him to expatiate on Ben Travis’s many good
qualities. He told the story of the big, raw-boned youth’s first
patronage of himself, and found an attentive listener as he traced the
growth of their friendship upwards, and related favourable anecdotes
which have no place in this history. But no sooner did he begin to
plead his friend’s cause with all the warmth of young friendship, than
her manner entirely changed. Her colour came and went; she panted as
if for breath, and gasping out, “Oh—h! Mr. Clegg, for mercy’s sake,
don’t—don’t!” was seized with a sudden faintness for the second time
that day.

A lichen-covered old tree-trunk, shattered and uptorn in the late
thunder-storms, was at hand; he seated her upon it, bringing water to
revive her from a runnel near; but any attempt to renew the subject
only seemed to give her exquisite pain, and he desisted on her telling
him, in a suffocating voice,

“Honour forbids that I should listen to Mr. Travis; I—I—love another.”

Something in her tone or manner told him that her love was as hopeless
as his own for Augusta: and nothing could be more respectful and gentle
than his bearing towards her on their homeward way, thus adding fuel to
the fire which consumed her.

The evening shadows were fast closing in when they reached the cottage;
and she, with a simple inclination of the head, left Jabez on the
threshold, and passing through the parlours, carried her overmastering
emotions upwards to her room, to be grappled with in the silence of the
night.

“Wheere’s Miss Ashton?” asked Bess. “Hoo said it wur too hot to bide i’
th’ heawse an’ hoo put her irons deawn, an’ after tittivatin’ hersel’
oop a bit, went eawt a-seekin’ yo’.”

In some surprise, not unmixed with alarm, for the hour was late—as
times and country went—and the harvest brought rough strangers into the
neighbourhood, Jabez set off at full speed down the avenue, and ere he
had reached the first brook, saw her lithe figure advancing buoyantly;
and, if his eyes and the gathering mist did not deceive him, a second
figure parted from her at the gate.

She was the first to speak. “Whichever way did you people ramble off?”

“Oh, down by the Goyt, Taxal way, Miss Ashton,” answered Jabez.

“Ah! and I went up the Buxton Road; we were certain to miss.”

“I thought I saw you part from some one at the gate? Could I be
mistaken?” half-questioned her interlocutor.

“Oh, Crazy Joe! that was all!” and he took her reply in all sincerity,
not believing Augusta Ashton capable of untruth.

A day or two went by, during which Jabez wrote to tell Ben Travis
he “must arm himself with fortitude”—that “the world was full of
disappointments”—that “Miss Chadwick loved elsewhere”—but there was
“something more for men to do than die of disappointments or blighted
love.”

And yet another day or two, during which Augusta’s moods were as
variable as the gusty shadows of the sycamore, changing from wild
exuberance which rallied Ellen on her depression, and condescended
to play or dance for Sim, to a moping, moody melancholy, enlivened
by frequent showers. She was given to snatch up her hat and “run out
into the garden for a breath of fresh air,” but she generally came in
panting, as if the “run” had been literal; and sometimes she would be
found in the house when supposed out of it, and _vice versa_.

The White Hart had not yet walked away, although Jabez considered it
complete. It waited Mr. Ashton’s coming and his verdict, and stood on
the easel in the dining-room.

The morning post had brought a message to Simon Clegg concerning fruit
and vegetables for the Manchester home, and having sought him in the
kitchen-garden to deliver it, Jabez entered the house at dinner time
by the lower staircase window (frequently used for entrance and exit).
His passage through the best parlour was arrested by voices in the
room beyond, one of which he knew too well. It was that of Laurence
Aspinall. His painting was evidently under free criticism, and had been
for some time. There was some jesting at the sign-painter.

“You see, Miss Ashton, what a few touches can affect!”

The speaker had apparently made free with Clegg’s colours and brushes,
and there was a murmured sound of assent from Miss Ashton.

“Well, Barret, _Nec scire fas est omnia; Ne sutor ultra crepidam_. What
say you?”

“Yes; let the cobbler stick to his last. If this Clegg would be an
artist, let him stick to his brush; if a tradesman, let him stick to
his trade. If a man means to succeed, he must never flirt with either
art or trade. It’s just as bad as wooing two women at once.”

Jabez heard no more. The blow which had been aimed at his
art-pretensions drove him back by the way he came, and he paced the
long terrace parallel with the “Lovers’ Walk” for fully half-an-hour.
When he turned the corner of the cottage, and went in at the front
door, the critics were gone, but Aspinall’s “few touches” remained.
They had indeed given life to the White Hart. Henceforth the “cobbler”
resolved to “stick to his last.”

Ellen Chadwick had been away, with little Sim by the hand, to take some
substantial comforts to Meg’s bedridden mother. She appeared annoyed
when she heard of their masculine visitors from Buxton. Her evident
displeasure set Jabez wondering what Travis meant by “after what has
occurred,” and he wrote that afternoon for enlightenment, sending his
letter as a packet by coach, there being no second post.

It has been said that the cellarage of the cottage was only accessible
by flights of steps in the portion of the weed-grown Lovers’ Walk which
lay at the windowless back of the long low building, where nettles
grew so thick and rank that even the square unused trap over one set
of steps was half hidden by them. The path was rarely used, the farmer
having made a nearer cut from the farmyard to his ancient dwelling.

Tom Hulme was slowly recovering, under the care of a Buxton doctor who
came thrice a week. He could walk about the garden with a stick, but
there was no sending him to the dank cellar for anything. The doctor
had ordered him port wine, and Bess, who kept the key, had asked Mr.
Clegg to fetch a couple of bottles from the cellar.

Tea was over, but he fancied there was sufficient light to guide him
without a lantern. He had got the wine, and was approaching the cellar
door at the foot of the sunken steps when he heard the sound of voices
coming along the walk from the direction of the moor.

Every pulse in his body seemed to grow still as he recognised the tones
of Augusta Ashton and Laurence Aspinall, and heard with deepening
anguish the unmistakable sound of kisses interchanged. They had
apparently paused close to the stair-head for that embrace; and then he
heard—and thanked God that he was there to hear, though that hearing
blighted every hope he had—his rival, with every argument which
passionate love or skilful sophistry could employ, persuade her to
elope with him the following night.

Backwards and forwards they walked in the gathering dusk, but never
beyond the length of the premises; and now and then they stopped, and
drove him mad with their caresses. The place was so retired and lonely,
precaution was neglected; and Jabez, chained to the spot as it were,
gathered that proposals for her hand, made by Laurence himself, had
been peremptorily rejected by Mr. Ashton, who was set down as a despot
and a tyrant for refusing to surrender a silly girl of seventeen to a
rake of two-and-twenty. He heard her tell that Jabez Clegg had found
her sobbing at the separation, even whilst her darling’s letter was
at the gates. And he heard it said that the elder Aspinall not only
countenanced this secret courtship, but had furnished funds for the
proposed elopement. This generosity was set against the cruelty of her
own parents; her affection, her pride, the romance in her nature were
appealed to, but still Augusta’s better angel held her safe, until,
coward that he was, Laurence terrified her with a threat to “blow his
brains out” if she refused him.

She wept her assent upon his breast, and then Jabez, already
half-stunned, heard the details of evidently previously concocted
arrangements for their elopement and marriage at Gretna Green,
professedly with his father’s sanction.



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-SEVENTH.

A RIDE ON A RAINY NIGHT.


Jabez, bottles in hand, his mind a chaos, had walked in at the
wash-kitchen door precisely as Augusta, stealthily creeping
through a gap in the privet-hedge, made her way to the convenient
staircase-window, shivering more from fright than from the chill
drizzling rain which had begun to fall. Putting her head in at the
parlour-door where Ellen was sewing, with a brief “I’m off to bed,”
she hurried upstairs in the dusk to lave her flushed face, smooth
her disordered hair, crush it under a night-cap, and place her head
on a pillow, to still her heart’s flutterings under the screening
counterpane, and hide her emotions from her cousin under the semblance
of sleep, though sleep was an absolute impossibility.

In 1821 the village of Gretna Green, on the Scottish border, was the
general resort of runaway lovers, who, being in their minority, could
not be married legally in England without parental consent, whereas in
Caledonia a mere promise to marry made in the presence of witnesses was
held binding. At Gretna a man not in holy orders, but metaphorically
called “the blacksmith,” because he riveted the chains of matrimony,
lived in the first house beyond the bridge which spanned the river
Sark, and, with a ceremonial as unseemly as it was brief, married
all comers, often with pursuers at his very doors; and the marriages
so contracted were not to be set aside. For more than half a century
Gretna Green weddings had figured largely in the literature of the
stage and of the circulating library; and there is no doubt that the
halo of romance thrown around an elopement to Gretna blinded to the
impropriety of the prenuptial flight many a foolish or headstrong girl
whom the actual ceremony shocked and startled.

Augusta Ashton, with all her sentimental romance, all her petulant
wilfulness, all her resentment at being exiled from home and her
Adonis, yet loved her parents well, although her reverence and filial
obedience had been gradually undermined by the plausible sophistry and
impassioned eloquence of her ardent lover. But if she loved them much,
she, unfortunately, loved Laurence more. He was, to do him justice,
terribly in earnest; and in the inexperience of her seventeen years she
could not be expected to sift and analyse that passionate earnestness
for its many components. With her _all_ was _love_, and _love_ was
_all_.

His proposition had, nevertheless, come upon her with a shock. She
was not prepared to ignore the prudent teaching of her mother, or to
brave the indignation of her indulgent father, or to forfeit her own
self-respect, and nothing could have moved her to consent but that
appalling threat of suicide, and he knew her tender heart well when he
made it.

But neither that threat nor her promise could reconcile her to the rash
step, and she lay in bed shuddering with her own fears, and strangely
enough her first thought was—“What would Jabez say if he knew it?” Not
her father, not her mother, but the Jabez whom she had rebuffed only a
week before, yet of whose opinion she somehow stood more in awe than of
all else besides.

What did Jabez think, seeing that he did know? Think? He scarcely could
think. Feeling seemed to overpower thought, reason, perception. When
after a stagnant time he emerged from the stair-head, it was more as
a culprit than Jabez Clegg. He put down the bottles and escaped again
into the open air, cowed alike by the knowledge which had overpowered
him, and by a sense of dishonour at having played the unworthy part
of a listener, albeit the listening had been involuntary, seeing
that the shock of his discovery had stunned him like a blow from a
sledge-hammer, crushing his own long-cherished hopes to death. His next
thought was of intense thankfulness that by any means the schemes of
Aspinall had been bared to him, and in time to attempt the rescue of
his idolised Augusta from the clutches of a villain.

Unacquainted with the events which had preceded Augusta’s removal to
Carr—unaware that the Mosley Street doors had been closed against
Laurence, or that a formal proposal for the young lady’s hand had been
made by the elder Aspinall on behalf of his son, and peremptorily
declined by the Ashtons; ignorant that imperious Mr. Aspinall, in his
gouty wrath, had sworn “upon his honour” that his son _should_ “marry
the girl in spite of the paltry beggar’s-inkle-weaver,” and having no
faith in the man himself, Jabez regarded the use of the father’s name
only as a proof of his greater perfidy, and gave him no credit even for
an honourable intention or an honest emotion. The time was past for
Clegg to find excuses for the wrong-doing of his adversary.

Now, with every nerve unstrung, he was required to act, and that
promptly. To-morrow would be too late. What if he should take Miss
Chadwick into his confidence? But no, he could not lower Augusta in
the eyes even of her own cousin and neither she nor anyone there had
authority to detain Miss Ashton against her will even if her foot
were on the step of the post-chaise. It was imperative that he should
reach Manchester immediately, yet how to do so without exciting alarm
perplexed him. There was a horse in the stable at the mill, but as he
had a bed in Simon’s room, and could neither leave it nor return to it
in the night without passing through the Hulmes’ sleeping apartment,
there was a difficulty in quitting the house unknown.

“I must be at the mill before daybreak to-morrow having something
of importance to attend to, so I will sleep on the squab in the
house-place, Mrs. Hulme, and if I am not in for breakfast, do not
wait for me,” said he; and no one questioned him, although Mrs. Hulme
and her husband were of joint opinion that “Jabez looked terribly put
eawt,” and wondered what business he could have on hand of so much
consequence.

No one thought of locking country cottage doors. By nine o’clock all
the inmates were in bed and asleep. Before ten Jabez, sad at heart,
had quietly left the cottage for the mill, had saddled Peveril, and,
though no great horseman, was speeding past the “White Hart” along the
highway to Manchester, fast as the steady-going roadster would travel.
The wind had risen, and the rain came down persistently; but heedless
of discomfort or danger, with the one thought paramount in his mind—the
preservation of his master’s daughter—he set his teeth and rode on with
a feverish impatience, which at length communicated itself to Peveril,
and quickened the beat of the sensible animal’s hoof; impatience which
would have sent him flying over the toll-gates, had either he or his
steed been equal to the exploit, and which could barely brook the delay
of drowsy toll-keepers.

Nevertheless as he turned from Piccadilly into Mosley Street, the
muffled-up old watchman, catching the echoes of the Infirmary clock,
bawled out, to mark his own vigilance, “Just one o’clock, an’ a dark
rainy neet!” and the Ashton household had closed its eyelids, and its
account with the day, at least a couple of hours.

It is never pleasant to be the bearer of ill-tidings, so no wonder
Jabez hesitated with the lion-headed knocker in his hand ere he sent
its reverberations growling through the silent house. His hesitation
must have influenced the knocker, for the lion had to roar again, and
louder, before he heard the window above unclose, and saw Mr. Ashton’s
night-capped head thrust out, to ask, in alarm, “Who’s there? What’s
the matter?”

Jabez stepped back to the kerbstone to let the dull rays of an oil lamp
fall upon his face.

“It is I, Jabez Clegg, sir; I have a matter of importance to
communicate.”

“Good heavens, Clegg, you! Surely the mill’s not been burned down?”

“No, sir, all’s right at the factory. There’s no harm done anywhere at
_present_. If you will please to come down, I hope there may be time to
prevent that which is threatened.”

“Just so, I’ll be down directly.”

There were no lucifer-matches with which to procure instantaneous
light, but during this brief colloquy, Mrs. Ashton had been groping on
the tall chimney-piece for their precursors the Prometheans, and having
found them, by dipping a small chemically prepared match into a tiny
bottle of fluid, she obtained a light as soon as the window was closed
and the draught shut out.

Too uneasy to waste much time in dressing, before many minutes had
flown, Mr. and Mrs. Ashton, whose fears had equally pointed to their
daughter—the one in a roquelaire, and the other in her warehouse
overall—were both listening with agitated and anxious faces to Mr.
Clegg’s communication, made with a discomposure great as their own.

“Elope!” both parents exclaimed, simultaneously.

“Elope!” reiterated the mother! “our daughter consent to elope, and
with a reprobate like him? It is not possible!”

“So I should have said, madam, yesterday,” rejoined Jabez, sadly, as he
sank on a chair, overpowered more by the strain on his feelings than by
the fatigue of his long, wet, midnight ride; “and I would have given
the _world_ to have been able to doubt the evidence of my own ears.”

Mrs. Ashton, with clasped hands up, sat opposite to Jabez; Mr. Ashton,
lacking the consolation and inspiration of his snuff-box, walked
about the room with one hand to his head in a state of distressing
perturbation. He stopped in his walk to ask, “What’s to be done?” as
Jabez made this declaration, unconscious of its force.

The light of the chamber candle fell upon the haggard face and drenched
garments of the young man. The elder one looked full at him, paused,
then drawing near and laying his right hand heavily on the other’s wet
shoulder, asked in a troubled voice, with an inquisitorial but not
unkind manner—

“My lad, did no other motive than duty to your employers bring you
eighteen miles through the rain this dark night to save Miss Ashton
from an imprudent marriage?”

Jabez had not stopped to analyse his own motives. Thus questioned, it
was not without embarrassment that he answered, “Mrs. Ashton desired
me, sir, to watch over Miss Ashton, and acquaint you with any matter
affecting her welfare. But apart from that, sir, I could not see Miss
Ashton in the toils of a libertine without an attempt to rescue her. I
should have been a dastard to sit passive; and even now I feel we are
losing time.”

“Just so, just so,” assented Mr. Ashton. “That reminds me, Peveril is
in the street, and you are soaked to the skin. My dear”—turning to his
wife—“will you arouse the servants, and see that neither horse nor
rider suffers in our service more than we can help.”

Having thus got rid of his wife, of whom he stood somewhat in awe, he
resumed his searching catechism of Jabez.

“And so, Clegg, you have no motive beyond a chivalrous desire to save
your master’s daughter, no _interest_ to serve beyond your duty to us?”

The ordeal was terrible. Jabez rose, his features working convulsively.

“Mr. Ashton, you are torturing me. Humble as I am, I love Miss Ashton
with my whole life and soul. But knowing the distance between us, I
have striven to keep the secret in my own breast. And I protest I had
no double motive in my journey hither.”

The genial small-ware manufacturer, to whom that night had brought
two revelations, looked Jabez steadfastly in the face as he made his
avowal; then, taking him kindly by the hand, said—his eyes swimming—

“Just so, just so, my lad! I believe you. And, Jabez Clegg, let me tell
you that I would rather give my daughter to an upright, persevering
man like you, without a penny, than to a spendthrift like Laurence
Aspinall, though he rolled in riches. But it’s no use saying that
_now_.”

Indeed there was no use, and time was flying. A glance of grateful
attachment, and a mute pressure of his liberal master’s hand, were the
sole acknowledgment of Jabez. But a new bond was established between
the twain.

Mrs. Ashton had come back to discuss with her husband and Jabez the
best mode of procedure. She was not less shrewd than her lord, and had
not failed to perceive that the young man’s heart was in the service he
now rendered them. The blow dealt by Augusta to her pride dashed down
the impalpable barrier between them, and she took counsel with him as a
tried and true friend.

Mr. Clegg pointed out the necessity for his return to the mill before
it should open, and he be missed; and taking a proffered glass of
brandy and water to avert cold, he hurried, whilst hot coffee was
preparing, to change his soaked garments preparatory to the ride
back; his elders also taking the opportunity to dress and prepare for
departure with the morning coach.

Not a moment was wasted, but though Peveril had been well groomed
and fed, he was not so fresh to the road as he had been; still the
journey was homeward, the rain had abated; day began to dawn as he left
Stockport behind, and without much use of the whip, Jabez had his horse
back in the stable before the factory bell began to ring. And then
the _beast_ was allowed to rest. The jaded _man_ had to rouse himself
to another day’s work, another day’s trial and excitement, without a
moment for repose.

To everybody’s astonishment, Mr. and Mrs. Ashton stepped out of the
“Lord Nelson” coach that morning at the bottom of the avenue, with a
carpet-bag for luggage. The difference of their reception by daughter
and niece was palpable, and they could not fail to observe how much the
former was disconcerted by their arrival.

“Oh, aunt and uncle, this is a pleasant surprise!” exclaimed Ellen,
running down the avenue to meet them.

“_You_ do not appear very well pleased to see us, Augusta,” remarked
Mrs. Ashton, as she met her lazily sauntering through the garden
towards them, as captivating in her printed morning dress as a
sleepless night, an anxious headache, and her unmistakable confusion
would permit the recognised beauty to be.

“Oh, yes, I am pleased enough, but I should have been better pleased
if you had written instead of coming upon one so suddenly. It is quite
startling!” and the petulance of her tone gave effect to the pettish
frown on her brow.

“My dear, ill thoughts make ill looks,” said Mrs. Ashton, gravely, with
a searching glance. “What is the matter with you this morning? Nothing
serious, I hope.”

The very inquiry apparently annoyed her.

“Oh, I’ve got a headache, that’s all. I heard a man’s foot on the
gravel-walk long after everyone was in bed, and I got a fright.”

“I think it was only Crazy Joe—he hangs about at all hours,” put in
Ellen, who had not heard the crunch of Mr. Clegg’s heel on the gravel,
as he stood for a moment under their window, to breathe a prayer for
the safety and well-being of the supposed sleeper, before he turned
away swiftly on his errand.

Almost Mr. Ashton’s first inquiry was for Mr. Clegg.

“He’s at the mill, sir. He was off afore any on us was up; an’ he said
happen he mightna git whome fur breakfast, he wur so busy,” was the
reply of Bess.

But Mr. Ashton, setting off towards the factory, encountered Jabez on
the way, and they returned together to breakfast, as if they had met
for the first time that morning. On Mrs. Ashton’s suggestion, Augusta
was neither questioned nor accused.

“We should only tempt her to deny, and perhaps provoke ill-will towards
our informant, with no good end,” she said. “Better wait and ascertain
beyond question what her intentions are.”

Jabez would fain have spared her the pain and shame of exposure, but
the matter was out of his hands.

The day passed unmarked save by Augusta’s restless lookout for Crazy
Joe, and the way she hung about her mother, as if half afraid of the
rash step she contemplated.

Mr. Ashton meanwhile, to cover his distress and agitation, busied
himself about the transfer of the White Hart (which he pronounced
“admirable”) to its place over the inn-door, and managed to elicit from
Chapman, the gossiping landlord, without direct inquiry, that a fine
young spark in hunting gear had put up his horse there several times
within the past week, and was like to make the fortune of Crazy Joe, he
gave the poor softy so many half-crowns; but Joe was “deep, and never
let on what he got them for.”



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-EIGHTH.

DEFEATED.


Jabez Clegg and the young ladies occupied adjoining chambers (the two
inner rooms of the suite), but the door of communication was locked,
and they were attained by different staircases. Thus, as he was
compelled to pass through the Hulmes’ sleeping apartment, so Ellen and
Augusta were constrained to go backwards and forwards through that
of Mr. and Mrs. Ashton—an arrangement to which long use had probably
reconciled them.

It was this fact which had so much disconcerted Augusta, since she
foresaw a difficulty in escaping unheard; and not meeting with Joe
(that most unpromising of Cupids), she was as equally unable to convey
a message to her expectant lover. She repented her rash promise, and
would fain have availed herself of a pretext for delay; but the night
came, and, haunted by imaginary pictures of Laurence with a pistol to
his head, she dared not disappoint him. She had promised to meet him
at that entrance of the Lovers’ Walk which opened below Yeardsley-Hall
Farm into Moor Lane, whilst, the lane being a steep declivity, he was
to keep the post-chaise in waiting at the foot.

Her headache served as an excuse for retiring to bed earlier than her
cousin, and scarcely could her father and mother restrain themselves as
she kissed them lingeringly before she went. Indeed, Mr. Ashton would
much have preferred to “have it out with the girl at once, and have
done with it,” there not being much “waiting” blood in his veins.

He had kept out of her sight most of the day, fidgeting over one thing
and another, whilst his waistcoat and shirt-frill bore testimony to the
constant raid on his snuff-box.

“I don’t like to see my poor lass trapped like a bird in a cage,” he
said, in confidence, to Jabez, whose opinion he already knew agreed
with his own, as did the desire to “thrash the infernal scoundrel
within an inch of his life.”

The last straw had broken the camel’s back, and Jabez was no longer
inclined to be passive.

Laurence had bid Augusta take no care for her wardrobe; his purse was
ample, and he would dress her like a queen if she would only consent
to fly with him. So, after collecting a few immediate necessaries and
trinkets, and placing the reticule which contained them out of sight,
she crept into bed, to lie and listen for the household to follow her
example. How lazily the hours lagged! She heard old Simon shuffling
about, and the creaking of his camp-bedstead, as he settled his old
rheumatic bones for the night, but the firm foot of Jabez she did not
hear, though the house clock struck nine, and Ellen came up with the
last stroke.

In answer to a question, Ellen said that Mr. Clegg was asleep on the
squab, and that she understood he had slept there the previous night,
to be able to go to the mill very early, without disturbing anyone else.

“I saw him as he lay there, where he had fallen asleep shortly after
tea, and I have been speaking to my uncle about him; he looks so
dreadfully worn and jaded, I am sure he is either killing himself with
overwork, or has some great trouble on his mind,” and a deep sigh
followed this expression of opinion.

Augusta was silent. Something within her secret heart whispered that
the trouble of Jabez Clegg would be intensified sevenfold by her act
of that night; and haughty as she was betimes, she pitied him. And
whatever were her compunctions, fears, or emotions, Jabez certainly
shared with her parents in her thoughts.

Ellen slept. The clock struck ten. Father and mother entered their
room, and through the door which Augusta had artfully requested Ellen
to “leave open on account of the heat” came the sound of their voices
in low but earnest converse—“You leave her to me, William,” spoken with
decision, being the only words she could distinguish, though she heard
her father walk about for some time. Indeed, she thought he would never
go to bed.

Eleven! She slipped stealthily from the side of her sleeping cousin,
and by the light of the moon, clear enough to-night, dressed as
noiselessly and rapidly as her trepidation would permit. From habit
she knelt to pray, but as she came to the passage, “Lead us not into
temptation, but deliver us from evil,” a new meaning seemed to flash
through the words, and she half wavered in her purpose.

“Poor Jabez!” she murmured to herself, as she caught up her shoes and
reticule, and listened in the open doorway for the deep breathing which
came from behind the dimity curtains of the four-post bed. Re-assured,
she stepped lightly across the room in her stocking-feet, turned the
drop-handle of that chamber door as silently as the squeaking latch
would permit and fled swiftly down the stairs, sitting down at the
bottom to put on her shoes.

She had raised the sash, and was in the very act of stepping over the
low window-sill, when a foot was heard on the stair, and turning her
head, she saw her mother fully dressed close by her side, and felt her
slight wrist grasped as in a vice.

“Is this your filial love and obedience, misguided girl? Is this the
result of Madame Broadbent’s training? Have you no more sense of honour
and decency than to elope at midnight with any man, least of all with
the worthless reprobate who has caught your silly fancy? Could you not
think that chastity is the brightest jewel in a woman’s crown, and the
soonest dimmed, that you were ready to leave your character at the
mercy of every gossip who had a tongue to wag?”

She had drawn Augusta, too much stunned to speak, into the parlour
close at hand, and had shut the doors—a needless precaution, seeing how
remote were all sleepers. A few words of gentle motherly inquiry might
have softened impulsive, tender-hearted Augusta to tears, and turned
the whole current of her life; but Mrs. Ashton’s stateliness had become
sternness, and, fresh from the evil teaching of Laurence Aspinall, her
daughter’s proud spirit rose in rebellion, and answered her.

“We are going to be married. And I was not going with Laurence alone.
Cicily was to travel with us. Laurence himself proposed it.”

“Infatuated girl!” exclaimed Mrs. Ashton, “Cicily was in Mosley Street
last night.”

“And so were you, mother,” was the smart retort, “but the coach which
dropped you here carried her to Buxton. Outside passengers were muffled
up, but she waved her handkerchief as she passed, as a sign to me.”

“Sign to you, indeed! I marvel you are not ashamed of yourself and your
hero, who is not content with corrupting my daughter, but must corrupt
our servants also! A fine hero indeed, whose qualifications are all
external! I cannot see what there is to admire in him.”

“Not see what there is to admire in that exquisite figure and beautiful
face? Why, I shall be the envy of half the girls in Manchester when I
marry him!” Augusta exclaimed, with anything but the air of a culprit
just detected.

“But you are not likely to marry him, you forward chit. You go back to
Manchester to-morrow, and I will take good care you don’t marry either
clandestinely or openly a man so sure to make your heart ache, if he
were thrice as handsome!”

“But I WILL marry him, mamma—_I’ll please my eye, if I plague
my heart_!”

“_Then, as you make your bed, so must you lie, miss_,” answered Mrs.
Ashton, gravely and deliberately. “But take my word for it, neither
your papa nor myself will give our consent. And now go to your room,
Augusta, and thank God you have been saved from disgrace this night,
and thank us that we have kept you from open exposure. Not even your
cousin has a notion of this last folly. Our daughter’s honour is dearer
to us than to herself,” and the mother’s tone softened as she spoke.

“Your daughter’s honour has never been in any danger,” said Augusta,
haughtily, as she swept from the room, to encounter at the foot of the
stairs, flooded by moonlight through the open window, her father—and
Jabez.

Up to that moment she had stood on the defensive, her wayward spirit
upholding and arming her for retort. The sight of the father who had
indulged her every whim, and of Jabez whose esteem she valued more than
she herself knew, gave a sudden shock to her overwrought nerves, and
she fell forward into the arms of Jabez in a deep swoon.

Tenderly, respectfully, sadly, he bore her into the parlour, and
placing her on the sofa, relinquished her to her mother, divesting
himself of his shoes in order to procure water to restore her without
creating alarm.

When she recovered he was gone; she was alone with the parents whose
counsels she had despised, whose love she had wounded; herself detected
and humiliated.

A greater humiliation had fallen to the lot of elate, enamoured, and
self-satisfied Laurence Aspinall, when, leaving his friend Barret with
the post-chaise, their saddle-horses, and Cicily at the bottom of Moor
Lane, he mounted the hill and whistled softly at the entrance of the
Lovers’ Walk, to call forth—not a blushing maiden, half afraid of her
own temerity, but—two justly incensed and indignant men. His low-voiced
“Augusta” died upon his lips; he recoiled, stammered—

“You! I—I did not expect—— D—nation! What brought you here? I thought——”

“Just so, you atrocious scoundrel, you thought God had left our pet
lamb to the fangs of the wolf, and that neither father nor friend was
near to protect the innocent!” exclaimed Mr. Ashton, raising the stout
bamboo with which he was provided.

“If that infernal Cicily has betrayed us, I’ll——”

The threat was not completed, for Jabez interrupted him with—

“No, sir, it was not Cicily. You betrayed yourself. You laid bare your
whole scheme in this walk within my hearing, Mr. Laurence Aspinall, and
the sophistry which misled a simple confiding girl could not delude one
who knew you as I do.”

“D—nation!” hissed Laurence between his teeth. “You infernal
charity-school whelp! Am I to meet you at every turn? I suppose you
want Miss Ashton for yourself, but I’ll balk you yet!” and, but that
Jabez had a quick eye and hand, his riding-whip would have seamed the
latter’s manly face.

Jabez dexterously caught the light whip, and wrenched it from him, a
simultaneous sharp blow of Mr. Ashton’s bamboo on Aspinall’s shoulders
tending to loosen his grasp. And then the two young men, with all the
fever of jealousy added to old animosity, closed and grappled with each
other as might a lion and a tiger in the arena. And Mr. Ashton, his
love of fair play yielding to his exasperation, made good use of his
bamboo whenever he could deal a blow without harming Jabez.

The two combatants were not unequally matched; there was little
difference in size and weight, but the scientific skill of Laurence had
more than a counterpoise in the nerve and muscle of Jabez, strengthened
by exercise and a temperate life, whilst vicious courses had somewhat
impaired his own athletic frame.

The struggle on the steep hill-side was too deadly for noise. At
length Laurence—himself booted and spurred—in striving to take an
unfair advantage and rip the unprotected calves of Jabez with the
rowels of his spurs, lost his foothold, and was borne to the earth,
falling heavily. He lay on the ground stunned and motionless. At once
Jabez, with a swift revulsion of feeling, knelt down by the side of
his prostrate foe, and raised his head; Mr. Ashton bending over them
inquiringly, just as Barret, whom curiosity and impatience had drawn
from his post below, came on the scene. A stifled groan, and a muttered
curse, having assured Clegg that his rival was not mortally injured, he
called to Barret—

“Here, sir, take charge of your worthy principal; and be careful,
when next you plan an elopement, that you have not a man to deal with
instead of a credulous girl.”

Mr. Ashton’s “Just so!” coming sharply in as chorus, the young man put
his arm in that of the elder and drew him away, leaving Barrett and
the postilion to restore Laurence Aspinall, and assist him into the
post-chaise by the side of Cicily—whose trepidation would have been
very much increased could she have seen how the blood was trickling
down from a wound in his head, staining still more the torn, miry coat,
and the disordered shirt-frill over which he was usually so fastidious.

Barret, leading his companion’s horse, rode on in advance of the
vehicle, to prepare the pompous gentleman, laid up with the gout in
Buxton Crescent, for the reception of his gentlemanly son in a highly
gentlemanlike condition—hatless, wigless, dirty, dilapidated, bruised,
bloody—and unsuccessful. The hat had rolled down-hill, to be crushed
under the wheels of the chaise; the wig and broken whip were found the
next morning by Crazy Joe, who exercised his witless head respecting
them and the trampled ground to small purpose; then brought them to his
friend Sim as playthings. Had they fallen into the hands of a reasoning
mortal, much more perplexity, and a very serious mystery, might have
been the result.

Buxton being only five miles from Whaley-Bridge, Barret again made his
appearance in the neighbourhood of the “White Hart,” whilst the new
sign still attracted rustic admirers; and, finding no rumours current
respecting the occurrence of the preceding night, he rode off again,
having first committed to Crazy Joe a scarcely decipherable missive
from the discomfited lover to the not less disconsolate damsel.

The evening coach bore the Ashtons and Ellen back to Manchester;
Augusta, still in a rebellious mood, the cause of which, being hidden
from her cousin, occasioned the latter no little perplexity. There was
something, too, in the manner of her uncle and aunt to Jabez, and of
Jabez to all, which, being undefinable and impalpable, struck her as
peculiar. He seemed suddenly to have risen to another footing. How was
it they had taken _him_ into their confidence?

Not until the last moment—when attention was distracted by the bustle
at the inn-door, the disposal of the luggage, and the taking of
seats—could Crazy Joe (with cunning worthy a better cause) contrive to
slip the billet-doux into Miss Ashton’s reticule, unseen by all but
herself.

Not until she reached her own room could she scan its characteristic
contents, which ran as follows:—

  “Crescent, Buxton,

  “September ——, 1821.

  “ADORED AUGUSTA,

 “Excuse this scrawl; I can scarcely hold my pen in consequence of a
 ruffianly attack made upon me by your father’s favourite factotum,
 Jabez Clegg, in Moor Lane last night. Can you disclose to me the
 strange fatality which kept you from my expectant arms, and revealed
 our plans to that upstart foundling? Had not Mr. Ashton also struck at
 me with a stick, I could readily have disposed of his assistant; but
 my foot tripped over a stone, and falling, I lay at their mercy. Yet,
 sweet Augusta, if my blood flowed it was for thy sake, and for thy
 sake I endure.

 “Be constant, be firm; let no tyranny coerce you, and I will make a
 way for our union, if I steal you from their very midst. I have a
 dislocated ankle, a bruised and swollen hand, a plaistered crown, and
 I write painfully. I shall feel every hour a year until I hold you in
 my arms again. But if my angelic Augusta be only true to her promise,
 she will soon, in spite of spies and informers, be the adored wife of
 her

  “Most devoted

  “LAURENCE.”



CHAPTER THE THIRTY-NINTH.

LIKE FATHER, LIKE SON.


It is no uncommon thing for a woman to gild a block, wreathe it with
flowers, and then fall down and worship the idol she has adorned.
Augusta’s hero needed no outward embellishment, so she fitted the fair
exterior with the perfections and virtues of the high-spirited, noble,
generous Mortimers and Mowbrays, whose acquaintance she had made in
print, and had set him on a very elevated pedestal, in spite of all
warnings. With that misleading letter of his before her, no wonder if
the “blood shed for her sweet sake” converted the hero into the martyr,
and placed Jabez and her father in the category of cruel persecutors.
It did more. It erected a barrier against reconciliation. In vain her
placable father held out a flag of truce; she kept aloof resentfully,
though in the solitude of her own chamber she gave way, and wept at her
isolation from all who loved her.

Mrs. Ashton, whose sense of propriety had been outraged, whose maternal
pride had received a terrible shock, was less readily disposed to
condone her daughter’s offence; and, being a better business woman than
a psychologist, her tactics showed none of her ordinary shrewdness.

The failure of Augusta’s banishment to Carr should have taught her that
romance is nursed in solitude, and that conciliation is better than
coercion. Had she spared a few hours from the warehouse to arrange a
dance, or a gipsy-party to Dunham Park; chaperoned her lovely daughter
to assembly, theatre, or concert-room; invited her companionship
in a stroll through St. Ann’s Square and King Street, calling at
Mrs. Edge’s fashionably-frequented library by the way; joined the
after-morning-church promenaders in the Infirmary Gardens, or given
a little time to morning calls, she would have brought Augusta into
contact with young people of her own age, and with the attractive of
the opposite sex, and so have supplied an antidote for the poison
Laurence and ultra-sentimental literature had instilled.

Instead, never was the golden fruit of the Hesperides more vigilantly
guarded. She was kept much within doors. The modern notion that a
daily airing is indispensable had not been promulgated, or had not
become the creed of the manufacturing community. Mrs. Ashton had “no
leisure for gadding,” and Augusta cared little to drive in the gig
with only James for her charioteer, or even to walk with Ellen, so
long as the mulberry-coloured livery was in attendance. (It might have
been otherwise, had not the said James held it as much “beneath his
dignity” to accept a bribe as he had formerly done to wait upon Mr.
Clegg.) From her old bed-room, which overlooked Mosley Street, she was
relegated to one in the rear, which commanded no wider prospect than
their own courtyard, nor anything more interesting than Nelson and his
kennel—by-the-bye, Nelson had been in favour since the sad accident
on the ice. Then, visits to Marsden Square were prohibited, lest she
should there meet John Walmsley’s undesirable friend; and altogether
her escapade had converted home into a cage, in spite of its gilding.

As might have been expected, the high-spirited, wayward girl, so long
her father’s pet, so long indulged in her caprices, chafed and rebelled
against every fresh token of restraint, and contrasted the dull
monotony of her life with the freedom and gaiety promised so frequently
by Laurence as the certain concomitants of wifehood with him.

With all her haughty spirit, she had a clinging, affectionate nature,
tinged though it was with poetry and romance; and now that her father
looked so unusually grave, and her mother so frigid, and she felt
herself an alien from both their hearts, instead of bewailing her
premeditated flight as a crime, the tendrils of her love only clung
closer to him who professed so much, and the more she was isolated
from them, the more she brooded on the ill-used and maligned Laurence,
his manly beauty and accomplishments, his lavish generosity, his
fascinations of voice and manner, and the fervour of his passion for
her.

Meanwhile, Tom Hulme had resumed his duties at Whaley-Bridge Mill, and
Jabez returned home to his. Much to Augusta’s surprise, he was not only
invited to dine with them on the day of his return, but to take his
place henceforth at their board as one of the family.

With Laurence’s misrepresentations fixed in her mind as truths, she
construed the daily association thus thrust upon her as a deliberate
affront, and resented it with a silent scorn which cut Jabez to the
soul. He knew nothing of Aspinall’s letter, or that he was accused of a
“ruffianly attack;” only felt that he would have died to serve her, and
had done what he had to save her from life-long misery without a single
thought of keeping her for himself.

A few more days, and back to Manchester came Mr. Aspinall senior,
having left a little of his portliness with his gout in the Buxton
Baths. Back with him came his son, and his son’s congenial companion,
Mr. Edmund Barret; the former still smarting under his defeat at Carr,
and all the more resolutely determined to carry off Augusta, jealousy
adding a new element to his love, a new aliment to his hate.

Sitting idly by the parlour window on the third of October, with her
head leaning against the frame, meditating on her own unhappiness and
her parents’ harshness, Augusta suddenly started to her feet with a
suppressed cry of delight, a vivid glow upon her cheeks, a brilliant
sparkle in her eye. Laurence Aspinall, mounted on Black Ralph, his
favourite hunter, was riding up the street, the dislocated ankle
apparently not affecting his enjoyment of equestrian exercise. As he
raised his new beaver in graceful salutation, even the flutter into
which she was thrown could not prevent her missing his glorious curls.
He had not deemed it necessary to replace his wig, and the poll shorn
during fever had not yet grown a fresh crop ripe for harvest. The
unfavourable impression passed with the moment, as he brought his
obedient steed on the flagged pavement close under the window, and
without a moment’s hesitation, she raised the sash, and leaned forward
to speak with him, glad of the opportunity.

“Oh, Laurence!”

“My own Augusta, this is indeed fortunate!”

Their hands clasped upon the window-sill,—the elevation of the house
raising her to his level—her tearful eyes looked up in his for traces
of suffering after the “ruffianly attack,” and found there, mingled
with the fierce light of violent love, a bitter sense of defeat, a
resolve to obtain her by fair means or foul.

Each had the separate experience of that memorable September night
to relate, coloured as passion or prejudice prevailed; but neither
could fully enlighten the other as to the share Mr. Clegg had had in
preventing the elopement.

He could tell her that Jabez had avowed overhearing their conversation
in the Lovers’ Walk, though where he could have been to overhear, or
what strange fatality could bring Mr. and Mrs. Ashton to Carr in time
to become the recipients of his eavesdropping and defeat their plans,
was a puzzle to both.

Be sure Laurence put the worst colour on the encounter in the lane,
and urged all he had himself endured to strengthen his claims upon
her—claims she was quite willing to admit, had she the power to concede
to them.

Having shown with very evident annoyance how impossible it was for her
to meet or give him a private interview, he exclaimed with indignation—

“What! not allowed to visit a relative, or to go abroad without a
gaoler! My dearest Augusta, this is a cruel state of captivity. But
my bird must not be allowed to fray her beautiful plumage in beating
against the bars of her cage. I must devise a better plan for her
escape. Any means are justifiable to obtain release from tyranny like
this. What says my love? Is she still willing to trust her Laurence?”

“To the death!” she whispered, emphatically.

“You are alone here every morning?”

Her lips could barely frame a “Yes,” when a voice and step in the
hall warned her to close the window with a hurried gesture to him;
and before Mrs. Ashton, who had lingered to give an order to James,
could enter the room, Black Ralph was cantering towards the Portico,
and Augusta occupied with the third volume of “Alinda, or the Child of
Mystery.”

Very little escaped Mrs. Ashton’s eye. The clatter of hoofs on the
flags, audible through the thick front door, had left no sensible
impression on her brain, but the heightened colour of Augusta
attracted her attention at once. She brought her work-basket from the
panel-cupboard, took thence a strip of cambric muslin, and handed it to
her daughter.

“My dear,” said she, quietly, “‘all play makes no hay.’ Your eyes are
younger than mine, and I think it will do you more good to hem your
father’s shirt-frills than to pore over sentimental books from morning
until night. So much romance-reading is not good for you. I see that
you are quite flushed and excited over the one you are perusing now.”

There was a sharp rat-tat on the lion’s head, and in burst Mr. Ashton,
much more flushed and excited than his daughter. He had met Mr.
Laurence on Black Ralph just as he was quitting the Portico, after an
angry discussion with Mr. Aspinall the elder.

“You are quite right, my dear, in saying, ‘Like father, like son,’”
cried he, “for I’ll swallow my snuff-box if that pompous old
cotton-merchant did not justify his scapegrace son in his attempt to
carry off our Augusta! He said that ‘the end justified the means,’
that we ‘ought to be proud of such an alliance’”—Mrs. Ashton’s lip
curled—“that ‘he was glad Miss Ashton had more discernment than her
parent,’ that ‘his boy had set his heart upon her, and should not be
thwarted in his choice by any beggar’s-inkle-weaver in England.’ And no
sooner had I left him in the reading-room, to digest _my_ opinion on
the subject, and put my foot on the steps of the Portico, than up rode
young Hopeful, and took off his hat to me, bowing down to his black’s
horse’s mane.”

Having delivered himself of this explosive intelligence, Mr. Ashton
walked about, and sought a sedative in his snuff-box; and Augusta, who,
folding the hem of the frill, had not lost one word, said, drily,

“I think Mr. Aspinall’s justification of his son’s design may at least
be taken as a vindication of Mr. Laurence’s _honourable_ intentions, of
which so many doubts have been expressed. And the bow equally absolves
Laurence from a charge of malice.”

With a proud toss of her shapely head, she walked towards the
dining-room, rejecting the proffered arm of Jabez, who had entered the
parlour whilst Mr. Ashton was speaking, and thus closed a discussion
which could not be continued in the presence of servants.

       *       *       *       *       *

Jabez, on his return from Carr, had found his rough old clerical friend
confined to his room seriously ill. Tabitha was worn out with his
humours and eccentricities, and was glad when the young man offered to
relieve her twice or thrice a week; and old Joshua welcomed him as a
relief from the monotonous garrulity of an unlettered old woman. Jabez
could bring him news of another stamp. Through Ben Travis (who had
discovered that activity was the best antidote to melancholy), he kept
him informed of the progress of the incipient temperance movement, in
which the Parson took uncommon interest; through Mr. Ashton, he kept
him _au courant_ of town politics, and for general intelligence he
brought newspapers with him to read interrupted by many and unique
commentaries. In order that Tabitha might obtain repose, Mr. Clegg
usually remained until a late hour, Mrs. Ashton herself entrusting him
with a latch-key on these occasions.

One night, towards the middle of October, when Joshua had been more
than ordinarily crusty, and Jabez did not quit the classic corner until
the “wee short hour ayont the twal,” he was struck as he turned the
corner from Market Street into Mosley Street to find Mr. Aspinall’s
carriage in waiting with four horses and postilions.

He stood still for a moment to re-assure himself, but carriages were
not so common that he should mistake that particular one; and his heart
drummed an alarm within his breast.

Hurrying on with sad misgivings, he passed two tall figures muffled in
cloaks, whom he had no difficulty in recognising, from build and walk,
to be the Aspinalls, father and son; and increasing his speed he gained
the door, inserted his key in the latch, and was on the stairs before
the cloaked individuals had finished their speculations respecting his
being a robber escaped from a constable.

Formerly, Augusta had to pass his room door to reach her own, on the
opposite side of the long corridor. Her new chamber was next to his
own, and nearer to the staircase. A thin stream of light shot through
the key-hole, and a bright narrow line cast upon the opposite wall
showed the door ajar. He stood still in his surprise.

As if a tipsy, musically-disposed man were going past, the refrain of
a rollicking song was trolled out in the street; and then Augusta,
equipped as for a journey, came forth from her chamber to descend the
stairs. She had calculated on the signal an hour earlier, and expected
Jabez an hour later. As she stole on tiptoe down the stairs Jabez
confronted her and barred her progress. Her silver candlestick dropped
from her hand, with the one word “Again!” and rolling down with a
clang, awakened Mr. and Mrs. Ashton, the only sleepers on that floor,
and set Nelson barking furiously. They were in the dark, but he had
caught her hand.

“Miss Ashton, this is infatuation—madness.”

“No matter, sir, let me pass; you have no right to detain me!”

“But I have, miss,” said her father coming behind, guided by their
voices, his scant apparel as invisible in the gloom as himself. “Is
this another attempt to disgrace us by eloping? Oh, my child, my
child, you are breaking your poor old father’s heart!”

“And mine!” floated like the echo of despair’s last sigh from the lips
of Jabez.

But the utter hopelessness of the old man’s tone touched a sensitive
chord of Augusta’s soul, and turning, she fell upon his neck crying
tearfully, “Oh, forgive me, father, forgive me. I did not think you
would take it so much to heart.”

The appeal of affection to affection had accomplished what reason and
authority had failed to effect.



CHAPTER THE FORTIETH.

WITH ALL HIS FAULTS.


Augusta’s penitence exhaled like dew from a flower. In the light of
her mother’s lofty displeasure her tears dried, and self-will once
more exerted its pre-eminence. She locked herself in her own room and
resolutely refused to come forth.

“So long as that odious meddler, Jabez Clegg, remains under our roof,
I will stay here; and, if you will not consent to my marriage with
Laurence Aspinall, I will starve myself to death!” was her angry
declaration, as she closed the door and turned the key.

“Leave her alone,” said Mrs. Ashton, “she will want her food before the
food wants her; and a little wholesome solitude is good for reflection.
She will change her mind before the day closes.”

This was at mid-day; but night came, and another noon, yet there was no
sign of Miss Ashton’s appearance; and Mrs. Ashton had made no overtures
to her refractory daughter. The tender-hearted father was in a pitiable
state of perturbation. In and out the warehouse he was twenty times
in the day—as Kezia observed, “For a’ th’ world like a hen on a hot
griddle;” and his snuff-box was hardly ever out of his hand. Business
seemed altogether beyond his grasp; he answered questions at random, or
was unconscious when addressed.

To this state of trouble Jabez unintentionally contributed his quota.
Over the tea-table, unenlivened by Augusta’s sparkling presence, though
she was the one sole topic of conversation—he said, and not without an
effort—

“It has occurred to me, and I have thought the matter well over, that
since my unfortunate position in relation to late events has made my
very presence obnoxious to Miss Ashton, it might be better for all
concerned if I were to shift my quarters without delay. There are
lodgings vacant close at hand; and I have no right to linger here and
disturb the peace of any one member of your kind family.”

“Jabez Clegg!” remonstrated Mr. Ashton, with wide-open eyes.

“Have you any _other_ reason to be dissatisfied with present
arrangements?” asked Mrs. Ashton stiffly.

“Oh! Mrs. Ashton, how can I have? This house has been my home for
years, and such a home as rarely falls to the lot of the fatherless. To
you, my benefactors, I owe everything—almost myself; and I should ill
repay your uniform kindness by remaining to create discord.”

“If your only desire to remove is to gratify Miss Ashton’s whims,
you will oblige me, Mr. Clegg, by remaining,” replied Mrs. Ashton,
with grave decision; whilst Mr. Ashton, looking the very picture of
consternation, laid his hand upon the young man’s sleeve, and said
slowly—

“My lad, you have been one of the household for many years; do not be
the first to make a breach in the family. If the child of our blood
and our affections goes forth to strangers wilfully, and repudiates
us, do not let the son of our adoption leave us to lament her loss in
solitude.”

This was strong language, but Mrs. Ashton did not gainsay it, and
Mr. Clegg could not longer press the point though his own pain was
intensified by the fear of adding to the distress of Augusta, who, he
was confident, regarded him as an interloper and a mischief-maker.

Little had been seen of Ellen since the return from Carr Cottage. A
message despatched by Mrs. Ashton to her sister, in her dilemma, was
answered by another to pray them to “excuse Miss Chadwick, who was not
well enough to go out.”

This somewhat disconcerted Mrs. Ashton, who, more alarmed than she
would admit, and disturbed by the restless uneasiness of her husband,
had looked for Ellen to act as a mediator without any compromise of her
own dignity.

At the close of the second day, as Augusta pertinaciously refused
to open the door, at the instance of Jabez the lock was forced; and
even then a barrier of chairs and boxes had to be thrust back by
sheer strength. She was exhausted from want of food, but her will was
indomitable, and neither her father’s entreaties, nor her mother’s
commands could induce her to partake of the viands spread before her.

Jabez was in agony. Delicacy and her obvious dislike had kept him
from intruding upon her privacy, but as hour after hour was added to
the night, and Augusta persistently dashed aside the food placed to
her lips, he joined his prayers to those of her father; and neither
availing, rushed out of the house, and in less than a quarter of an
hour returned with Dr. Hull. _He_ was not a man to stand any nonsense.

“Here, sir”—to Jabez—“you are young and strong, hold the silly child’s
arms whilst her teeth are forced apart. If she will not take food, she
shall take physic, and see which she likes the best.”

But the struggle to nourish her frame through set teeth was prolonged
and painful, and the parents were likely to yield before the child.

Servants may be faithful, but they have eyes and ears, and not always
discreet tongues. Family matters discussed freely in the kitchen before
apprentices, found their way into the warehouse and beyond it, and Mrs.
Ashton’s nerves tingled when she became acquainted with the rumours
afloat.

From Tim, the Ashton stable-boy, Aspinall’s emissary (Bob the groom,
once more in his old service) had no difficulty in obtaining all the
information his young master needed.

Laurence waylaid Mr. Ashton, inquired anxiously after the obstinate
girl’s health, and, having paved the way by as much contrition as
he thought necessary, called at the house the following morning, in
company with his father, to renew proposals for Miss Ashton’s hand.

Worn out by Augusta’s obstinacy, which she and Laurence agreed to
call “constancy,” father and mother were in a different frame of mind
to receive this proposition than when they had given their former
peremptory rejection. They were not one whit more convinced by Mr.
Laurence’s assurance that he meant to “reform,” or Mr. Aspinall’s
quotation of the adage, “A reformed rake makes the best husband”; but
rather than see their child starve herself to death before their very
eyes, they yielded; and Laurence Aspinall, profuse alike in thanks
and professions, was permitted by aching hearts and reluctant lips to
introduce Augusta to his father then and there as his bride elect.

It was a moment of triumph for Laurence when Augusta refused to come
down without an assurance under his own hand. He pencilled on a card,
“My Augusta, I wait for you,—Laurence.” And presently, supported by a
maid-servant, she entered the room, her dress of purple poplin serving
to show how wan and transparent her fair skin had grown, how unnatural
was the brilliance of her eyes.

She would have fallen, as much from weakness as emotion, on her
entrance into the parlour, but that Laurence darted forward and caught
her in an embrace which brought back somewhat of her lost colour; and
if anything could have softened the pain of that hour to her parents,
it was the apparent ardour and sincerity of the lover, the hope that
a genuine passion might tend to wean him from his old habits and
associates.

Mr. Aspinall’s reception of Augusta was characteristic.

“My charming Miss Ashton, I see my son has brought back the roses to
your cheeks. May they never fade again, but bloom perennially without
a thorn! I rejoice to kiss your hand paternally on this auspicious
occasion, and to assure you that I shall be proud to welcome such
beauty and such constancy as the wife of my noble son.”

Consent once obtained, the Aspinalls were as eager to press forward
the marriage as the Ashtons were to retard it, neither her father nor
mother affecting a satisfaction they did not feel.

“My dear,” said the latter to Augusta one day, when her eyes were
sparkling over a costly present just received from Laurence, “your
father was in hopes you would have fixed your heart on some good steady
man like Jabez Clegg, who would have been a comfort and a credit to all
of us, and have kept the business in the family after we were in our
graves.”

“Pshaw, mamma! how preposterous! I am surprised at my father’s
infatuation for that young man. I esteem him quite sufficiently for a
friend, but”—and she locked an emerald earring in her delicate ear—“I
could not exist with a husband whose heart was in his business. My
husband’s heart must hold me and me only; and I must have something to
look at as well as to love.”

“Ah! Augusta, it must be a very small heart indeed which cannot find
room both for a wife and a business to maintain her fittingly. The
sheen of a dress which must last a life is of less consequence than its
durable texture.”

“Well, mamma, so long as the material pleases my eyes, I will take the
wear upon trust. And do not be surprised that _your_ daughter prefers
a fine man and a gentleman to one whose fortune is in the clouds, and
whose origin is so obscure, he has not _even a name_ to call his own.”

She was standing to admire herself and her new jewellery in the
Venetian glass between the windows as she said this, and her mother’s
figure filling in the frame, Jabez Clegg came and went unseen, a pang
in his heart and an intensified resolve to make both fortune and name
for himself even though his master’s daughter vanished from his vision.

Nothing would induce Mr. Ashton to part with his child until she was
at least eighteen; and in that particular he was proof against the
importunities of Laurence and the cajoleries of Augusta. So for ten
months (during which the lawyers had ample time to quarrel over the
settlement of Augusta’s £18,000, so that too much or too little should
not be tied down on the lady) the dashing young blade was on his trial,
so to speak, and contrived to beguile both father and mother of their
prejudices; whilst to Augusta a new world of gaiety was opened out.

As her daughter’s chaperon, Mrs. Ashton renewed her acquaintance with
the yellow satin cushions of the Assembly Rooms, the Gentlemen’s
Concerts discoursed sweet music in their ears, Miss Ashton could take
her seat in the boxes of the Theatre Royal without fear of Madame
Broadbent’s fan, and Kezia was in her glory, so many balls and parties
had to be catered for; and Mr. Laurence Aspinall was in the ascendant.

All this was inexpressibly painful to Jabez, but as he had written
to Ben Travis that “there was something more for men to do than die
of disappointment or blighted love,” so he set his face like a rock
against the breakers, and gave himself entirely to business. He said
to himself it would be cowardice to flee from that which must be borne
and mastered, so never another word was heard of his seeking a home
elsewhere. If he was brave, he was not foolhardy enough to court pain
in the sight of his rival’s triumph, and though in his determination to
“stick to his last,” he had eschewed all art which came not within the
scope of pattern designing, to that he turned with redoubled assiduity
after business hours, having found a profitable market apart from Mr.
Ashton’s firm, as his account with the Savings Bank in Cross Street had
borne witness from the date of its establishment in January, 1818.

But for a brief space, and that whilst the wound was raw and new, his
ministrations to the dying chaplain of the Old Church not only carried
him out of sight and hearing, but in a measure drew his thoughts away
from his own sorrow.

Once only did Joshua scarify the sore. In an interval of pain he said
with his customary abruptness,

“And so that pretty lass of thy master’s is going to throw herself away
on the wild rascal who pitched thee over the wall?”

Jabez could not trust himself to answer save by a movement of his head.

“Ugh! she’d better ha’ takken a fancy to thee!”

Half-an-hour or more elapsed. Waking from a doze, he said—

“Dost thou remember my telling thee to look at ‘Hogarth’s Apprentice’
in Chadwick’s parlour?”

“Indeed, I do! They have influenced my life,” answered Mr. Clegg with a
sigh, pouring out a dose of medicine as he spoke.

“More physic, eh? Ugh! doctors kill more than they cure with their
stuff! Ay, lad, thah’st mounted up, thou’lt be a master thyself some
day, if thou dost not forget that _Jabez_ must be an _honourable_ man!”

“I never did forget it sir, even though the apprentice boy was mad
enough to aspire to his master’s daughter! But losing her, I have
learned a new lesson. The prayer of the olden Jabez, which has been
mine night and morn from boyhood, was a prayer for _self_, and _self_
only, and I had no right to look for an answer to all the hopes I based
upon it. If I have not been ‘kept from evil,’ and it _has_ ‘grieved
me,’ I prayed for myself _alone_, and in grief I have my answer. Prayer
should take a wider range.”

“Right, lad, right! now let me sleep.”

When he waked again he remarked—

“It’s time for thee to be off, Jabez; but time is running faster with
me than thee, lad. Here, reach yon Terence from the bureau. It is the
Edinburgh edition. Keep it for the sake of the rough old Parson who
gave thee thy name. And take care of it. Good night. How thick the fog
is!” He had lost the sight of one eye, and the other was rapidly going.

That was the ninth of November. When Jabez came again on the eleventh,
the fog had cleared away from Joshua Brookes’s sight for ever; and
fountains of tears ran freely from many eyes for the hot, hasty,
single-minded, and learned Parson whose name was a household word in
the town, and who had ever been a kind friend to Jabez. In his life he
had been at war with huckster-women, street-urchins, school-boys, and
his ecclesiastical brethren. In his death the wide parish, and more
than the parish, united to reverence his memory, those who had laughed
loudest at his eccentricities being foremost to bewail him.

Even the November clouds hung thick and heavy as a pall over the Old
Church and churchyard, crowded with mourners, when his silent remains
were carried to their bed in the cross aisles his feet had trodden so
many active years, and if others besides Jabez shed tears over the
open and honoured grave, there was many an old creature mourning in
solitude, besides the queer old woman in kerchief and mutch, who sat
amongst her sweets in a closed shop, and lamented that so young a man
as Parson Brookes should be carried off before her.

“Well-a-day! and only sixty-seven! He’ll want no more humbugs, and no
more cakes for his pigeons. Poor Jotty!”

There was no mention of Jabez in his will, but when the young man took
the old worn Terence sadly and reverently down from the shelf where he
had first placed it, on turning over its leaves he found a bank note
for £300 pinned to the fly-leaf, on which was inscribed his own name
and that of the eccentric donor.



CHAPTER THE FORTY-FIRST.

MARRIAGE!


Had Jabez been vindictive, the opportunity, or at least the promise of
revenge on his successful rival was not wanting. Various efforts had
been made to call the Manchester Yeomanry to account for their doings
at Peterloo, and many had been the overtures and suggestions to Jabez
Clegg by members of the Radical party to join in the prosecution of the
offenders. But he resolutely refused to identify the trooper who struck
him, saying—

“I forgave the man at the time, believing him to be drunk, and
incapable of discrimination. If I have since had reason to think
otherwise, I cannot be so mean as to allow private feeling to influence
a public act.”

It would be false to say there never was a tug at his heartstrings when
the tempters were again at his elbow, before they made their final
attempt in 1822. But he said to himself—

“If it would have been revengeful at the time when the bodily injury
was fresh, it would be doubly revengeful, mean, and dishonourable now
that he has supplanted me in love. And in striking at him I should
wound Augusta, and that must never be.”

The temptation to expose his adversary was set aside, and thus it
was that Laurence Aspinall’s name was not added to those of the four
defenders on the record of the trial at Lancaster in April; and as
that trial, after the examination of nearly a hundred witnesses of all
ranks, terminated unsuccessfully for the prosecution, the forbearance
of our friend Jabez spared him at least the mortification of defeat.

The year rolled on. At the instance of Mr. Ashton, Jabez withdrew
the bulk of his deposits from the Savings Bank, and adding to Joshua
Brookes’s gift the £200 he had accumulated by working late and early
and saving small sums even during his apprenticeship, placed all in
his master’s hands, to be invested in the business and so return him a
higher rate of interest. And this was the first absolute start of Jabez
as a capitalist.

The joyous excitement attending Augusta’s own preparations for her
approaching nuptials was somewhat damped by the unaccountable condition
of Ellen Chadwick, whose health, instead of improving during her visit
to Carr Cottage, had appeared to decline still more perceptibly. A
constant pain at her chest, frequent headaches, uncertain spirits,
and increasing languor gave Mr. and Mrs. Chadwick real cause for
uneasiness; but Ellen would not hear of a doctor, and maintained that
it was “nothing to trouble about,” she should “be better soon.”

But she did not get “better soon,” and when the first August sun shone
on Augusta’s birthday and bridal, it taxed her powers to the utmost to
sustain efficiently her part as bridesmaid.

Had Captain Travis accepted his lieutenant’s invitation to be
groomsman, she would have found it still more difficult; but a
comparative stranger, a Mr. Joseph Bennett, of Gorton, filled the post,
the bride’s father having objected very decidedly to bold Ned Barret.

Yet Ben Travis and Jabez Clegg were both among the guests, albeit it
cost each a struggle. The two had mutually strengthened each other as
such friends should, arriving at the Spartan decision to “suffer and
be silent, facing their fate like men.” And indeed, old Mr. Ashton had
wrung the hand of Jabez at least a week before, and said—

“I’m sorry for you, Clegg; I am, upon my soul; and I’m sorry for our
poor lass too, for she’s made a mistake. But keep a brave heart, and
don’t let that slashing yeomanry fellow crow over you. As Mrs. Ashton
would say, ‘What can’t be cured must be endured,’ and we must all of us
show the best face at the wedding that we can.”

If that meant elaborate display in dress and decorations, and provision
for the bridal breakfast and dinner, then the face exhibited was a
shining one. Mrs. Hodgson, the fashionable mantua-maker and milliner
of Oldham Street (where two or three of the private houses had already
been converted into shops), had kept her apprentices at work almost
night and day for weeks, executing bridal orders from the Ashtons
and their friends. A very snowstorm might have passed through the
work-room, such heaps of white French-crape and satin, lace and
organdi, lute-string and gauze, littered and covered available space,
putting matronly brocade, velvet, and llama quite into the shade.

The warehouse saw little of Mrs. Ashton for a week or ten days
previously. Cicily, who had gone over to the Aspinalls, had begged to
be allowed to help Kezia for that occasion; and she roasted her own
face in spinning gold and silver webs and baskets from sugar for the
table, making “floating islands,” syllabubs, trifles, jellies, and
blanc-mange to supplement the solid dishes Kezia dressed with so much
skill. And Mr. Mabbott sent in a sugary “Temple of Hymen” and a bride’s
cake prepared six weeks in advance.

The bride, alternately radiant and tearful like an April day, veiled
with lace, and crowned with white rose-buds and orange-blossoms, wore
a low-bodiced dress of white satin, festooned round the narrow skirt
with costly lace, whilst on neck and arms, and in her tiny ears, were
negligé, bracelets, and earrings of pearl, the gift of the gallant
bridegroom’s gallant father.

The bridegroom was scarcely less resplendent in his high-collared blue
coat and gold buttons, his white waistcoat buttoned to match, his
glossy white trousers, and low shoes tied with a bunch of silk ferret.
An oblong brooch set with a rim of pearls held down his broad fine
shirt-frills; from his fob hung a huge bunch of gold seals pendant from
a flat gold watch chain; and in his hand (not crushing his elaborate
curls, now clustering richly as ever) he carried a hat of white beaver
of the newest shape.

To Mr. and Mrs. Ashton it was a matter of open regret that Joshua
Brookes, who had christened Augusta, should not have lived to marry her
also; but Mr. Aspinall, whose reminiscences of the old chaplain were of
another order, was much better satisfied to see his own personal friend
Parson Gatliffe, the _bon vivant_, behind the altar-rails.

If the bride was tall and graceful, with sunshine in her eyes and in
her classic curls, tall and stately was the bride’s mother, whose long
train of purple silk velvet swept the aisles, though trains had ceased
to be general. There was no faltering over the responses. There was a
glow of modest pride on the cheek of Augusta; a look of mingled ardour
and exultation on the face of Laurence; his “_I will_” was pronounced
with a force which was almost fierce, yet, as she faintly promised to
“obey,” he pressed her hand with smiling significance.

The ceremony over, the bride did not faint, but turning to her
tearful-eyed father, threw her arms around his neck and clung to him,
whispering how grateful she was that he had given her the man of her
choice, and that he should see what a good wife she would make; and the
impromptu embrace sent a shower of snuff over white satin and lace.

Yet some one fainted, whom Ben Travis caught in his strong arms
and carried to the church door for air; a dark-haired, black-eyed
bridesmaid, whose face was white and skin transparent as her own robe.

Custom had not set its imperative seal on the wedding tour as a
necessity, but after a magnificent solid dinner, to which the party did
full justice, and an elaborate dessert, during which the cake was cut,
and Mr. Aspinall proposed the health of the bride in an inflated toast,
demanding that it should be drunk in bumpers, “and no heel-taps,” the
wedded pair drove off in Mr. Aspinall’s carriage to the family mansion
at Fallowfield, there to spend the honeymoon.

“Good-bye, Jabez,” said Augusta, putting her small soft hand into his
as they left the house; “you will comfort my father and mother, will
you not? I trust them to you.”

And he replied with the fervency of truth, “I accept the trust
willingly. Good-bye, Mrs. Aspinall” (how the word choked him!) “May God
bless you, and the marriage you have contracted. Good-bye!”

He did not kiss her hand, had not taken the common liberty of guests
to kiss the bride’s lips in church; he did but press her hand as any
old friend who had grown up with her under the same roof might have
done; but before the carriage had well dashed from the door, or the
bridegroom had fairly settled himself on his seat, Laurence turned to
the fair young wife, whose prophetic tears were now falling fast, with
the sharp rebuke—

“What was that foundling fellow mumbling over your hand? You will
please to remember that that hand is mine now, Mrs. Aspinall. You have
promised to _love_ and _obey_ me—ME your LORD and
MASTER. And MASTER I mean to be. I have borne the
fooling of your friends and your own pretty caprices long enough. It is
my turn now; and if any man so much as dares to look at you I’ll pound
him to a jelly! And now dry your eyes and give me a kiss!”

And that was the inauguration of Augusta Aspinall’s married life.

It has been said that the bridesmaid fainted. Every lady carried a
smelling bottle, and means to revive her were not far to seek. She
soon recovered, and with a sensitive blush withdrew from the arms
which had been so proud to sustain her, casting her eyes round as if
in search of some other whose service might have been more acceptible.
But she suffered no relapse. She was ready to wait upon the bride, to
sign “Ellen Chadwick” in the church register, and to assist Mr. Joseph
Bennett in cutting up the cake for distribution, with cards and gloves,
to friends not present. It was an arduous task, and she succumbed
before it was half completed.

“Miss Chadwick, you are not well; let me relieve you,” said Jabez,
coming to her assistance after the “happy pair” had driven off, and
whilst peals of laughter, shouts, and hurrahs came from the dining-room
where gentlemen were honouring the bridal by drinking themselves
senseless and speechless.

Ellen remained with her aunt a few days longer, during which Jabez,
exceedingly pained to see the ravages hidden disease had made in so
estimable a young lady, was pitifully attentive.

He could not, however, fail to see that his attentions distressed her;
and, on the whole he was not sorry when Augusta’s parents and he were
left to themselves, to talk of their own dear one and speculate on her
future.

Weeks went by. Mrs. Aspinall visited her old home, but never without
her husband; and seldom was she allowed to remain more than an hour.
Her spirits seemed exuberant, but somehow her unusual vivacity jarred
on her mother’s nerves, and she suspected that her spirits were forced.

Meanwhile Ellen Chadwick faded. Dr. Hardie, called in at last, watched
his patient with curious and attentive eye, perplexed and dubious.
He had been friend as well as physician since Mr. Chadwick’s attack
of paralysis, and was a close observer. Now he came and went in a
gossiping sort of way, to put his patient at ease, and off her guard.
He was there one day when Jabez was announced, and saw a sudden
spasmodic action of the face, a dilation of the pupils, a scarcely
perceptible pant and parting of the lips, and then he watched her
closer. He introduced Mr. Clegg’s name, as if casually, whilst his
fingers were on her pulse. The result of his observations were told to
Mr. Chadwick the same day.

“Your daughter has no specific disease, Mr. Chadwick, she is simply
_love-sick_.”

“L-love-s-sick?”

“Yes; and her secret passion is consuming her. Medicine cannot save
the patient’s life if her affection be not returned, and that right
speedily.”

Mr. Chadwick was aghast.

“I feared as much,” said Mrs. Chadwick, with a sigh.

“Then you will have an inkling who is the desired object?” said the
doctor.

“I think so.”

“Does your maternal instinct point to Mr. Clegg?” he asked, with a
curious look.

“It does; but he himself has no suspicion, and I am sure regards Ellen
only as a friend—a friend elevated a little above him.”

“Is the young man courting?”

“I believe not.”

“Then,” said the doctor sententiously, “the sooner he is, the better
for Miss Chadwick. Her life is not worth a month’s purchase unless Mr.
Clegg become the buyer. But let not Miss Ellen hear a whisper of my
opinion. Good day.”

And snatching up his hat the doctor departed, leaving them to their
reflections.

Here was a delicate subject to be dealt with, and that without either
loss of time or the sacrifice of their beloved child’s sensitiveness
and reserve.

Unknown to Ellen a family conclave assembled under the Mosley Street
roof, to discuss the momentous question, and deliberate what was
best to be done. Long and grave were their deliberations. At length,
taking Mr. Chadwick’s imperfect speech into consideration, Mr. Ashton
consented to lay the case before Jabez, and leave his brother-in-law
to supplement it, if necessary; though opinions were divided as to the
result.

It was after business hours, and Mr. Ashton found Jabez in his own
room, doing his best to dissipate thought by hard work, mind and hand
being busy with a chintz-pattern for calico-printing.

There was a nervous plunge into the gold snuff-box, and a consequent
flourish of a gay bandana, and some time spent in examining the
incomplete design on the desk, before Mr. Ashton could fairly enter on
his embassy. After a little prelude, in which, whilst enlarging on the
serious nature of his niece’s illness, he elicited from Jabez that he
held the young lady in the very highest esteem, and was deeply grieved
to hear of her perilous state, he put down his snuff-box on the table
before him, and drawing up his chair so as to bring their heads closer
together, looked steadfastly into the other’s clear eyes as he put the
question—

“And what should you think of _love_ as the cause of her malady?”

“LOVE!” echoed Jabez, his mind running off to the agonised
confession made to him on the Taxal hillside.

“Yes, _love_, and for the very man whose merits _my_ foolish child
failed to see.”

Jabez looked at him vaguely.

“Surely not Mr. Marsland!”

“Pah! no!” exclaimed Mr. Ashton, as if disgusted at his obtuseness.
“Yourself, man—Jabez Clegg.”

Jabez fixed his eyes on his informant in blank amazement, a
monosyllabic long-drawn “_Me!_” being his sole response.

“Just so!” assented Mr. Ashton, and he took a pinch of snuff on the
strength of it.

“Oh, sir, there must be some mistake! How has this been ascertained?
Has Miss Chadwick made——”

“No, Clegg, the poor lass has never said one word, except with her eyes
and pulse. Dr. Hardie has made the discovery now, and it turns out Mrs.
Chadwick suspected it long ago.”

“Oh, dear! dear! this is very terrible!”

He was estimating the pain in Ellen’s heart by that in his own.

“Very terrible indeed, Clegg, for Hardie says the lass’s life is not
worth so much as a yard of filleting if her love meet no return.”

The head of Jabez sank in his open hands upon the table. What would his
friend Travis think of all this? Presently he raised his face, over
which a strange change had passed.

“Mr. Ashton, what would you have me do?”

“Whatever Jabez Clegg thinks he ought to do,” he answered steadily,
adding in another tone, “I would have been glad to have given thee my
own child: my brother-in-law implores thee to take _his_ child, to save
her life.”

After a prolonged silence Jabez spoke.

“Mr. Ashton, I hold that love alone can sanctify marriage: my love
has blossomed and died fruitless. Yet so highly do I esteem Miss
Chadwick, and so proud am I of the great honour she has done me in
her preference, that I place myself in your hands. If I can spare so
amiable a young lady the pain I suffer from rejected love, I should be
a brute and a savage to refuse her the remnant of a valueless life. We
may at least soften its asperities for each other.”

The Chadwicks went home with minds relieved, but Jabez had stipulated
that nothing should be said to Ellen of their overtures to him, no hint
given which could alarm her shrinking modesty.

The following day he called to inquire about her health, made his
genuine anxiety apparent, and noted, as he had never done before, how
her lip trembled and her eyelid drooped. Gradually, as his attentions
became more marked, her health and spirits rose, and when at last he
proposed to her calmly, quietly, as though he sought a haven when the
frothy waves of a first passion had subsided, she accepted him as God’s
best gift, all unaware that his offer was not spontaneous, or that her
cousin Augusta was yet deeply shrined in his secret heart.

He had been at first greatly concerned about Ben Travis but the
generous fellow, to whom he felt in honour bound to explain his
conduct, only wrung his hand and said—

“I could not resign her to a worthier.”



CHAPTER THE FORTY-SECOND.

BLOWS.


Richard Chadwick, who had served as a midshipman under Admiral
Collingwood, and shared in the victory of Trafalgar, was a midshipman
still, and his vessel had long been away on a foreign station. Few,
brief, and far between had been his opportunities to visit home and
friends. Ships had been paid off, but he had been exchanged, several
years had elapsed since he had set foot in Manchester, and the hearts
of his kin yearned towards their sailor.

His very whereabouts was unknown to them, and when written
communication was necessary, letters had to be forwarded through the
Admiralty.

Ellen’s engagement and prospective marriage called forth a voluminous
epistle, crossed and recrossed like a trellis, from Mrs. Chadwick to
her son, whose presence she craved, if leave of absence could possibly
be obtained. The letter was a singular compound of gratulation and
apology, through which a thin undercurrent of dissatisfaction meandered
like a stream. His sister’s strange malady and infatuation for a man
of apparently low origin, whose name and parentage were alike unknown,
were set forth to be deplored. Still, since the sole remedy for Ellen’s
ailment rested with this obscure Mr. Clegg whose career upwards, from
his floating cradle to his honourable position in the Ashton house and
warehouse, was circumstantially detailed, his personal worth was a
matter for congratulation; and the deep obligation of the whole family
to him for the service rendered on Peterloo-Day seemed dragged in as a
sort of extenuating circumstance. Clearly the Mr. Travis, whose name
and pretensions cropped up here and there throughout the letter would
have been a more acceptable son-in-law in the sight of Mrs. Chadwick
and his other sister, Charlotte Walmsley, and just as clearly it was
made apparent that his paralysed father (hale and strong in all other
respects) was as much infatuated with the young man as was Ellen,
having “positively offered to take him into partnership on his entrance
into the family.” And even there Mrs. Chadwick felt “constrained to
admit that the clear head, business tact, and energy of Mr. Clegg would
be a great acquisition.”

This item of news closed the missive, which must have gone a circuitous
round of red tape it was so long upon its travels. Months came and
went; Father Christmas shook his snowy locks over the town; but neither
the midshipman nor a written substitute put in an appearance.

Meanwhile Jabez, who had crushed down in the garden of his heart those
roots of his love for Augusta which mocked his strength to eradicate,
did his best to plant and foster above them a grateful affection for
the one who had chosen him, and hoped in time that the newer growth
might utterly extinguish the old. His attentions to Ellen were more
assiduous than, under the circumstances, might have been expected; but
he argued with himself—

“I must endeavour to atone to her for a proposal in which love had no
part. She must never have occasion to suspect the truth. I should be a
brute did I remain insensible to the unconquerable love she has so long
cherished in secret for me. Augusta’s face, alas! was more divinely
fair, her manner more enchanting; but Ellen, though she is older than
myself, will doubtless make the best wife for a business man who has to
carve his way to fortune, and _she loves me_!”

Ellen, too, had her seasons of doubt and perplexity. She had been so
sensitively alive to the silent homage of Jabez Clegg to her younger
and fairer cousin that at first her mind had refused to realise the
fact that he desired to marry her, even though his proposal had been
preceded by direct and palpable attention. She had been at first
inclined to attribute his many acts of kindness and courtesy to
friendship and compassion for her failing health. And when he had
spoken of being won by her many estimable qualities to seek her for a
wife, she had listened incredulously; then, overpowered by contending
emotions, sank back amongst her cushions, in a state of insensibility.
Even her tremulous acceptance had been uttered as in a blissful dream,
which might vanish all too soon. From time to time she perplexed
herself with questions of the motive for so sudden a change in one so
steadfast as Jabez, and at last wavered between the two suppositions
that Augusta’s wilfulness had wearied him, or that she owed her lover
to pique. Of the real state of the case she had no inkling.

She was not alone in her latter supposition.

“A happy new year to you, Mrs. Clowes!” said our friend Jabez to his
friend the old confectioner, as at one stride he took the two steps to
her confined shop on the bright frosty second of January, 1823, and
extended his hand to her across the counter, where she still kept up a
show of activity in spite of age and wrinkles.

“Same to you, Mr. Clegg.”

She had been one of the first to recognise his right to the prefix, and
with all her old-fashioned familiarity never dropped it.

“Eh, but now I look at thee, thah doesn’t look ower bright an’ happy;”
and she peered into his face inquiringly.

He smiled.

“Looks are not always to be relied on. I ought to be happy, for I am
about to be married, and my errand hither is to——”

She interrupted him with—

“So I’ve heard. But what o’that? Is she th’ reet un? For I wouldna give
a mince-pie for thi happiness if she isna.”

The blood mounted painfully to his forehead.

“Miss Chadwick is all that is estimable and amiable, Mrs. Clowes,” he
answered steadily, “and if I am not happy with her it will be my own
fault.”

The old dame was not satisfied. The white linen lappets of her
antiquated mutch flapped like a spaniel’s ears as she shook her head.

“Eh, well!” sighed she, opening and shutting a drawer in the counter
abstractedly, “you should know best, but both me and Parson Brookes
(dead and gone as he is) thought you’d set your mind on th’ lass that
rantipollin lad Aspinall snapped up. I hope thah’s not goin’ to wed th’
cousin out o’ spite,” and she looked up in his face, over which a cloud
had swept. “It would be the worst day’s work you ever did, either for
her or you.”

He had mastered his emotion, and answered cheerfully—

“Make your mind easy, Mrs. Clowes. I am not marrying from any unworthy
motive, and I think our prospect of happiness is about the average. I
came to ask you, as the oldest friend I have in the town, to be present
on the occasion.”

Mrs. Clowes was overpowered.

“What! Mr. Clegg! Me, in my old black stuff gown and mutch, among your
grand folk? Nay, nay; I’m too old to don weddin’ garments. But I tell
you what”—and her face puckered with pride and pleasure—“you shall have
the finest wedding-cake that ever was baked i’ Manchester, and the old
woman will mebbe look on the weddin’ from some quiet nook, out o’ the
way. It’s a thousand pities Jotty is not alive to marry you?”

“There will be no grand folk, Mrs. Clowes; I am but a poor man
struggling upwards, and Miss Chadwick has not had good health of late;
so we shall be married very quietly on Wednesday week. Only very near
relatives, or old friends are invited.”

Customers interrupted the colloquy. When the shop was clear, she asked
where he was going to live after marriage, and was told, with his
bride’s parents.

“Eh! but that’s a bad look out. Now, I’ve built some houses in a new
street off Oxford Road as they call Rosamund Street, an’ I’ll tell you
what, you shall have one to live in at a peppercorn rent, and I’ll lend
you the money to furnish it. Young folks are best by themselves.”

Clear and bright were the eyes that met hers in reply.

“Thank you, Mrs. Clowes, thank you heartily for your kind offer; but
I think you lose sight of Mr. Chadwick’s infirmity. He has acted
very liberally towards me—in fact, has offered to take me into
partnership—and I should ill repay him by removing from his hearth the
good daughter on whom he relies. It is rather my duty to add to the
comfort of his declining years.”

“Oh!” said she, sharply; “if that’s how you raise your crust I’d best
keep my fingers out of your pie.”

Jabez was going. The shop was full.

“Stay, Mr. Clegg,” said she, beckoning him into her parlour, and
closing the door. “It’s hard cheese for a man to owe everything to his
father-in-law. I’ve got £500 hanging on hand. It’s not much, but the
least bit of capital would make you feel independent, and its heartily
at your service; and if you don’t like to take it without interest, you
can pay me one per cent., and repay me when you’ve made a fortune; and
if that doesn’t come till I lay under a stone bed-quilt, you can hand
it over to my first godchild.”

That same evening Augusta Aspinall stood before a large oval
swing-glass in her luxurious dressing-room, the blazing fire shed
its warm glow on polished furniture, amber silk hangings, bright
fire-irons, costly mirrors, and expensive toilet ware (of execrable
shape). She was robing for a ball at the Assembly Rooms, and Cicily,
who, although cook, insisted on retaining her post as lady’s maid on
such occasions, had just fastened the last hook of a delicate lilac
figured silk as soft as it was lustrous, with swansdown fringing skirt,
sleeves, and bodice, as if to show how fair was the symmetrical neck of
the wearer to stand such test.

In came Laurence fresh from the Spread Eagle in Hanging Ditch, where
he, a newly-elected member of the Scramble Club, had spent the
afternoon with one or two others, forgetful that the origin of the club
was the fourpenny pie and glass of ale, or at most the slice from a
joint despatched in a hurry or “scramble” by business men to whom time
was money.

Neither time nor money seemed of much value to Mr. Laurence, who was
equally lavish with both, taking as much from his father’s business and
adding as little as could well be imagined. His step on the threshold
caused Augusta to turn round, beaming and beautiful, and dart towards
him, exclaiming—

“I’m so glad you’ve come!” simultaneously with his “Clear out, Cis!”
and a warm embrace which somewhat disarranged the dainty dress. His
wife was yet a new toy, and his passion had not had time to evaporate.
She was a something to admire and exhibit for admiration as a
possession of his own; and though her love had received one or two rude
shocks, he was still a glorified being in her eyes, and she clung to
him as a true wife should cling. She was still but a girl in her teens,
proud of the admiration she excited. Disengaging herself, she cried—

“Oh, Laurence, see how you have crushed my swansdown! and now, dear,
do make haste and dress, we shall be so late,” and putting the fluffy
trimming in order, she unlocked a small jewel case on the table, and
took thence the pearls she had worn on her wedding-day.

“What will you say for these, Augusta?” cried he, dangling before her
eyes a gossamer scarf and an exquisite ivory fan, whilst his other arm
thrown over her white shoulders again threatened the elastic down.

“Oh, Laurence, you are a darling! Where did these beautiful things come
from?” and she gave him more than one kiss in payment.

“India, my love: they are ‘far-fetched and dear-bought,’ and so must
be good for you, my lady. I met your uncle Chadwick with an old
sea-captain, from whom I bought them. By the way, matrimony seems
catching. We are invited to a wedding,” and he began leisurely to
undress as he spoke.

“A wedding! Whose?”

He laughed.

“Ah, woman all over! I thought I had news for you. Guess!”

In small things as well as great it was his delight to tantalize, so he
kept her guessing whilst he proceeded with his toilet, and she began to
clasp her pearls on arms and neck, and in her pretty ears.

“Well,” said he at length, “who but your cousin Ellen!”

“Ellen?” She had gone so little near her own family that this was
indeed news for her.

“Yes; I thought she meant to die an old maid, but it seems she’s not
too proud to wear your cast-off slippers.”

“My cast-off slippers? What do you mean?” and she paused whilst
clasping her bracelet with a look of bewildered interrogation.

“Now, Augusta, pray don’t look so innocent!—Your father’s favourite
fetch-and-carry, that sneaking, canting fox, Jabez Clegg, finding that
Miss Ashton was a sour grape, has straightway gone wooing to Miss
Ashton’s cousin as fruit ripe enough and near enough to drop into his
vulpine jaws; and by G—— the girl has had no more spirit than to drop
when he shook the boughs, rather than hang on untasted!”

The speaker’s lip and nose had curled with contempt as he began, then
his nostril dilated, and he struck his wet hand on the washstand with a
force which threatened the earthenware and set it jingling.

Augusta was not yet schooled to silence; her generous spirit rose to
repel these allegations.

“Oh, Laurence, how can you? Ellen has had plenty of admirers; she has
no need to wear anyone’s cast-off shoes. And as for Mr. Clegg! He is no
cast-off slip”——she checked herself; a thousand trivial and forgotten
things flashed across her mind at once; there was no doubt that Jabez
had aspired to her own hand—he must have offered himself to Ellen in
pique, to look as if he didn’t care; she could not add the “of mine,”
which should have rounded her sentence; she substituted, with barely
a moment’s pause, “He is neither a sneak nor a cant, and if Ellen
marries him she will have a good husband;” adding, with marvellously
little tact or knowledge of her own husband, “I’m sure, Laurence,
dear, you have no right to speak ill of the man who saved your life
in the very pond that is frozen over now before our doors! And you
cannot really think him mercenary, when he refused the £500 your father
offered as a reward for his bravery.”

Not lightning was more quick and scathing than the fury which flashed
from her husband’s eyes and almost paralysed his tongue, as the last
words fell from her lips. With the damp towel in his hand he struck
across her beautiful bare shoulders with a force which traced red
lines upon their snow; then marked her round arm with a band as red by
tearing away the suspended fan and scarf, which he threw behind the
fire without one thought of either “far-fetched” or “dear-bought.”

“Soh, madam!” he hissed rather than spoke, whilst Augusta shrank from
him in affright, “soh! you dare defend the wretch who played the spy on
us at Carr—attacked me, an unarmed man, with a stick, like a coward,
and left me bleeding there for dead, hoping to win the heiress for
himself!”

From her father and Cicily both she had gathered the truth of that
night’s exploits. His misrepresentations no longer misled; but for very
fear she held her peace.

He went on—

“Madam, that night’s savage attack cancelled every debt of gratitude
I owed the calculating knave who turned his back on my father’s £500,
thinking to multiply it by thousands from _your_ father!”

“It is not true!” she dared to say, her sense of justice and her spirit
of resistance rising in defence of one she knew to be foully aspersed.
Not because he was Jabez Clegg but because he was an absentee maligned.

A shriek rang through the big house, and servants came scurrying up,
with Mr. Aspinall in their midst; and Cicily, the first to dash between
them, caught on her well-covered back the blow from the madman’s brace,
which would else have fallen afresh on the naked shoulders of his wife,
already scored by it with livid welts.

Carry away the fainting lady—soothe the infuriated savage—apply raw
beef to shoulders as red, if not as raw—let the brute steep himself
in brandy unto stupefaction. The morning will come, when the fumes
of passion and brandy will alike have passed away, and the man will
repent him of his cruelty. But the sting of groundless jealousy will
remain, and the broad livid stripes across the white shoulders. Time
and care will efface those marks, but neither kisses, nor caresses, nor
presents, nor time itself can obliterate the hieroglyphics stamped with
that buckskin brace on the young wife’s heart. He has fixed the name of
Jabez Clegg there, and in conjunction “brute” and “liar,” as equivalent
to his own.

It might have been expected after this that the Aspinalls would have
been conspicuous by their absence from the cousin’s wedding, or that
Augusta might have laid her wrongs before her mother. But, no; your
jealous man never spares himself a pang if he hopes to inflict one; and
the wilful woman who finds she has made a mistake in marriage is the
last to confess it.

Cold weather and recent indisposition served as an apology for the
violet velvet spencer which, worn above the pale lilac silk, covered
bust and neck; and it was far from unbecoming to the young matron or
the occasion.

Old Mrs. Clowes—who had kept her word anent the cake, which was a
triumph of confectionery skill—from some long-closed coffer brought
forth a stiff brocade of ancient make and texture, placed a bonnet on
her unaccustomed head, and from a far seat in the choir watched Jabez
Clegg enter with his college friend and groomsman, stalwart George
Pilkington, though she did not see them linger to read the inscription
over the grave of Joshua Brooks, or look up with grateful remembrance
to the Chetham Gallery, where they had worshipped together. But she
remembered them as boys in long blue gowns and yellow under-skirts,
and could not help contrasting the college dress of the past with the
high-collared bright blue coats, the gilt buttons, lemon-coloured
vests, light trousers, and white kid gloves, in which they found their
way to her to shake hands, whilst waiting for the trembling white-robed
bride and her friends.

And there Mrs. Clowes sat and listened to the irrevocable words which
bound Jabez to “love and cherish” the woman who loved him with her
whole soul; whilst in spite of himself his very brain was reeling with
memories of that other wedding-day, when Laurence Aspinall and Augusta
Ashton, now standing calm and beautiful in the background, had breathed
the selfsame vows before that altar; and somehow the old dame had a
secret misgiving when all was over that it was “_not_ the reet one
after all.”

“All over!” had been the cry from the heart of Jabez then. “All over!”
was the echo now, as the last “Amen” sounded, and he registered a
silent oath, not down in the rubric, to keep the troth he had plighted,
although no electric thrill answered the shy touch of Ellen’s hand, or
the dumb devotion of her glance, and although Augusta’s greeting of her
new “cousin” jarred a still sensitive nerve.

All over! so men delude themselves. “All over!” they say, when
disappointment closes the door of the past, and veils their eyes to the
vista of the future. “All over!” when the curtain falls on the prologue
of life’s drama. Yet it rises again, and they find that the play has
but just begun.



CHAPTER THE FORTY-THIRD.

PARTNERSHIP.


By dint of persuasion old Mrs. Clowes was induced to place her
well-saved brocade at the table graced by the wedding-cake she had
manufactured; though, as she afterwards said confidentially to Jabez,
“I must have had as much brass in my face as I had i’ my pocket to sit
down cheek-by-jowl wi’ grand folks with foine manners, who might come
into my shop th’ next day to be served with a pound o’ gingerbread; but
I’d not ha’ missed Mester Ashton’s toast for summat. And I don’t know
as annybody turned up a nose bout it wur that spark Aspinall, who owes
me for manny a quarter a pound of humbugs.”

Round that hospitable and substantial wedding-breakfast, which owed
much of its success to the bride’s own deft fingers, also gathered the
Cloughs, who had watched the career of the bridegroom with interest
from his cradle—Miss Clough as bridesmaid; Mr. John M‘Connel and
Henry Liverseege, who had cultivated his friendship from their first
introduction; John Walmsley and Charlotte, who privately chafed at his
reception into the family; and Augusta, whose brilliancy was somewhat
dimmed by the overt watchfulness of too courteous and attentive
Laurence; but there was no Ben Travis, and missing him, Jabez was
disposed to gravity. But though there were uncongenial elements
present, George Pilkington’s cheery voice and lively sallies sufficed
to set mirth afoot and keep her dancing; whilst Mrs. Ashton, stately
and proverbial, seemed to share some pleasant secret with which Mr.
Chadwick and her husband were on the _qui vive_.

It was the age for toasts and sentiments. Some smart and witty things
had been uttered, but not until the cake was cut and commended, and a
post-chaise at the door waited to convey the newly-married pair to Carr
Cottage and the earliest friends of the bridegroom, did Mr. Ashton
rise to his feet, snuff-box in hand, and with a merry twinkle in his
eye propose—

“Success to the new partnership!”

“Stop, my friends!” said he, as glasses were elevated in honour of
the toast; “perhaps I had better explain what is meant by the new
partnership.”

“I should think that was pretty obvious,” whispered Laurence to his
friend Walmsley across the table, but he changed his opinion presently.

“There are partnerships for life,” continued Mr. Ashton, “where
the contract is attested in church, as we have had the pleasure of
witnessing to-day, and, I am sure, with the best of wishes for its
success; and there are partnerships in business, which are usually
signed, sealed, and attested in a lawyer’s office; and it is to such a
one I now refer, in conjunction with the former.”

He paused to consult his snuff-box, and smiled to see how suddenly
inattentive heads were eagerly bent forward to listen.

“It may not be generally known that my dear _nephew_ Jabez, at the
close of his honourable apprenticeship, declined an eligible offer from
brother Chadwick, in order to remain with us.”

(Walmsley and Aspinall exchanged glances. Mrs. Clowes looked knowing.)

“It may not be generally known that he has a small amount of capital
invested in our concern at present.”

(“Small enough, I should say,” muttered Laurence.)

“Now, there being no likelihood that his son Richard will ever leave
his ship for a warehouse, Mr. Chadwick proposed to take his son-in-law
Jabez into equal partnership, considering his integrity, his business
tact, and energy to be equivalent to capital.”

“Hear! hear!” in which Mr. Chadwick’s stumbling tongue was loudest, and
“Success to the new partnership!”

(The snuff-box closed, the bandana was disposed of, the speaker’s
beaming face was all in a glow.)

“Stop! stop, gentlemen! not so fast. You will have to fill your glasses
afresh. We have not yet got to the new partnership.”

(“What the d—— l is he driving at?” was Aspinall’s polite query to
Walmsley, who shook his head in token of ignorance.)

“Brother Chadwick had concluded that Mr. Clegg was wholly without
capital, whereas he happens to have more than a thousand pounds at his
disposal.”

(Broadcloth made sudden acquaintance with chairbacks. George Pilkington
grasped his friend’s hand; there was a puckering of Mrs. Clowes’s
wrinkles; there were lowering brows from Laurence and John.)

“And Mr. Clegg being perfectly satisfied with his present investment,
and anxious to join the gingham manufacturer without quitting the
small-ware manufacturer, proposed”—pinch of snuff—“that the _two
concerns should be amalgamated_, and he have a share. Gentlemen and
ladies, the proposal was hailed as an inspiration; and as soon as
the change can be legally effected, the firm will be gazetted as
‘Ashton, Chadwick, and Clegg!’ And now let us drink—‘Success to the new
partnerships, matrimonial and commercial!’”

Aspinall’s voice alone remained silent amongst the enthusiastic cheers
with which the toast was drunk. Ellen, with humid eyes, escaped to
change her garments, and Augusta also rose; but as she passed the new
Manchester Man, around whom friends crowded with congratulations, she
put out her hand with a smile, and said, “Cousin Jabez, I wish success
to both your partnerships with all my heart.”

Laurence was at her elbow, apparently to lead her with courteous
ceremony from the room, and whilst offering one hand with a graceful
inclination of his head, he contrived with the other to pinch the upper
part of her arm, and to whisper in her ear, between his set teeth—

“D—— n you, madam! You shall smart for this!”

An irrepressible ejaculation of pain burst from her. More than one
turned round. There was real concern on the brow of Jabez as he asked—

“What is the matter, Mrs. Aspinall? Are you hurt?”

She made light of it.

“Oh, nothing, nothing. I struck my foot against a chair—that was all.”

But Jabez saw the white, frightened face, and felt there was something
more; and that scared look haunted him for many a day.

Laurence attended his wife to the staircase, smiling blandly whilst
within sight or ear-shot. Ere he left her at the stair-foot he gripped
her tiny hand till her jewelled rings cut the flesh; and the smile
became satanic as he whispered—

“You are discreet, madam. I charge you to remain so—for your life!”

Once in Ellen’s crowded bedchamber she became hysterical, to her
cousin’s great grief. But she overmastered her emotion by a violent
effort, excused it on the plea of recent indisposition, and was
consoled by her mother and other sagacious matrons with the remark that
such affections might be expected. The newly-married pair were whirled
away down Oldham Street and up Piccadilly; old Mrs. Clowes took her
departure, and then Augusta, acting on Mrs. Clough’s advice, lay on the
drawing-room sofa to rest.

Not until night did the guests depart, Mr. Liverseege being the
first to retire. There was a late dinner at six o’clock, and when
the gentlemen rose from their post-prandial wine, and sought the
drawing-room, all considerably elevated, Laurence Aspinall was too
intoxicated to move. The Aspinall carriage had been waiting an hour.
The coachman and Bob the groom grew anxious and impatient about the
horses.

“Mr. Laurence drunk? Eh! that matters nowt!” exclaimed the latter.
“Steve an’ me’ll manage him.” And taking the limp young Hercules
between them, they somehow hauled him to the carriage, and ensconced
him in one corner, with his head drooping on his breast.

Augusta shrank from joining him, afraid lest he should awake to
malicious consciousness on the road.

“Oh! I dare not go home with him! Indeed, I dare not go home with him!”

“My dear,” said her mother gravely, “I am afraid you _must_. A wife
cannot absent herself from home because her lord and master indulges in
too much wine, even though he may occasionally make a beast of himself.
It is too late to think of this _now_. What cannot be cured must be
endured. As you made your own bed, you will have to lie on it to the
end. Those who leave the spring for the stream must expect muddy water.
However, there is nothing so bad but it might be worse. Once is not
always, and love overlooks lapses.”

Augusta’s persistence that she dared not be “shut up with him alone,”
caused Mrs. Ashton to say—

“Well, my daughter, the occasion has been so unusual that even your own
father has taken more wine than his wont, or he might bear you company.
That groom seems a steady man; suppose he rides inside to support his
master; and whatever you do, remember when wine is in wit is out,
silence is a wife’s safeguard, and you will have to make the best of a
bad bargain.”

A month back Augusta would have tossed her head, and laughed lightly
at her mother’s pet philosophy. That night she rode home from Jabez
Clegg’s wedding feast with a groom and a drunken man, pondering whether
spirited resentment or tame submission was her best course. The morning
dawned on a wife pinched black and blue, with hardly strength or spirit
to sob.

Then followed a reaction, and a period of remorseful uxorious
penitence, during which Laurence submitted with a tolerable grace to
a lecture from Mr. Aspinall, who saw that something was amiss; and
chivalrous gallantry towards woman being part of this gentleman’s
creed, he did not spare his son.

Nor did Laurence spare himself. He knelt at his wife’s feet, called her
“an angel,” and himself “a savage,” implored her forgiveness, excused
his jealousy on the ground of passionate love, lavished his means on
extravagant gifts for her, and exhausted language in fair promises. But
so proud was he of his wife’s beauty, that he must needs exhibit at
theatre and assembly the jewel he had won; whilst the admiration she
excited set his jealous brain on fire, and she paid the penalty in the
silence of night, or even in the close carriage driving home.

But his contrition and the old plea of “excessive love” for his jealous
infirmity won her over, and not even Cicily more than suspected half
his cruelty.

       *       *       *       *       *

Great preparations had been made at Whaley-Bridge for the reception
of Mr. and Mrs. Clegg; the factory windows were extra burnished; the
landlord of the White Hart hoisted a flag; the mill-hands lined the
road to greet them; the avenue gate was thrown open that the chaise
might drive on to the cottage; somebody had put Crazy Joe into a new
suit of clothes for the occasion, and he stood by the side of little
Sim on the step of the Gothic arch (the greater child of the twain)
to laugh and chuckle a welcome, as sincere in its way as the homely
greetings of the orphan’s fosterers.

It was a fine stalwart young man, of open but grave countenance, around
whom Bess threw her motherly arms, while Tom Hulme helped the bride to
alight, and marshalled the way for the pair, who followed arm-in-arm
into the house-place, where Simon, stiff with age and rheumatism, kept
possession of the padded chair set apart for the sick or aged.

In some way the knowledge that Mr. Clegg came as a master, and not as a
servant, had preceded him.

“Eh, Jabez, lad,” exclaimed Simon, tears of joy coursing down his
cheeks, “that aw should ever live to see this day! Would annyone ha’
thowt as th’ little lass ’at played wi’ ar Jabez an’ his toys, an’
kissed him when he wur a babby, would come to wed him when he wur a
mon—an’ a gentlemon into th’ bargain! an’ neaw let thi wife goo an’
tak’ oft her pelisse while thah talks to me; hoo’ll be tired wi’ th’
lung journey, aw reckon. Theere’s a fire i’ th’ best parlour, that’s
th’ place fur gentlefolk, an’ yo’r supper’s laid theer.”

Old Simon naturally concluded that young lovers wanted no society but
each other. On five-year-old Sim such a consciousness had not yet
dawned, and so he penetrated into the “best parlour,” and, much to the
relief of the bridegroom, broke into that first domestic _tête-à-tête_
to exhibit some wonderful pictures he had drawn with red ruddle picked
from the gravel-path.

They had been at Carr Cottage little more than ten days or a fortnight,
the first week being wet; Jabez, without neglecting Ellen, busied
himself with contemplated changes and improvements at the mill, and
thus the great bane of the modern honeymoon was avoided. The occupation
thus found for the mind and hand of Jabez at that particular epoch of
his life was a blessing for which Ellen had need to be thankful in
after years, if she had but known it.

As it was, she did fancy he might have given her a _little_ more of his
time, and not have needed her suggestion to revisit Taxal and the spot
where he had wooed her for another, and not for himself. Yet a very
slight hint was sufficient, and, taking advantage of a clear, dry day,
the two re-trod the old path by the Goyt, which awoke reminiscences
that could but be flattering to that self-love of which every human
being has a share.

Sitting down as man and wife on the lightning-scathed tree-trunk, which
had never been removed, he remembered the confession wrung from her
agony on that very spot; his arm stole round her waist in the pitiful
compassion it evoked. A new emotion stirred within his breast. He
folded his wife in his arms, and pressed upon her answering lips his
first spontaneous kiss of dawning affection.

Half-way home they were met by Crazy Joe, who had been sent to seek
them. A consecutive message was beyond his grasp. All they could make
out was, “Back! Sharp! Quick!” And, hastening on in alarm, they at
length discerned Mr. Ashton at the gate, on the look-out. His pleasant
nod was reassuring.

“My dear,” he cried to Ellen, as they advanced, “Dick has got his
promotion at last; Lieutenant Chadwick has been duly gazetted. Here is
his letter to your mother, dated from Mal—— Stop, my dear!”—Ellen had
put out her hand for the thick, heavy missive—“A communication which
called your old uncle Ashton out of his way to act as courier is not to
be dealt with lightly. And before it is read I must know whether you
would rather be Mrs. Clegg or Mrs. Travis?”

Closer she clung to the arm of Jabez.

“Oh, uncle! How can you ask?”

There was a sly gleam in the corner of his eye.

“Ah! just so. That’s it. How _can_ I ask?”

But his face sobered. He handed the letter to his new nephew.

“Jabez, I think you had better carry it to your own room for private
perusal. I will communicate its contents to all whom it may concern
besides.”

Jabez had deep feelings, though he was not demonstrative, and long
before he had mastered its contents he was thankful for the delicacy
which had spared him an open display of irrepressible emotion.

The writer, who was stationed at Malta, after dwelling on his own
promotion, and answering sundry maternal questions relative to himself,
went on to say—

“And so our Nell’s going to be married. Well, it’s about time—she’ll be
twenty-six next April, or I’ve lost my reckoning.

“And so she was fretting herself to fiddle-strings for a fellow younger
than herself, and without a shilling or a name, when she might have
had a finer fellow, with name and shiners to boot. Bravo! Nell, for
choosing a brave lad instead of a money-bag! She’s the sister for a
sailor, whatever Charlotte may think.

“But your story of the flood and the cradle, and your mention of Mr.
Travis, coming both together, recall a story I had forgotten, which may
perhaps furnish a name for Nell’s hero of the Irk and Peterloo.

“We had a broad-set sailor on board the _Royal Sovereign_, who was
always getting into scrapes for chalking caricatures of the officers
on the bunks and cabin-doors; but there wasn’t a man fore or aft that
hadn’t at some time or other coaxed a picture or portrait out of him,
to send to mother or sweetheart, and never a Jack Tar amongst them
would split on good-natured Ben Travis.”

Down dropped the shaking hand that held the letter. _Ben Travis!_ What
strange coincidence was this?

“His father had been a Liverpool shipbroker, and Ben took to me because
I was a Lancashire lad like himself, though he was old enough to be my
father. He had been pressed, and as I was the youngest middy, and he
the master of the forecastle, many a time had he told me the sad story
of his life. His father had died without a will, and Ned his eldest
brother had laid his clutches on everything but a hundred pounds or so,
which had been the mother’s. Ben turned his back on Liverpool and his
brother, and being smart with his pencil, took to that to get a living.
He wandered about to pick up bits of scenery, and at Crumpsall fell
in with a widow and her daughter, both named Ann Crompton, and went
to lodge with them. After awhile he married the lass, and thinking if
he meant to earn a living for his wife and the child that was coming
he’d best seek a large town, he removed to Manchester, and took an old
cottage in Smedley Vale, where he hoped to turn his talent to account.”

The paper rattled, and Jabez leaned against the window-frame, as much
for support as light, as he read on with panting lips.

“He tried portrait-painting, but lacked a patron; he turned his head to
pattern-designing, but no one would employ a raw beginner. His money
was dwindling, and a birth was near at hand. He doted on his wife, and
for her sake wrote to his brother, who was married when their father
died. Ned wrote back, enclosing a bank-note, and begging to see him at
once. His wife had died, leaving a baby-boy, whom he had christened
Ben, after his runaway brother. Ned said her loss was killing him, and
he wished to leave his boy in his brother’s care before he died. Poor
Ben Travis kissed his wife, and went by coach to Liverpool. Before he
could reach his brother’s office in Castle-street, near the docks,
he was pounced upon by a press-gang, dragged on board a ship in the
Mersey, and never saw brother, or wife, or home again. I have seen
Ben’s tears roll down his weather-beaten cheeks many a time as he told
this. He was one of the first sent down to the cock-pit at the battle
of Trafalgar, and when Admiral Nelson’s glorious remains went home to
be buried, Ben went likewise, to hospital, and I lost sight of him.
When I was exchanged to the _Excellent_, Ben turned up again, hearty,
but aged with grief. He had sought his dear ones, but a flood had swept
through Smedley Vale in 1799, and left no trace of his home. A man
at the dye-works remembered something about an old woman they called
stiff-backed Nan being killed by the falling house in trying to save
a baby; but Ben could learn no more, and his own impression was that
wife, child, and mother-in-law had perished in the same catastrophe. He
went to Liverpool. Death had swept off his brother; executors swept off
the son Ben, his namesake. He went back to sea, and I saw the brave Ben
Travis drowned in trying to save a bumboat woman, who fell overboard
off Spithead.

“And now, mother, you used to be a good hand at patch-work—piece my
story and your story together, and see if Ellen’s poor cradle-friend is
not near of kin to your rich friend, Mr. Benjamin Travis, with quite as
good a right to be called Mr. Travis too.

“I should have a rough sketch of the old sailor, drawn with a quid of
’bacca on the fly-leaf of his Prayer-book. I’ll look it up for Nell.”



CHAPTER THE FORTY-FOURTH.

MAN AND BEAST.


The January twilight had deepened into dusk, and from dusk to dark,
before Jabez was sufficiently master of himself to descend into the
light of the rooms below.

Whatever of surprise or satisfaction Richard Chadwick’s letter had held
for him, a wave of sorrow had passed over soul and countenance for the
sad fate of the parents whom he had never known. As his footstep was
heard overhead, Ellen flew to meet him at the foot of the staircase,
and threw herself into his arms.

“My love! my own husband!” was all she said, but such an intensity
of devotion and sympathy was in the act and tone that he felt he had
indeed a true heart beating with his, as he held her close, and his
lips touched her forehead as a seal to a new bond.

It was but a single step to the parlour door, which opened on a room
all aglow with light, and radiant faces. On Mr. Ashton’s inspiriting,
Simon’s easy chair had been wheeled in from the house-place, there
being no stately Mrs. Ashton at hand to demur at the innovation, or to
whisper a syllable of class distinctions. And surely that was not—yes,
it was—Ben Travis himself standing by the rheumatic old tanner, with
both hands outstretched, to greet a new cousin in his long-time friend.
And there was Bess, proudly glancing from his face to a piece of yellow
paper. “It’s as like as two peas,” she cried for the twentieth time,
handing to her tall foster-son a sketch which, though little more than
a succession of brown smears, was a ludicrous resemblance to himself.

“Well, Jabez,” said Mr. Ashton, sitting by the fire, with his
handkerchief over his knee, after the first hubbub of congratulation
had subsided, “it is as well our new partnership has not been gazetted.
I suppose there will have to be a change of name, and Ellen there will
be Mrs. Travis after all.”

This was but a playful sally on his part, but Ben Travis visibly
winced, and quick-eyed Jabez saw it.

“No, sir,” replied Jabez, calmly, with his hand on his wife’s shoulder,
“there will be no change. I bear the name of the kind friends who saved
my infant life; fed, clothed, and kept me through evil report and good
report, through pinching poverty, privation, and pain” (he glanced
towards Bess); “as Jabez Clegg I was enrolled as a Blue-coat boy; as
Jabez Clegg I was apprenticed to you, sir; as Jabez Clegg I married my
wife; as Jabez Clegg I have been honoured with a place in your firm;
and Jabez Clegg shall go with me to the grave. I had no name when that
good man” (pointing to Simon) “lent me his; time has made it mine, and
I mean to keep it as honourable as it came to me.” He looked down:
“Mrs. Clegg, are _you_ content?”

“Perfectly, Jabez.”

A long-sustained pinch of snuff spoke Mr. Ashton’s approbation, whilst
Simon could only reiterate, “Eh, lad, when aw tuk thee eawt o’ the
wayter, aw little thowt whatn a blessin’ theawd be to us, or the credit
theaw’d bring on ar neäme! Aw nobbut wish Parson Brucks wur aloive neaw
to yer thee.”

“Our relationship will only bind our friendship closer, whatever name
you bear,” put in Ben Travis, warmly, in spite of himself pleased with
the decision which would spare him the pain of addressing Ellen as Mrs.
Travis.

“An’ meals come reawnd whatever neäme yo’ ca’ them by,” supplemented
Bess, who, like Martha, troubled with much serving, had been running in
and out during the colloquy, whilst a combination of savoury odours,
and a clatter of knives and plates, came from the adjoining room; “it’s
supper toime neaw, an’ nobbody’s had even theer tay yet.”

“Just so, just so, Mrs. Hulme. But never mind the tea,” said Mr.
Ashton; “here comes your good husband in from the cellar, with a bottle
or two of generous wine to drink to new relationships.”

“I think I shall go abroad for a few months, Cousin Jabez,” said Travis
to him, as Mr. Ashton mounted first into the gig to return home next
day. “I require to dissipate thought. If I were occupied as you are
from morning until night there might be less necessity. But—I say,
Chapman the landlord here tells me you painted this sign. I think the
faculty must run in the blood, for I do a bit in that line myself
sometimes. How is it I have not seen a brush in your hands latterly?”

“Well, I got a hint, through painting that very sign, that trade
and art were incompatible, and seeing the force of the remark, as
counselled—the ‘cobber has stuck to his last.’”

“Look you, cousin” (Travis seemed fond of the word), “the fabled
shield had two sides—stick to your trade if you like, but don’t let
your trade absorb you. A business man who allows himself no leisure,
and has no resource out of his business, is apt to degenerate into a
money-grubber. I hope better things of you.”

A nod, a shake of the hand, and the gig rolled off with its occupants,
and Jabez stood looking after them, hesitating whether to go back to
the mill or to the cottage. The casual word of warning had come not
one whit too soon. That which was sending Travis abroad had kept Jabez
close to business. He had not sought so much to dissipate thought as
to circumvent it by substitution. If he had given his leisure to the
cultivation of art, it had of late been art only as connected with
manufacture and money-making. Even his honeymoon he was casting into
the mill as grist. He was ever ready to take a hint. He turned his
steps towards Carr with something like a sigh.

“Well, perhaps I might as well give my afternoons to Ellen whilst we
are here. I did not come to work, and the poor thing does need some
compensation for the lack of a lover’s ardour. God forbid that she
should ever suspect that I married her out of pity, or that I should
become a money-grubber. I wonder if Travis thought I was likely to
neglect her? It is a thousand pities she should set her mind on me
instead of him. And why she should passes my comprehension. He has
every advantage of face, figure, and fortune, to say nothing of his
evident devotion. Ah! women are strange creatures, and men are not much
better. I fear I am very ungrateful not to reciprocate her attachment
more fully. Why, here she is running down the avenue to meet me, as if
I had been gone a month. I really ought to love her better than I do.
But love can neither be forced nor crushed. Heigho!”

       *       *       *       *       *

Back to Manchester they went, rather sooner than expected; and then,
though Jabez threw himself into business with a will, he bore in mind
the parting words of Ben Travis.

The contemplated amalgamation was effected, not without extra draughts
on Jabez and his leisure. But as partner of a large firm, even
though a junior, it was obvious he could not work as designer for
calico-printers, or for any other than their own house. Consequently,
not being a man of pleasure, his evenings hung rather heavily on his
hands, especially as neither Ellen nor he cared for the card-parties
which formed the visiting staple. His very marriage had driven away his
closest friend, and broken in upon plans and schemes which otherwise
would have found sufficient occupation for his spare hours. Other
friends, however, dropped in for an occasional chat; notably George
Pilkington (to whom the wine-trade had opened a road to fortune), with
his reminiscences and jocularity, broke in on the monotony of married
life, that monotony which is as much to be dreaded by young couples as
is a first quarrel.

Ellen knew it not, but Augusta’s image often and often rose up between
husband and wife, and would not be driven back; whilst Ellen’s very
caresses were a source of pain to him, so much he felt himself a
debtor to her love. There was a void in his breast which she could
never wholly fill; he himself complained of a dearth of intellectual
recreation, and when Henry Liverseege suggested a return to painting,
he fell back upon his advice.

The fact is he needed to be alone, to have a place where he could
shut himself up with himself, whether to indulge in day-dreams or to
discipline his soul, or to think out the ideas of art, trade, or social
economy which floated through his brain, and were dispersed by actual
business or fireside chat; such a sanctum as had been his so many
years in Mosley Street; but self-conscious, he had shrunk from making
the proposal, afraid to wound his devoted wife by showing a desire to
isolate himself. The young artist’s open remark was enough for Ellen.
At once a small room, or rather closet, partitioned off from a large
one, at the top of the house, was set apart for his use. He shelved
one wall for books, set up an office-desk, carried thither easel,
papers, and painting materials; enclosed the fly-leaf of his father’s
prayer-book within glass and a black frame, suspending it on the wall
before him as a sacred relic, and there after warehouse hours he was
wont to shut himself in, and almost forget that he was a married man.
But this room acted as a safety-valve.

Luckily, in Ellen’s eyes, Jabez could do no wrong; he was gentleness
itself in all his comportment towards her, and the love which had
sprung to life unsought, and lived so long without encouragement, asked
but slight return to sustain it. It was treason for Mrs. Chadwick
to hint that Jabez was “unsocial,” or gave them “too little of his
company.” She was ever ready to resent it with the reply that—

“If he is not dull shut up there by himself, I am sure we three have no
right to complain of dullness down here together;” yet if we analysed
her heart very closely there were longings and yearnings for his
society known only to herself.

It was judged advisable for the further introduction and extension of
Ashton, Chadwick, and Clegg’s business that one of the partners should
travel occasionally as their commercial representative; and naturally
this duty devolved upon the active junior, whose capacity for the
undertaking revealed itself not only in heavy remittances and a full
order-book, but in a paucity of bad debts. Of course he travelled with
a horse and gig for the carriage of samples, and now and then he would
take Ellen with him on a short journey, an indulgence which appeared to
fill the cup of her delight. And altogether the marital yoke in a few
months adjusted itself to their shoulders very naturally.

It was during their absence on one of the earliest of these journeys
that an event occurred which set the indignant blood of Jabez on the
boil, and showed there was a fire smouldering, not extinguished.

The Aspinall home at Fallowfield was an ancient, many-gabled
grange, with mullioned windows, recessed window-seats, expansive
two-leaved entrance arched above; noble hall, with trophies from the
hunting-field; grand staircase, with massive carved oak balusters,
flights of broad low steps, and wide square landings; long corridors,
three or four rooms of magnificent proportions, and clusters of little
ones grouped around unsuspected passages and stairs; open fire-places
recently enclosed, and double doors to the chief chambers. Antiquity
had set its seal upon the place, and filled the panelled rooms with
quaint or obsolete furniture and adornments, as each successive
generation had left its quota. High-backed chairs, sofas of grotesque
device with dim worsted-work cushions and covers, heavy draperies of
silk or velvet, and tables with legs of all possible patterns.

It had come to the former Mrs. Aspinall from her ancestors, and from
her to her son on his marriage; consequently this was the home proper
of Laurence and his wife, although they had a suite of rooms set
apart for them at Ardwick, and Mr. Aspinall would fain have had his
fascinating daughter-in-law abide there always, instead of making his
house a mere convenience for visiting in town.

Stabling and other outhouses were attached, the gardens were well laid
out, there was a good quantity of grass land, all enclosed within a
high wall, and it lay away from the main road. Mr. Aspinall’s carriage
was a close one, for service as well as show. Mr. Laurence, on his
accession to his mother’s property and his wife’s dowry, added to other
extravagances not a like carriage, but a new Tilbury, and astonished
the crowd by driving tandem.

Whitsuntide is the great annual festival of Manchester. It is the race
week, the time when the Sunday-school children dress in their best to
walk in procession and have excursional treats into the country. In
1823 Whitsunday fell on the 18th of May, when the hawthorn scented the
air, and cherry-blossom snowed on the carriage which Mr. Aspinall sent
for his daughter-in-law, that she might witness from his drawing-room
windows the interesting spectacle on the Green, and preside over the
hospitalities of his open house during the week. At that time, as now,
Monday was the day set apart for the children of all the Established
Church Schools to assemble at the Collegiate Church, sing anthems,
and thence defile in long procession six abreast, attended by their
respective clergy and teachers, until they reached the Green, where the
girls in their white caps and frocks were ranged within the enclosure
of the Pond, the boys forming a dark cordon around them, and the crowd
a motley one beyond. And then from the multitudinous young throats
poured forth anthems of praise, in a volume of swelling harmony which
hushed to silence the listening birds above them.

Augusta, not in robust health, lay on a couch by the window and looked
on; her father-in-law watching her and anticipating her wants with the
homage of old world gallantry, for young Mrs. Aspinall was becoming an
important person in his eyes.

Nor was Laurence much less attentive. He had been on his best behaviour
for some time, and would scarcely let the wind of heaven blow too
roughly upon her.

At that period Manchester races were held on Kersall Moor, an extensive
tract of land generously set apart for the purpose by the owner, Miss
Byrom.

“The glass of fashion and the mould of form,” was the handsome man who
patted Augusta’s shoulders, and stooped down to kiss her, on Wednesday,
the first race day; but it was with something more than a shade of
anxiety she saw him draw on his buckskin gloves, take the long reins,
and mount his high Tilbury, with Bob beside him, and dash round the
lower end of the Green at a canter.

Evening came to verify her fears. Back from Kersall Moor came the
tandem and the tandem’s master, but the biped was _ebrius_. He was in
that stage of self-satisfied elation which a contradictory word would
change to fierceness, and the whim of the hour was to drive his wife
to Fallowfield, and show her how dexterous a whip he was, and that not
Ducrow could manage a tandem better than he.

It was in vain she or his father pleaded her delicate health, the
height of the vehicle, the shaking she would sustain; he laughed at
her fears, then fiercely insisted, and not daring to disobey, she was
hoisted to her perilous seat.

In much alarm, Mr. Aspinall mounted Bob on a saddle-horse to follow.
The roads were dotted with vehicles and people, the latter shouting and
singing, or muttering tipsy oaths, as the fortune of the day inclined
them. He proved his dexterity in guiding his far-off leader through all
intricacies, but so close did wheel often come to wheel, that Augusta’s
heart seemed to leap into her throat, and her teeth chattered, although
it was May.

After they turned off from the Stockport Road at Longsight, they “spun
along at a rattling pace,” as he said; but she had to hold by the rail
to keep her seat, notwithstanding which, at the sharp angle by Birch
Fold, the vehicle gave a lurch which almost pitched her off. At their
own gate there was an abrupt stoppage for opening, their return being
unexpected. Then the foremost horse refused to obey the rein and canter
up the drive. Laurence plied his whip, which did not mend the matter,
and but that Bob and the gardener were there to soothe the animals, and
lead them to the house, worse might have followed.

As it was, Mrs. Laurence Aspinall was half-dead with fear and the
shaking. She was lifted down and carried, almost insensible, into the
house. Cicily and one of the maids got her to bed, whilst Aspinall
himself, calling groom and gardener from the stables into the
drawing-room, sat down to have a drinking bout with _them_.

Presently Cicily put a white face in at the door, and beckoned forth
Bob, whom no drink seemed to affect, and sent him off as fast as four
legs could carry him, to bring back a doctor, and acquaint Mr. Aspinall
and the Ashtons that his young mistress was very ill.

In less time than might have been expected, Mr. Aspinall’s carriage
brought to the Grange that gentleman, Mrs. Ashton, and Mr. Windsor, a
young Quaker practitioner from Piccadilly. A competent nurse from the
Infirmary was on the box.

There was no doubt she was in a critical state, but the immediate
danger was warded off; and though Augusta was not able to leave her
room in the interim, the scent of June’s roses came in at the open
windows before her baby was born, when penitent Laurence went into
raptures over wife and son.

For two or three days he hovered about the house, nervously anxious
lest any sound should disturb the young mother. He saw that every
domestic was shod with list, stopped the great hall clock, and had the
rolled-up carpets laid down on the polished oaken stairs.

Four days sufficed. On the fifth he rode off to town on Black Ralph on
a pretence of business; but very little did Cannon Street see of Mr.
Laurence that day. With every acquaintance he met was a glass to be
drunk, “to wet the child’s head.” At the Scramble Club, where he dined,
he paid for two or three bottles of wine, also “to wet the child’s
head,” according to the practice of the club. Riding home, he stopped
at the George and Dragon, Ardwick Green, and went through the same
process.

There some one remarked that he was too drunk to stand, much less ride
home, when he swore with an oath that he would show them how he could
ride; he and Black Ralph were equal to anything. And then amid roars of
derisive laughter he flung out another oath, and laid a wager which was
regarded merely as the boasting of drunken braggadocio.

He had kissed his wife’s pale lips on leaving in the morning, and
she faintly implored him to be home early—she did not dare add, “and
sober.” Towards nightfall she began to listen for his return. Hour
after hour went by, and at one in the morning she heard the great
gates and the door thrown open for their impatient master by the
watching servants, and the strong steed come tearing up the gravel—ay,
and on up the broad, flat steps, clattering through the great oaken
hall, and, urged with whip and spur, and a madman’s voice, mount the
freshly-carpeted stairs, cross the landing at a stride, and driving
back the affrighted nurse, enter that sick chamber where, with her
baby at her side, lay the fair young wife, gasping and shrinking with
terror, and there stand with quivering flanks and panting nostrils, as
the reckless rider on his back cried in exultation—

“By G—d, I’ve done it!”

He had done it! No matter what noise accompanied the removal of horse
and rider, the wife, whom in his sober hours he professed to love so
passionately lay insensible to sight or sound, and wakened only to a
morrow of delirium.



CHAPTER THE FORTY-FIFTH.

WOUNDS INFLICTED AND ENDURED.


The spark lies cold in the flint until it is struck; and Ellen had not
believed her quiet husband capable of so much passionate indignation as
burst from him on the receipt (at Sheffield) of the details just given.

“Brute! ruffian!” burst from his lips, as the letter he had crushed
in his grasp fell to the floor; and with a stamp he rose to his feet,
pressed one hand across his knitted brows, and paced the dingy carpet
from end to end in a state of restless perturbation, his wrath finding
vent in epithets and invectives foreign to his tongue.

“Whatever is the matter, Jabez, love?” Ellen asked in amazement.

“Oh, Ellen, dear! that brute Aspinall——” He could get no further.
Feeling choked his utterance.

She picked up the crumpled letter, and with almost equal exasperation
and pain made herself mistress of its contents, in her womanly
indignation and love for her cousin losing sight of her husband’s
excessive emotion.

Jabez left his journey unfinished, and drove back home with all speed.
Ellen shared with Mrs. Ashton and her own mother the anxious watch in
that large dim room, where the favourite of the family tossed her head
from side to side, and muttered incoherent words.

In the sudden emergency, Bob the old groom’s recommendation of his own
daughter as a wet-nurse for the poor frail baby passed without cavil.
Not until long afterwards was it known that Sarah Mostyn was the last
woman to have entered that house, and on such a footing.

One month, two months wore out before Augusta rallied, and Mr. Windsor,
whose medical creed was to “let nature take its course,” pronounced
her out of danger, and fit for the removal contemplated by her
friends, and resisted by Laurence. Double doors, however, could not
exclude outer sounds, and so long as she shrank and shuddered at every
crunch on the gravel, every echo of his raised voice, recovery was
retarded. So the elder Mr. Aspinall, exasperated with his son, and most
solicitous for the welfare of his son’s charming wife, added his dictum
to that of the doctor, offered his own carriage for her conveyance, and
threatened to disinherit Laurence if he interfered.

Once in her childhood’s home she amended rapidly, but with increasing
strength came maternal yearnings for her infant, still in charge of
the wet nurse at Fallowfield. A hackney-coach was sent to bring Sarah
Mostyn with the child to its mother; but not a step would the nurse
budge. She had no orders from her master, and the master paid her
wages, and she, “shouldna tak’ orders from annybody else.” Messages
were sent, and notes were written to Laurence, which he tore to shreds;
but he kept away from his wife, and kept back the child.

At length she pined so much for her “dear babe,” that Mr. Ashton and
Jabez together sought Laurence out in one of his haunts (a tavern near
Cockpit Hill), to prevail on him to let Augusta have her boy with her.

“Mrs. Aspinall herself deserted her child,” he replied, all the more
haughtily that Jabez was Mr. Ashton’s seconder. “When Mrs. Aspinall
thinks fit to return home to her maternal and wifely duties, she will
find the nursery door open, and her son in trustworthy care. A true
wife’s place is by her husband’s hearth.”

“Yes, sir, when the husband is a true man,” replied Jabez, with
decision.

“And who dares to say I am not a true man?” retorted Laurence boldly.

“I do!” promptly answered the other. “No true man would have imperilled
his wife’s life by a reckless drive in the dark night in a tandem
Tilbury! Only a reckless madman or a ruffian would have forced a horse
into a wife’s sick-chamber, to drive her delirious with terror!”

“And pray, sir,” haughtily responded the other, “how long has Mrs.
Aspinall made _you_ her confidant?”

“I have not the honour of Mrs. Aspinall’s confidence,” answered
Jabez sturdily, looking him full in the face; “such facts are
trumpet-tongued.”

“Just so,” put in Mr. Ashton, drawing his arm through that of his
junior partner. “And the fact that Augusta shrinks at your name has
spoken so loudly to us that if ever she sits on your hearth again it
won’t be with my consent.—Come away, Clegg.”

After this declaration, Aspinall changed his tactics. He wrote to his
wife, requesting her return; then entreating it; and finally went in
person to beseech her to “come back,” vowing to “atone for the past
with the devotion of a life.”

The young mother yearned for her babe, the tender-hearted wife could
not resist the appeal of the husband whom with all his faults she
yet loved; and, regardless of the previsions of her mother, or the
entreaties of her father, she allowed him to drive her home again to
the Grange.

Her first thought was the nursery. There she found, in addition to her
own boy, drawing its sustenance from the nurse’s breast, a well-dressed
child, some two years old, playing with a wooden milkmaid-rattle on
the rug. Something in the child’s face and auburn curls made her ask,
“Sarah, whose child is that?”

“Mine. Whose should it be?” was the pert answer; and the boldness
of the woman’s manner checked further inquiry. But Augusta’s heart
had received a shock which shook the pedestal on which her idol sat
enthroned.

For a short pace Laurence kept terms with his wife; and before her
father or strangers he was her most devoted slave; but she underwent a
species of slow torture in secret.

She soon found that Sarah Mostyn was mistress of the house as well as
of the nursery, and that Sarah Mostyn’s child was of as much importance
as her own baby-boy.

Then he filled the Grange with his riotous associates, and compelled
his wife to do the honours of his table, though their oaths and
conversation overpowered her with disgust. And if one flushed with
wine, or more bold than the rest, paid her a compliment, or looked too
warm an admiration, Laurence was sure to find his way to her side with
his common undertone threat—“D—— n you, madam, you shall smart for
this!”—a threat always accompanied with sly pinches, which left their
marks beneath her sleeves. Then, straightway, “my dear,” or “my love”
would be asked, in the blandest of tones, to sing a song, play a rondo,
or perform some act of courtesy for the very guest who had excited his
jealousy.

They had few lady visitors. The neighbourhood was remote from town,
and sparsely inhabited. Mr. Laurence Aspinall’s reputation was as a
yellow flag to warn gentlewomen who had daughters or husbands to lose
against close intimacy with their neighbours of the Grange. Pitying
the isolation of one so formed to adorn society, Mr. Aspinall gave
mixed parties at Ardwick Green, in the name of Mrs. Laurence, when the
splendour of her attire and the assiduous attention of her husband
set rumour to contradict rumour. But save on an occasional family
gathering, she saw few of her own sex at Fallowfield.

And her position in her own home was rendered intolerable by the
continued presence of Sarah Mostyn, who at first familiar, then
impertinent, had become at last openly defiant.

It was not until all efforts to keep the nurse in her proper place had
failed, that Augusta appealed to Laurence to discharge her, the woman
having refused to take a dismissal from anyone but her master.

“Tchut!” said he, “I’ll soon settle that business!” and forthwith
stalked to the nursery, whence his voice was heard in loud command; but
the result was not the woman’s removal, only a temporary submission,
to be followed by fresh rebellion, and the confirmation of Augusta’s
worst suspicions. How often did the aggrieved wife then recall her
thoughtless declaration to her mother, that her “husband’s heart
must hold _her_ and _her only_,” not even business to share in its
possession! And how thankful she would have been to have had no rival
then but business! She was finding the bed she had made for herself a
wofully hard one; but she did not succumb readily, she had high spirits
and a buoyant nature, and would hardly admit to herself how much she
suffered or how great a mistake she had made.

But Cicily, that most faithful of faithful followers, cognisant of her
mistress’s wrongs long before her mistress, paid Sarah Mostyn off in
her own coin on various occasions, and took care that through one means
or other the Ashtons should know what a life their darling led.

Amongst his other little peculiarities Mr. Laurence was an epicure; and
one of his favourite tid-bits was that spongy lining of a goose’s frame
known as the _soul_. It chanced at a family dinner, rather more than a
year after Augusta’s return home, that a fine stubble goose formed part
of the bill of fare; and Cicily, who had long owed him a grudge for his
heartless treatment of her young mistress, determined to pay him off,
and expose him before the whole company. A good caterer for a dainty
palate, Cicily knew her power and privileges, but in this case she
overshot the mark.

One of the accomplishments of that generation was dexterous carving,
and Laurence prided himself on being able to dismember a large fowl
without once shifting his fork. The goose was set before himself, and
duly helped, but, lo! when his knife would fain have extracted his
favourite morsel it scraped bare bones.

The flat bell-rope was pulled violently. Cicily was summoned, and
Cicily, in clean linen cap and apron, stood in the doorway curtseying
respectfully.

“What have you done with the soul of this goose?” he demanded, in a
tone of suppressed passion.

Cicily came a step or two forward with an aspect of marvellous
innocence. “Eh, sir, it’s not a goose, it’s a gonder, and _gonders have
no souls_.”

Scarcely an individual present but took the covert inuendo, and glances
were exchanged across the board; but the look he shot at the woman
as, incapable of speech, he waved her to retire, was one never to be
forgotten, so much demoniac wrath was concentrated therein.

From the time when Jabez was acknowledged on ’Change as a Manchester
man, was admitted into Manchester “society,” and had absolutely become
a member of the same family as his son, Mr. Aspinall punctiliously
invited him with his wife; and Laurence, with widely different
feelings, followed suit.

It was not until after the noble exploit to which Augusta so nearly
fell a sacrifice that Mr. Clegg could be induced so far to listen
to Ellen’s desire for conciliation, “now that they were all of one
family,” as to accept one of these invitations. After that event he was
of Mrs. Ashton’s mind that, “as offenders never pardon,” Augusta needed
a friend to watch over her. So he left his books, and his brushes,
and his schemes for the class amongst whom he had been reared, and
(believing his growing affection for his wife, and the babe she had
borne him, a sufficient guarantee to his own heart for his own good
faith,) when the Aspinalls next invited, he accepted.

As previously stated, Augusta had not dropped into tame submission
all at once; her old wilfulness would have way at times; and the
light shafts of her satire were frequently aimed with effect against
her recalcitrant lord. More than once Jabez had averted disastrous
consequences by checking her vivacity ere it went too far. But never
had he been so thankful for his self-appointed guardianship as on the
night when Cicily thought to pay back her darling’s wrongs.

To his surprise and pleasure, Ben Travis, just returned from the
Continent, was of the party. He had not yet called on the family in
Oldham Street, and Jabez never asked him wherefore. The cousins had
much to talk over, and whilst Laurence Aspinall was pouring wine on his
wrath, they discussed a project in which Jabez took an interested part,
and which eventuated the following year in the Manchester Mechanics’
Institution. But through all their discussion Jabez never once lost
sight of Laurence, and from his excessively polite manner to her he
augured ill for Augusta when the restraining presence of friends was
removed. He communicated his fears to Travis and when the good-byes
were said, and the various conveyances rolled out of the great gates,
a fee to Luke the gardener, who was also gatekeeper, kept them open. A
whispered word was sufficient for those who had seen the look Laurence
directed across the dinner-table from Cicily to his wife, and who knew
the character and disposition of the man.

Mr. Travis’s gig and the Ashton’s hackney-coach were kept in waiting
close at hand, Mrs. Ashton and Ellen, well wrapped up within, waiting
anxiously for they knew not what.

Back towards the closed house went Mr. Ashton and the cousins, treading
carefully over the gravel. There was a flagged footway round the
building, and from the windows of dining and drawing-rooms lights were
still streaming. The last owner had lowered the middle window of the
drawing-room as a door of access to the lawn.

As if by accident the curtains had been dragged a little aside in each
apartment, and now there were watchers at the apertures. The elder Mr.
Aspinall had made an excuse and retired to bed early. Augusta, with a
shawl wrapped round her, sat weeping on a sofa in the drawing-room,
afraid to go to bed. High words had evidently passed whilst those
outside had made their arrangements at the gate.

Presently, into the dining-room sauntered Laurence, with his arm round
the shoulders of Sarah Mostyn the shameless nurse. They sat down to the
supper table; he poured out wine into a goblet, and they drank from the
same glass, he fed her with delicacies, and kissed and caressed her
with an assured familiarity which told it was no new experience.

Long they lingered drinking and dallying, and the watchers might have
thought no danger need be apprehended. Suddenly a word of the woman’s,
like a match to petroleum, set the whole man ablaze. He rushed from the
room with a loud oath, the woman after him, apparently in alarm. The
movement her friends made outside in gaining the other window caused
Augusta to raise her beautiful head, and at that moment her husband
stood before her, brandishing his cavalry sabre, and with his eyeballs
glaring, fiercely vociferating, “I’ll teach you madam, to set my
servants to insult _me_!” he made a fearful slash at her.

As she sprang aside with a terrified shriek, the old woodwork of the
glass-door gave way, and before the tipsy madman could recover his
guard to strike a fresh blow, his sabre was wrenched from him, and
himself struggling in the grasp of three powerful men, his own gardener
being one.

Poor Mr. Ashton’s care was his stricken child, whose white shoulders,
bathed in blood, were washed by a father’s tears. Thankful then was
Jabez to have been at hand, and on the alert, with so powerful an ally
as Travis; thankful to have saved Augusta’s life at any sacrifice of
personal feeling; and only himself could tell what his presence under
that roof cost him.

Even Laurence had no inkling of it; the marriage of Jabez had closed
his jealous eyes. But now, finding in his old opponent an unseen
watcher over his wife—her defender when he had least expected—his
baffled rage was something terrible to look upon. He fought,
struggled, vociferated, threatened, and foamed at the mouth; and Mr.
Aspinall, coming thither in his dressing-gown, aroused by the uproar,
could barely master his indignation and disgust as he ordered the
men-servants, crowding in half-dressed, to “help to bind that murderous
maniac down!”

It was well, too, that Mrs. Ashton and Ellen were close at hand, and a
vehicle ready to despatch for a surgeon, for Augusta needed all their
care.

Before three days were over there was a little coffin in the house,
holding a still-born child, and there was a young mother, with a
plaistered shoulder, lying, white as her pillow, in a state of coma.

Dr. Windsor having exercised his best skill, as was his wont left
nature to do the rest, and youth and nature, between them, did their
work effectually.

Fain would Mr. Ashton have removed his child once and for all. He
offered to set up a carriage for her, if she would but leave her
husband, and seek a legal separation, insisting that she owed a duty
to herself, as well as to her husband. Mr. Aspinall himself begged
that she would take up her abode with him, at Ardwick, if only for her
own security. He had ceased to find excuses for his son, and his son’s
charming wife stood high in his esteem.

But Laurence had been beforehand, and with plausible promises and
penitential tears, and an adroit parade of her little Willie, also in
tears “for mamma,” won her over to pardon, and to give him another
trial; and not all Mr. Ashton’s eloquence, nor Mrs. Ashton’s proverbial
battery, could win her from her decision.

“My dear mother,” said she, “remember you told me ‘what could not be
cured must be endured,’ and that ‘as I made my bed so must I lie.’
It is a long lane, mother, that has never a turn, I have heard you
say many a time; and who knows but Laurence may take a turn now, and
reform? At all events, it is my duty to give him a fair trial, and keep
my own wayward nature in check, so as not to provoke him; and I must
not leave Willie alone with that woman. I think Mr. Clegg would say I
am right.”

I am afraid she overrated Mr. Clegg’s magnanimity much as she overrated
her wild husband’s promised reformation, for her decision struck a pang
in the heart of Jabez, little dreamed of by Ellen. Indeed, it cost him
a sore struggle to subdue his concern for Augusta within the bounds of
duty to his own wife, whose many virtues were gradually winning their
way into his heart, and towards whom his attention never relaxed.



CHAPTER THE FORTY-SIXTH.

THE MOWER WITH HIS SCYTHE.


Years went by—Laurence had promised to remove Sarah Mostyn, but the
woman laughed, refused to stir, and he let her remain—a thorn in his
wife’s side—training up the boy she had nursed, and whom he idolised,
to scorn and jeer at his own mother; whilst her red-haired girl ran
wild about the place as a young hare. He broke out from time to time,
and his wife was the sufferer; he horse-whipped her, shot at her, and
tortured her in every way that malignity could devise.

No wonder that so many tiny coffins of immature babes should be carried
from the gates of the Fallowfield Grange. No wonder if Augusta began to
compare her lot with Ellen’s, and to repent her scorn of a true heart
because of its plebeian origin.

Meanwhile, the firm of Ashton, Chadwick, and Clegg prospered beyond
expectation, the business tact and integrity of the junior partner
alike aiding the extension and stability of the firm. To make way
for its expansion more warehouse room was required. The Ashtons,
not without a sigh for old association, relinquished their house,
and removed to another close at hand in George Street, little less
commodious, however much Kezia might grumble at it. This was when Ben
Travis, lacking employment for time, mind, and money, offered them to
the growing establishment, and his influence as “Co.” was accepted.
This combination of capital and energy, as Jabez had foreseen, worked
wonders for them commercially, enabling them to tide over the trade
distress of 1826 with security and advantage. Long before then Jabez
had offered to pay Mrs. Clowes her loan, with interest; but she told
him she was going to render up her account where, not the coin she had,
but that which she had given away, would be put to her credit; and so,
as at first proposed, she made it over to her little god-son, Joshua
Clegg, before she was gathered to the great garner.

But the universal mower reaped a heavier harvest in 1828, when he swept
his keen scythe over the bed of the river.

In 1822 Mr. Ashton (one of the first promoters of the Chamber of
Commerce), notwithstanding his advancing years, took an active part
in the formation of a New Quay Company, for the better navigation of
the river Irwell. The company was established, quays were constructed,
warehouses erected, boats built, traffic was extended, and the town
generally benefited.

In the February of 1828 the axe, the adze, and the hammer made a busy
noise in the boat-building yard of the company, and sail-makers were
active with their needles; for a flat, destined to convey cargoes of
merchandise to and from Liverpool, was to be ready for the launch on
the 26th, a day destined to send a thrill of horror tingling through
the veins of Manchester, so sad was the catastrophe it closed upon.

The launch of the _Emma_ was an event in the annals of the company,
and of the town; consequently a large number of spectators assembled,
a goodly proportion being admitted to the yard to take part in the
ceremony, and go with the flat on her trial trip under Captain Gaudy.

Mrs. Ashton, saying, “that when the cat’s away the mice will play,”
had decided on remaining at home to watch the mice, but Mr. Ashton
compensated himself by taking Ellen and her two eldest boys,
leaving baby with its grandma; Jabez, detained by business in the
counting-house, promising to overtake them before they were on board.
Mr. Aspinall, too, was there, and on his arm was his son’s wife, and
Laurence, with his boy Willie, close beside them. He was too jealous of
the admiration she excited, to permit her to go into company, even with
his father, unless he had also his own eye upon her, especially where
there was a chance of meeting Jabez Clegg. He brought the boy for a
treat.

It was quite a gala-day, and as the pleasant company mounted the deck,
peered into the cabin, and chatted gaily to one another, they little
thought to how many that would be a launch into eternity.

The boat, a large flat, fully rigged, painted white above the
water-line, and black below, with sails set and flags flying, rested in
well-greased cradles, her head down; the shipwrights stood ready with
their daggers; painters with their cans and brushes to dab her sides
as she slid past them; a band upon the quay played lively tunes, and
(fatal mischance) the people on deck flocked to one side to listen.
The sponsor, a Miss Grimes, with her sister and our friends, advanced
to the bows The word was given; the ready daggers struck away the
shores; the boat began to move; Miss Grimes caught firmly the bottle
(suspended by a ribbon), and shattered it upon the vessel, proclaiming,
with that baptism of wine, the boat was henceforth the _Emma_. Hurrahs
and exclamations followed. The bows touched the water, which first
splashed the faces, then lifted from their feet the christeners and the
Ashton party. The flat had _dipped too deeply_, it heeled over on her
_crowded_ side, and _sank_ with her living cargo clinging and fettering
each other in the swirling waters, whilst shrieking spectators looked
on helpless from bridge and bank, watching others braver and bolder, or
better skilled, rush to the rescue to their own risk.

Who shall picture the horror and confusion of that moment, when some
scores of holiday people—men, women, children—were precipitated at one
fell swoop into the water, shrieking and clinging to one another with
that tenacity of grip proverbial with the drowning?

The bridge, the Old Quay, the open space in front of the New Bailey
Prison—railed off at an elevation far above the stream—the steep steps,
and the towing-path beneath, were all lined with spectators, though
the fatal launch was made from a yard lower down the river on the
Manchester side. (The New Bailey is in Salford).

As the vessel struck the ground, shuddering from stem to stern, before
turning over on her side, and the final catastrophe was imminent,
Laurence (sober for once) snatched his darling boy up in his arms,
whispered a hasty word of instruction and confidence, and, regardless
of aught besides, sprang with him into the water in the contrary
direction, far as possible beyond the eddy and suction, and keeping
clear of the struggling wretches who were pulling each other down, swam
with him to the towing-path. But not until he had placed Willie under
safe charge, beyond danger from the scurrying throng, did he hasten
back to attempt the rescue of wife or father; and then neither was to
be seen.

Mr. Aspinall had been an able swimmer in his day, and made a bold
effort for self-preservation; but cramp seizing his gouty limbs, he was
one of the first to disappear and perish, though boats and swimmers had
put out to the general rescue.

It was vain to search for individuals; though well was his son’s
prowess tested that day; more than one drowning wretch he clutched
from behind by clothes or hair, and urged forward to the bank, where
the Humane Society’s men, with ropes and grapnels, were ably seconded
by volunteer humanity, and strong hands were outstretched to haul the
helpless up.

Ben Travis had waited for Jabez, detained in the warehouse by courtesy
to Mr. Gregson, the buyer for Messrs. Leaf of London, and the two,
hurrying to make up for lost time, only reached the New Quay with
Nelson at their heels as the hurrahs died out in appalling screams, and
the waters of the Irwell closed over all the twain held dearest in life.

With the celerity of light, coats were doffed and shoes cast off, and
the two leaped from the stone quay in hope and dread, but the good dog
was before them, its teeth in a child’s coat, swimming to the shore.
Almost as Jabez touched the water, a sinking woman clutched his legs.
With a plunge he freed himself, then catching at her long hair, towed
her behind him to the side, and swam back to seek: and save his own
wife and little ones, if that were possible.

A floating scarf, a mass of matchless brown curls, a hand and arm
above the water, and Jabez knew that Augusta Aspinall was sinking
there before him. A few strokes brought him to the spot; he dived; a
youth was clinging to her shirts, and held her down. One or both must
have drowned. With a blow which went to his heart, he freed her, and,
catching her beneath the armpit, held her well from him as he made for
shore. To the Humane Society’s men he yielded her—so far gone, the men
shook their heads over the lovely woman, as though she were beyond
help. But they bore the dripping lady to the sail-room close at hand,
whilst Jabez, taking the precaution to secure a rope to his waist,
plunged boldly into the midst of the entangled mass in quest of his own.

It was a vain search; he brought one strange child, and then another to
bank, and then a man; but he was again laid hold of when his strength
was exhausted; and only for the precautionary rope, he would have given
to the greedy river the life Simon Clegg had saved from it.

Travis had the good fortune to rescue Mr. Ashton, but he had been some
time in the water, and the old man was far spent; but there was no
trace of Ellen or her boys, even though he dived close by the sunken
flat, and brought up lifeless bodies in their stead.

Jabez and he could only hope some other of the brave men, putting their
own lives in peril, had saved them.

The governor of the gaol had opened his house doors, the recovered dead
were carried into the gaol itself, the sail-maker’s room was crowded,
every tavern near was filled, but no trace was found of Ellen or their
sons, and Jabez was like one distraught.

He was but one agitated atom in that seething, surging, frantic crowd,
where women shrieked for their husbands, parents for their children,
children for their parents; where passing strangers threw themselves
into the water to save life, and lost their own; where ignorance lifted
the hapless by the heels “to pour the water out” and extinguished the
last spark of vitality; and where yelping dogs astray were caught and
slaughtered, that medical skill might transfuse the warm blood of
the lesser animal into the veins of the human, as a last resource to
restore suspended animation. Even gallant old Nelson narrowly escaped
falling a sacrifice to the surgeons.

Jabez entered the room where Augusta Ashton was lying, to all
appearance, dead—ordinary means of resuscitation having failed; and a
surgeon was about so to operate on her from a bleeding spaniel on the
ground. Jabez shrank with a strange loathing; in an instant bared his
arm to the doctor’s lancet; and if he did not give his life to serve
her, as he had once said, he gave his life’s blood to save her; and as
the warm fluid passed from his quick veins to hers, he saw the blue
quivering lids tremble, light pass into the brown eyes, breath part
the blue lips once more; and from the depths of his anguished heart
he thanked God as a faint “Jabez” indicated recognition as well as
returning animation.

He had restored a wife to thankless Aspinall; but who should restore to
him the darling boys who had crept about his knees and round his heart,
and the good wife who had won a place there, in spite of fate, by her
own patient, but intense, love?

The _Emma_ was raised and floated, so little damaged that she was
speedily ready for use, and continued so for many years. In her cabin
were found the remains of Ellen and her sons, where the childish
curiosity of the elder one had doubtless led all three; but they were
raised from the water only to be committed to the earth, and covered up
out of sight and hearing for evermore; and never did Jabez know fully
all she had become to him until he stood with Travis by the side of
an open grave, and heard the clods rattle on the coffin-lid. She was
all as one then to the man who had worshipped her, and the man she had
worshipped; and though the babe she had left behind was nearer to the
one, it would be hard to say to which little Nelly was the dearest in
the aftertime.

Including the bodies found beneath the flat and those laid out in the
gaol and elsewhere for inquest, thirty-three lives were sacrificed on
the altar of the _Emma_; and of these must be reckoned the brave men
who cast their lives away to rescue others.

Among the early saved were the Captain, Miss Grimes, and her sister,
the two latter being hastily conveyed home in a private carriage
(mayhap Mr. Aspinall’s), with coats and cloaks wrapped around their
saturated garments.

Good, kind, genial Mr. Ashton never recovered from the effects of his
long immersion. He was a man far advanced in years, and the shock was
too much for him. He hobbled about the warehouse, snuff-box in hand, a
few months, and then dropped asleep in his easy-chair after a game of
cribbage with Jabez—never to wake again.

And then the excitement and agitation consequent on the loss of his
dear Ellen and her romping boys having brought on Mr. Chadwick a fresh
attack of paralysis, which left him still more helpless (though he
survived many years to pet and spoil Ellen’s baby-girl), Mrs. Ashton,
lonely in her large house, proposed that her sister’s family (Jabez
included) should join her in George Street; but when she would have
said “the more the merrier,” the words died on her lips. Who were they
but the survivors of two wrecked households?

After a little hesitation the offer was accepted, and the whole
family gathered in their shorn proportions under one roof. But there
was another proposition from another quarter, to which there was
considerably more demur. Mrs. Hulme, in a warm grey-duffel cloak, for
the preservation of her new mourning, travelled from Whaley-Bridge, to
ask as a favour that baby Nelly should be committed to her care.

“You see, Mrs. Chaddick, th’ poor little babby’ll thrive better yond
than here i’ th’ smooak; an’ aw’d fain do summat for Mester Clegg, he
have done so much fur feyther an——.”

Jabez interrupted her.

“Hush! Mrs. Hulme. I owe life and all that life has given to your
father and yourself. What little I have done in return has been but
dust in the balance. Yet as it is your desire, and I know baby would
be best in your hands, if grandmother will consent to part with her,
Nelly and her nurse shall go back with you for the coming summer
months.”

And so, though parting with Ellen’s baby seemed parting with Ellen over
again, the little blossom went away to other blossoms on the healthy
hill-side.

Tom Hulme was no longer overlooker, but responsible manager at the
Whaley-Bridge Mill, with a good salary; and if Jabez gratefully traced
his fortune back to his cradle, so too did they trace their amended
position to the same source. But Bess more immediately referred to the
benefit Simon Clegg had derived from the Buxton Baths, whither Jabez
had sent him year after year, for the relief of his rheumatism, and
to his care of steadfast little Sim. He had first placed the crippled
lad with a doctor celebrated for his treatment of bodily deformities,
under whom the boy’s bent body had strengthened and straightened
considerably, and then removed him for education to the house of a
married clergyman, where there were no rough boys to torment him. Jabez
knew well what were the amenities of public schools.



CHAPTER THE FORTY-SEVENTH.

THE LAST ACT.


The catastrophe which deprived Laurence Aspinall of a father, and
had almost robbed him of a loving, patient wife, would have steadied
any man less reckless and selfish than he. But that he should rescue
strangers, and Jabez save his wife, and that through transfusion
the blood of Jabez should course through Augusta’s veins, formed a
combination of mischances beyond parallel, and the honey was changed to
gall. Nay, he was graceless enough to exclaim, in the first burst of
his jealous rage, “I would rather she had died outright than have that
fellow triumph in her restoration through his means. D—— him!”

And yet there were times when in his uxorious fondness he wholly
persuaded himself, and half persuaded her, that his very extravagances
arose from excess of love!

His fancied wrongs culminated when first the will of his father, and
after a brief period that of Augusta’s father, were read and proved.

The former set forth that, disgusted with the ungentleman-like excesses
of his son, and convinced that his course of lavish extravagance would
end in penury, he had determined to settle on his son’s wife, Augusta
Aspinall, for her sole use and benefit, the house and premises on
Ardwick Green, with all therein contained, together with a sufficient
sum in the funds to maintain a befitting state; in the event of her
decease, the reversion to pass to any child or children she had or
might hereafter bear to his son Laurence. To him he left the residue
of his means, and the old business in Cannon Street, with a charge to
apply himself to merchandise.

The latter will, though equally stringent, was a much more prolix
affair. After a number of legacies, of which Jabez came in for one,
Mr. Ashton bequeathed to his wife all other properties whatsoever he
died possessed of, together with half his share in the firm of Ashton,
Chadwick, Clegg, and Co.; the other half to his beloved daughter,
limiting the annual sum she was to draw from the firm, and which was in
nowise to pass into the hands of her depraved husband; and Jabez Clegg
and Benjamin Travis were appointed executors for the due performance of
its provisions.

Imagine the excitement and jealous fury of Laurence Aspinall on thus
being set aside even by his own father and superseded by his wife;
and as if that were not sufficient degradation, to have Jabez Clegg,
whose charity-school face yet bore the impress of his foot, set as his
wife’s executor, to dole out what he called a “pittance” where he had
anticipated a fortune!

It so happened that the early duties of his executorship called Jabez
once or twice unexpectedly to Fallowfield, and that on each occasion
the master of the mansion was from home.

It might be that the river had washed the roses from Augusta’s cheeks
so effectually that her complexion had never regained its tone; or it
might be that her skin looked white in contrast with the blackness of
her bombazine and crape; certain it was that Jabez was struck with the
pallor of her countenance, and his inquiry, “Are you not well, Mrs.
Aspinall?” was tinctured with alarm.

As a light flush tinged her cheek, then faded away again, and she
received him with a timid indecision very unlike her former girlish
freedom, a sense of her almost supernal loveliness brought something of
the old ache into his heart, and out of respect for himself and her, he
hurried over his business, and having obtained the signatures for which
he came, mounted his gig and drove back to town, haunted by look, and
voice, and manner.

Yet in the integrity of his own heart he had no conception that her
embarrassment was the result of fear—fear of the interpretation her
jealous madman of a husband should put on so unwonted a visit.

He thought he saw a smile of malice in the corners of the mouth of the
bold woman who met him in the hall, and nodded to him so freely as he
passed her on his way out; but no prescient spirit whispered in his
ear that his twenty minutes’ visit on absolute business would furnish
envy and jealousy with a pretext for foul-mouthed slander, for coarse
vituperation, for the use of a whip, and for calumnious accusations
which cut deeper than its lash.

Cicily, who intervened to save her mistress, might have conveyed some
inkling of this to Mrs. Ashton, but Augusta absolutely forbade her
sympathetic servant’s interference.

“You would do no good, Cicily,” she said; “the evil is beyond earthly
remedy; you would only distress my dear mother to no purpose, and she
has suffered too much on my account already. It cannot last for ever!”

On the next occasion Jabez was accompanied by his joint-executor, but
even that fact did not save Augusta from her husband’s wrath, and his
vile aspersions went far to drive out the last lingering sentiment of
affection or regard she had for him. But she clung to her child, and
that bound her to her home and him whom in an evil hour she had chosen;
though tears fell bitterly on Willie’s curly head, when he, like his
father, gave her back blows for kisses. And if at times her conscience
smote her for her haughty repulse of Jabez by the stair-foot window at
Carr Cottage, what wonder? Had not Laurence himself scored his rejected
rival’s name on her heart with his braces and whip-lash?

She shut the obtrusive memory out with a shudder, and, dropping on her
knees, prayed earnestly for strength to bear and to forbear.

Yet much of the cruelty of Laurence at this time arose from another
source than causeless jealousy. He had been living far beyond his
private means, and was greatly involved. He had calculated on laying
his hand on a good round sum, and was disappointed. In order, however,
to raise the needful, he sold his father’s old-established concern
to their head clerk, far below its value. On the Fallowfield estate
his friend Barret held a mortgage; and had it been possible, he would
similarly have disposed of Augusta’s possessions. Here, however, he was
doubly baffled, and he turned on her as the primary cause.

The old law which preserved the woman’s absolute right over properties
legally settled upon herself, by strange anomaly did not secure to her
one guinea of the coin those properties produced.

Well did Jabez watch over Augusta’s interest, but his heart ached
as he saw her sad countenance, and the greedy triumphant eyes of
ever-present Laurence when her dividends were paid in. For, before
his very face, Laurence laid his hand upon the money, to squander
it as he had squandered his own on Sarah Mostyn and other dissolute
companions, leaving his wife without so much as would purchase a
pocket-handkerchief.

Then, lest she should make her wrongs known, he kept her a close
prisoner at Fallowfield, and for all the pleasure she had of her
Ardwick mansion, she might as well have been without it.

No wonder if each fresh act of personal violence snapped some bond
between them, until the only one link to bind her to life and her
husband was her boy Willie; whilst the only human trait of Laurence
was his fondness for his son, whom he was rapidly ruining with false
indulgence, as he himself had been ruined.

It was customary, when the hay-making season came round, for Laurence
to gather such friends as his wife or he retained—the married with
their children—for a frolic in the hay-fields, and the bringing home
the last waggon-load in triumph to crown or inaugurate a feast.

On these occasions he had the grace or the diplomacy to keep Sarah
Mostyn in the background, though she flaunted boldly enough about the
house in the presence of his wife, and her child mingled with the
children.

The harvest-home of 1831 was attended with the customary festivities,
Willie, a rough playmate, was half smothering Nelly Clegg in the hay,
or chasing the Walmsleys amongst the haycocks, until the last load was
ready, and then the boy insisted that he and his companions should be
mounted atop. Shouts and cheers announced their coming to the party in
the drawing-room; they came crowding to the windows, and the glass-door
being open, one or two sauntered out on to the flagged walk. Merrily
they came along the gravelled drive, under the hot sun, dreaming of
no danger, Willie clapping his hands and calling, “Look at us, papa,”
when, right in front of the drawing-room window, the pin which held the
body of the cart down, by some means became displaced, the cart tilted
up, and hay and children were sent flying.

Beyond a few bruises, none of the children were injured but one; they
had fallen amongst hay, or on the spongy lawn; but Willie, the one
jewel in the Aspinall casket pitched with his head on the flagged
pavement, and was killed on the spot.

Draw we the curtain over consternation and bereavement, and pass on to
results. If a change came over Laurence, it was not for the better. He
drank incessantly, became alternately moody and defiant, and added a
coping-stone to his offences by placing Sarah Mostyn at his table by
the side of his wife, and boldly avowing that her child was his child
also.

Then all the woman rose within Augusta, so long cowed and dispirited.
She left the table, and, the insult being repeated, again retired in
indignation.

Of the servants none had pitied her so much as Cicily, but for whom
communication with her friends had been cut off. Often had the former
waxed savage over indignities she could neither check nor prevent; but
in many little ways the faithful domestic was enabled to ameliorate the
condition of her mistress. Now that Mrs. Aspinall—more lovely in her
sad womanhood than in her brilliant girlhood—was virtually supplanted,
a prisoner under torture in her husband’s house, with no tie of
motherhood to bind her there, her old nurse, as the mouthpiece of Mrs.
Ashton and her aunt Chadwick, urged upon her once more the necessity
for legal separation, and she no longer turned a deaf ear.

When Jabez came to hand over the next quarter’s dividends Travis
accompanied him, and then Augusta, in the presence of both her
executors, demanded and claimed her right to a legal separation from
her husband.

Laurence taken by surprise, started to his feet, then, resuming his
seat, said, with a scowl and a contemptuous sneer—

“You had better obtain a divorce, madam, whilst you are about it. Mr.
Clegg will not object to the cost, if you can only be made Mrs. Clegg
by Act of Parliament.”

It was a cruel and uncalled-for sneer, and Travis, firing up, resented
it for his friend, who appeared dumbfounded by the suggestion.

“If she _had_ been Mrs. Clegg, sir, instead of Mrs. Aspinall, there
would have been no necessity now for the interference of friends for
her protection!”

“Of course not,” sneered Aspinall. “Mr. Clegg is the white hen that
never lays away; and now, having favoured you with one of Mrs. Ashton’s
pithy proverbs, perhaps, gentlemen, you will favour me by taking your
departure; this house and this lady are alike my property.”

The value he set upon the latter article of property was testified by
an immediate application of a horse-whip, so savagely applied that
even Bob, and Luke the gardener, drawn thither by Augusta’s screams,
wrenched the whip from him, and covered her escape, the latter
declaring he would “no longer stay an’ witness sich wark.”

To this man, who was also gatekeeper, Cicily crept at nightfall, and
offered him a goodly sum down, out of her own savings, promising a much
larger one from Mrs. Aspinall, with the offer of a new situation at
Ardwick, if he would only suffer her ill-used mistress to “get clear o’
that brute’s violence.”

The man, to his credit be it told, refused the money, but opened the
gate; and, when Laurence wakened from his sodden sleep at noon the next
day, wife, cook, and gardener were missing.

They three had walked to Ardwick, and once there, though Augusta
found sad havoc had been made in the place, all was her own, carriage
included, and the domestics in charge welcomed her with gladness.

Without waiting for even the show of a breakfast, Augusta hurried like
a frightened bird to her mother’s nest in George Street, where alone
she felt secure.

Jabez and Travis were summoned, and when Aspinall, recovering from his
stupor, sought his human property at Ardwick, he found the trustee
under his father’s will—a Mr. Lillie—holding the place for Augusta in
right of his trust. And in George Street he was refused admission, Mrs.
Ashton justifying her daughter’s flight with “self-preservation is the
first law of nature. A good Jack makes a good Jill. It is the last
straw breaks the camel’s back. If you sow the wind, you must reap the
whirlwind. He who beats his friend makes an enemy.”

He threatened, and she answered—

“Threatened folk live long. You had best, Mr. Aspinall, keep your
breath to cool your porridge. Augusta’s friends will defend her from
her only enemy. Pending separation _you_ see her no more.”

He never saw her more. The deed of separation was _sealed_ but never
signed.

With Augusta, all good angels seemed to have flown from Fallowfield.
In his demoniac passion, he strove to blacken her character, to find
himself met with laughter—his own life had been so chaste! Whilst, as
if to refute him, when she took refuge with her mother, Jabez deemed
it a point of honour to retreat. Accordingly he took up his temporary
abode with Travis, in delicacy towards her, and as a check upon
himself. No act, or thought, or word of his must give an evil tongue a
chance to foul that spotless woman with its slime.

In the midst of all this, Aspinall’s embarrassments increased.
Creditors pressed; writs showered in upon him; Barret foreclosed, and
men were put in possession of the Grange. He flew to his old remedy,
and it drove him mad. Lancaster Gaol for debtors loomed upon him.
From his chamber window he beheld a sheriff’s officer approach with
a warrant. His cavalry-pistols were in his dressing-room. A sharp
report rang through the house. Laurence Aspinall, in the prime of life,
delirious with drink, driven to desperation by his own profligate
excess, set a blood-red seal on the deed of separation.

       *       *       *       *       *

Ten years had passed from the partnership of Ashton, Chadwick, and
Clegg—years in which money well employed had multiplied itself.
Jabez was a rich man—a man of influence in the town; no longer the
amateur artist, but the patron of art, as well Henry Liverseege and
others could have told. As he had been one of the first promoters
and directors of the Manchester Mechanics’ Institution, so was he
now the supporter of the Royal Institution for the Advancement of
Art; and seeing farther than Mr. Ashton, who, as a member of the New
Quay Navigation Company, had opposed the Act for a railway between
Manchester and Liverpool, he threw his energy into the project, and
helped to carry it out, his cousin Travis working with him.

His widowerhood had cast a gloom over him for a time, but he left
himself small leisure for morbid reflection, and that was cheered by
the prattle of his little Nelly. Then came the crash at Fallowfield,
and when darkness set upon Aspinall and his deeds, light broke upon
the path of Jabez Clegg—at first a mere ray, but he worked the more
cheerfully in its light. It was not _hope_ for himself; it was merely a
joyful consciousness that there was hope and calm in the sky over the
head of their fluttering and wounded dove, and that Augusta could now
rest in peace with her mother in the house at Ardwick, with no dread of
a brutal husband bursting on them unawares.

He came and went as friend and executor, but it was long before it
flashed across his comprehension that the fearful ordeal through which
Augusta had passed but brought his old master’s daughter closer to him;
or that the prayer old Simon had taught was being answered to the full.
That which was “above rubies” had blessed his life and kept his human
heart warm whilst his “coast had enlarged;” he had been kept from the
evil of a wilful and capricious wife; and at last when he had resigned
all prospect of setting the purified pearl as a star on his own breast,
it dropped into his hand, unsought, unsolicited.

He had schooled his heart we know. He had married from a sense of duty
and grateful compassion. He was a faithful husband to a true wife, and
when he lost her he mourned her as a valued friend. But though all the
early love of his being had been kept alive and in a ferment by the
sufferings of Augusta, as an honourable man he suffered no word or look
to betray more than a friend’s sympathy. And still he kept as strong a
guard over himself, though the tragic end of Laurence had set her free
once more.

That last fatal act struck a sensitive chord in Augusta’s nature.
There was no exultation at release. For a time she lost sight of his
profligacy and cruelty, and accused herself of having hastened the
catastrophe by leaving him to his own unbridled will and the temptress
by his side. She wept for the handsome lover who had captivated her
young fancy; she mourned for the besotted soul gone to its account with
all its imperfections rampant.

“Let her alone,” said Mrs. Ashton to her sister; “the sharpest shower
wears itself out soonest; she will come to her senses long before her
crape is worn out.”

Mrs. Ashton was a true prophetess. For a long time the Fallowfield
tragedy cast a shadow over the house at Ardwick, and they led very
retired lives. Then harp and piano were heard once more, visitors were
admitted, and the mansion that Kezia and Cicily united in declaring
“worse than a nunnery,” grew bright and cheerful, though the widow’s
weeds were not cast aside. (Kitty had been laid under the mould whilst
Augusta was yet a bride).

Almost two years had elapsed. Suitors in plenty had been attracted by
the wealthy young widow’s many charms, her old admirer, Mr. Marsland,
among the rest, yet Mrs. Aspinall showed no disposition to change her
state; and the one man who had loved her longest and best was not of
the number at her feet. He scorned to importune now in his widowerhood
for the love withheld when they were both young. He counted age by
events, not years.

It was for Augusta _now_, she who had been taught by her very husband’s
taunts and sneers to think upon the true man she had set aside, to
think of him daily and hourly with rapidly strengthening attachment,
and think of him as one who had dropped her from the book of his
life for ever. Her whole thought was how could she become worthy the
love of such a man; yet every day and hour the fear pressed heavily
upon her that the quiet virtues of Ellen had driven her out of his
heart altogether. Of all her guests he was the one most welcome, most
desired, but he was the one she received with most reserve, the one
whose stay was briefest, whose visits fewest. “Business” appeared to
have more imperative claims on him than when he had his way to make;
and Augusta, whose sables had long since been cast aside, seemed to
wear them on her heart. The vivacity which had never wholly forsaken
her in all her trials, forsook her now—she grew listless and melancholy.

Meanwhile Captain Richard Chadwick had come home on half-pay to
brighten up the somewhat dull house in George Street, and comfort the
old folk—to say nothing of astonishing Sim and Nelly, with his long
yarns and adventures. Sim always spent part of his vacations with
Mr. Clegg, who well paid back to Bess all her early care of him. He
indulged the boy’s craving for books and pencils, first implanted by
himself and in which he saw the dawn of his future career. That which
in his own case had been repressed and subordinated to trade and
money-making, should not be so checked in that boy; and old Simon, to
whom the lad appeared a marvel, never ceased to pride himself on his
forecast in pronouncing Jabez a “Godsend.”

It was during the second summer of her widowhood, when Augusta
accompanied her mother (not a whit the less stately than of yore)
to Carr Cottage for the first time since her attempted elopement,
that the feeling of all she had cast from her, and all that she had
brought upon herself, all that might have been, and now never would
be, pressed heaviest upon her. She had gone thoughtfully over the old
ground, had trod the nettle-grown Lovers’ Walk, and sat down on the
open window-ledge at the stair-foot as once before, and wept tears of
penitent bitterness. How long she sat there she could not tell; she
was weeping for a life lost and a love rejected. As once before, the
voice of Jabez (whom she imagined eighteen miles away) broke upon her
solitude, but now it thrilled through her.

There was a light touch upon her shoulder.

“Mrs. Aspinall?”

She shuddered.

“Oh! don’t call me by that name—_here!_” broke from her, imploringly.

“What name shall I call you by?” half wonderingly; then in a lower
semi-smothered tone of entreaty—“Augusta?”

Lower sank her head in her hands; but there was no answer save her
sobs. It was thus he had addressed her there once before.

“Augusta!”—and this time the hand on her shoulder shook—“Augusta—dear
Augusta, once on this very spot I found you weeping thus, and I begged
to be allowed to share your grief. I told you I would give my life to
serve you—what I said then I repeat now—I _would_ give my life to serve
you, and you _know_ it!” He gently drew one hand from her agitated
face. “Tell me your trouble, as you would tell it to a brother!”

A brother—ah, that was it! She drew her hand back, but she did not
rise, and her sobs seemed to choke her.

Again he took her hand, and his other arm went round her soothingly,
protectingly. “Oh, Augusta, this is inexpressibly painful to me. I love
you, as never man loved woman. Can you not tell me what troubles you?”
and the earnest tenderness of his voice made strange music in her ears.

He had seated himself on the narrow window-ledge beside her, and now he
thought she was about to punish his presumption and quit him haughtily
as before.

But no! She only slid from his arm to his very feet, and cried, with
still covered face—

“Oh, Jabez—_dear_ Jabez, forgive me all I made you suffer here; for oh!
I have repented bitterly.”

He was stunned, bewildered. His passionate declaration of love was made
as a claim to her confidence, not to her affection; and now—“_dear_
Jabez!” Did he hear aright? For an instant he was silent from very
incapacity to speak. Her bent head touched his knees.

Slowly, reverently, as if she had been a saint, with every nerve of his
strong frame trembling with emotion, he raised her from the ground;
but no arm went round her now. He held both her hands in his, and
looked steadfastly down upon her; but no answer made he to her plea for
pardon. Constraint in voice and words was apparent and painful, but
emotion grew too strong for control.

“Augusta, what is the meaning of this? For God’s sake do not mislead
me! I seem on the threshold of heaven or madness. Is it possible that
I, plain Jabez Clegg, can be ‘dear’ to you?”

“Dearer than life!”

  Clear, full, and earnest came the words from her soul,
  clear and truthful were the eyes that now sought his.

“Thank God!”

He held her in his arms with a straining clasp, which told how long
they had quivered to embrace her so. His eyes lit up with an intensity
of love she knew not he could feel, and never had his lips met woman’s
in such fond kisses as he pressed on hers.

The concentrated love of years seemed gathered to a focus then. “Life
of my life!” he called her, and she knew and felt it was so.

If the shade of the departed Ellen could have looked upon them there,
remembering how she had rushed to his embrace in that very spot, and
how different had been the kiss imprinted on her wifely brow, would she
have reproached him? I wis not.

Is it needful to add that, before the summer waned, the Manchester
Man, rapidly rising into public note and favour, entered into another
partnership; or that Jabez Clegg, in right of Augusta his wife, took
possession of the mansion at Ardwick, to the satisfaction of Mrs.
Ashton, who said, “Better late than never!” Or to tell how the trade of
Ashton, Chadwick, Clegg, and Co. continued to extend? Or that Travis
remained Co. to the end of the chapter—the children’s Co. never taking
a wife unto himself?


FOOTNOTES:

[1] See Appendix.

[2] Prior to the close of the Fourteenth Century, Manchester was
written Mamecester.

[3] Cradle.

[4] A sort of close pinafore.

[5] A short loose jacket.

[6] Ugliest.

[7] Inquired.

[8] See Appendix B.

[9] See Appendix B.

[10] Bleacher.

[11] Properly.

[12] 3 Chron. iv. 9, 10.

[13] Leaping-pole.

[14] Brooks.

[15] Heaps—impediments.

[16] See Appendix C.

[17] See Appendix.

[18] See Appendix.

[19] See Appendix.

[20] See Appendix.

[21] See Appendix.

THE END.



APPENDIX.


In the foregoing story of the “Manchester Man,” I have in a great
measure dealt with history, recorded and unrecorded, with absolute
people, events, and places.

I have not thought it advisable to break the narrative with cumbrous
foot-notes calculated to disturb the general reader; but I consider an
elucidating Appendix due alike to myself and all those who, in perusing
a work of this kind, care to discriminate fact from fiction.

Little of the Manchester I have depicted remains intact, a whirlwind
of improvement (!) has swept over the town, but old inhabitants will,
I think, recognise the faithfulness of my descriptions, as they will
remember many of the persons who come and go incidentally throughout.

CHAP. I.—After writing this chapter, I learned that a cradled
infant was washed down the Irwell from the Broughton, not the Smedley
and _Irk_ side, in the flood of 1837. I was familiar with the incident
I relate when I was quite a child myself, and I am now fifty-three.

The two cases are therefore distinct, yet equally facts. In 1771,
during the floods which swept away Tyne Bridge, Newcastle, a vessel
took up at sea a cradle in which was a child alive and well.

CHAP. III. (B).—The Rev. Joshua Brookes comes into my pages
naturally—no story of Manchester life at the commencement of this
century would be complete without him. I have endeavoured to do justice
to a little-understood man. Many of his eccentricities are on record.
At my own baptism and my mother’s churching, occurred the scene which
I have endeavoured to reproduce; that delicate lady pushed and pulled
about was a stranger to my mother and sponsors. A characteristic
anecdote, which I have not met with in print, may not be out of of
place here.

A printer, of republican tendencies, named Cowdroy, took his son
to the font, and on the child’s name being required, answered
“Citizen!”—“Citizen?” growled Joshua, “that’s no name. I shall not give
the child a name like that!” “I’ve a _right_ to call my child what name
I please, and I dare you to baptise him otherwise,” boldly asserted
Mr. Cowdroy. “Oh, you may call him Beelzebub if you like!” testily
responded the chaplain, and Citizen the boy was accordingly baptized:
and the large signboard of C. Cowdroy, Printer, overlooked the Old
Churchyard long after Joshua Brookes was laid low in dust and ashes.

His odd friendship with old Mrs. Clowes is matter of fact. Similar
scenes to those I have described took place at funerals and weddings
when he officiated; and his last contest with the Grammar School boys
may be found in Harland’s “Collectanea.”

CHAPS. IV. and V. (C)—The little girl who made her way into
the presence of Prince William, sat on his knee and amused him and his
suite with details of toilettes in progress at home, to be rewarded
with a plain shilling, the required information, and a bow as the
_cortége_ passed down Oldham Street, was Amelia Daniels, in after years
my own mother. The incident of the falling platform on Sale Moor is
noted in history.

CHAP. VII.—Mrs. Clowes was as eccentric in her way as Parson
Brookes; but beyond her dealings with the chaplain and school-boys,
her journey to Liverpool, her Sabbath dinners to the poor, and her
attire, her place in this story belongs to the region of fiction. Her
shop passed to a relative, but the date of her death is unknown to the
writer.

CHAPS. XVIII. and XIX.—Peterloo is rapidly passing out of
remembrance, and those who were not themselves eye-witnesses may accuse
me of exaggeration. To such I can only say that I have had my details
from actors or spectators. The house I have assigned to Mr. Chadwick in
Oldham Street, was occupied by my maternal grandfather, John Daniels,
and he was the paralysed old gentleman in charge of his servant Molly,
who, but for the timely interposition of a young man named Tomlinson,
one of his own weavers, and Mr. Mabbott, would have been cut down. His
daughters, anxious for his safety, looking out for his return home
from the warehouse, saw from their open window more than I describe;
for one thing—a woman passed with her breast cut off; the two vaunting
officers who reared their steeds against the house with threats, were
a cousin and a _fiancé_; the man who was shot down in Ancoats Lane,
whilst bidding _his_ girls to retire, was, I believe, my grandfather’s
tenant. The female sabred on the hustings was a Mrs. Fildes when I knew
her. Her son, Henry Hunt Fildes, was in my father’s employ; and either
that same son, or a grandson, is now an artist not altogether unknown
to the world. From Miss Hindley I had nine years ago the story of her
father’s fall. The author of the satire on the yeomanry was my paternal
grandfather, James Varley, of Pendleton.

For the purpose of my narrative, I have antedated an occurrence in the
Theatre Royal. I was myself the little miss who cried out in alarm
that Edmund Kean was “killing Mrs. McGibbon,” but it was a few years
later. Mrs. Broadbent’s school occupied the next box to our party
on that occasion. I need scarcely add that I have drawn that lady,
her school-room, &c., from information and observation. The broken
collar-bone is not an invention.

CHAPS. XXIX. and XXX.—The skating incident on Ardwick Green
Pond was an episode in the early life of the same John Daniels
before-named. Blindness followed his long immersion, and when all
remedies known in the last century failed, he regained his sight by
swimming across the Mersey, as related. I owe it to his memory to say
that he must not otherwise be confounded with the man whom I have
called Laurence Aspinall.

CHAP. XXXII.—The Act for widening Market Street was obtained
in 1821; but I find that the ancient houses did not begin to “crumble
into dust” until the following year.

CHAP. XXXVIII.—“I’ll please my eye if I plague my heart,” with
its answer and consequences, formed the original base of this story;
the wilful girl and her handsome savage of a husband being in _all_
respects but their names realities. They were both in their graves
before the period I assign to their union. The old Hall which witnessed
so many outrages and such sad catastrophes, may be found in the map of
Hardwicke’s History of Preston under its true name.

CHAP. XLVI.—For much information respecting the fatal launch
of the _Emma_, I am indebted to the courtesy of the Secretary of the
Bridgewater Navigation Company, and also to Mrs. Abel Heywood, who has
just presented to Manchester a statue of Oliver Cromwell, in the name
of her former husband, Mr. Goadsby, who had been Mayor of the city.
Mrs. Heywood was originally the Miss Grimes who christened the luckless
flat.

I cannot close this Appendix without acknowledging much kind assistance
from literary and and antiquarian friends in my researches. Of these
the late John Harland, Esq., antiquary and historian, the late Thomas
Jones, Esq., librarian of Chetham Hospital, and the Rev. J. Finch
Smith, M.A., R.D., must be placed foremost.

  ISABELLA BANKS.

  _London_, January, 1876.


APPENDIX No. II.

Since the publication of the last edition of “The Manchester Man,”
the following letter has appeared in the _Sheffield Daily Telegraph_,
April 5th, 1879. It is here reproduced in the hope that for some of
my readers it may have interest, since it adds a new feature to my
portrait of Madame Broadbent:—

 _To the editor of the “Sheffield Daily Telegraph.”_

 “Sir,—In your advertisement of the new tale by Mrs. Linnæus Banks,
 about to appear in the pages of your journal, you quote some critiques
 on ‘The Manchester Man,’ by the same author. One of the characters is
 true to the very life. Hers was the first school I ever attended, and
 I have a vivid recollection of the venerable, stately, little dame—a
 rigid martinet, exacting the utmost deference from all who approached
 her, and invariably addressed as ‘Madam’ Broadbent. I have often since
 recalled my feelings of delight when for the first time I went with
 her and my schoolfellows in great state to the theatre, as described
 in the novel. She educated the daughters of most of the leading
 Manchester merchants of that day, the wife of a recent mayor being one
 of them.

 “Madame Broadbent did not profess the innumerable subjects now
 required, but all that was attempted was well taught. She inculcated
 habits of the strictest order, neatness, and regularity. The
 needlework was very beautiful, and would excite astonishment in these
 sewing machine days. The punishment for talking was very ludicrous.
 The delinquent was required to sit with her face to the wall—a hideous
 contrivance of red cloth called the ‘red tongue’ hanging down her
 back; it was considered a great disgrace. She succeeded in teaching a
 deaf and dumb girl to speak—a feat of which she was justly proud.

 “If you think the above remarks on a character well known in
 Manchester during the early part of the present century are of
 interest, they are at your service.”

  C. B.

  “Rotherham, March 30th, 1879.”

I regret that at the time this letter—of so much interest to
me—appeared I was too ill to communicate with the writer through
the medium of the newspaper, and so the opportunity for thanks or
correspondence was lost.

It is also possible that some of those who have followed the Rev.
Joshua Brookes through this narrative may be amused by the following
category of the Books in his library as advertised for sale after his
decease[,] it not only affording some insight into the inner self of
the man, but being characteristic of the advertising of the period:

 “Library of the late Rev. Joshua Brookes, consisting of nearly six
 thousand volumes.

 “To be Sold by Auction by Mr. Thomas Dodd, at his Auction Repertory,
 No. 28. King-street, Manchester, on Monday, May 13th, 1822, and nine
 following days, Saturday and Sunday excepted. To commence precisely at
 half-past ten in the forenoon and at three in the afternoon of each
 day.

 “The interesting Collection of Books is replete in the most valuable
 works in Divinity and Ecclesiastical History, Classics, Lives,
 Memoirs, History and Important Events, Voyages, Travels, Tours,
 Poetry, Education, Bibliography, Magazines, Reviews, Tracts, and
 a profusion of Miscellaneous Facetia of the most enlivening and
 entertaining description, abounding in Prophetic Admonitions,
 Solid Remarks, Comfortable Treatises, Learned Compendiums, Solid
 Discourses, Pious Devotions, Moral Emblems, Profound Researches,
 Happy Thoughts, Gospel Treasures, Choice Gleanings, Unerring Guides,
 Divine Parables, Pleasant Reflections, Poetical Blossoms, Flowers of
 Literature, Wonderful Predictions, Notable Discoveries, Desirable
 Acquisitions, Remarkable Adventures, Profitable Pursuits, Diverting
 Anecdotes, Lively Sallies, Singular Occurrences, Chronological
 Details, Curious Paradoxes, Astonishing Conjurations, Strange Bubbles,
 Elegant Epistles, Select Letters, Acute Criticisms, Charming Themes,
 Delightful Novels, Old Romances, Comical Works, Droll Transactions,
 Exquisite Epigrams, Smart Repartees, Fairy Tales, Facetious Puns,
 Humourous Stories, Merry Lucubrations, Love Stratagems, Ingenious
 Enigmas, Revealed Mysteries. Useful Hints, Magical Tricks, Whimsical
 Customs, Odd Freaks, Queer Jokes, Flim Flams, Entertaining
 Recreations, Experimental Philosophy, Classical Odes, Delphic
 Oracles, Eloquent Orations, Keen Satires, Striking Incidents Happy
 Intelligence, Tea Table Chat; and, lastly, Wine and Oil for Drooping
 Souls.

 “The Books may be viewed on Thursday, May 9th. and previous to the
 Days of Sale, when Catalogues maybe had at one shilling each.”

It is only honest to add that I am indebted to a correspondent of the
_Manchester City News_ “Notes and Queries” for the above.

  I. B.

  _London_, April, 1881.


APPENDIX No. III.

When in Manchester last Autumn, at the house of a friend at Heaton
Moor, I was introduced to a lady whose father had occupied premises
as a tea-merchant at the New Cross end of Oldham Street, at the time
of the Peterloo disturbance, and from her obtained the following
particulars, which I have her sanction to put on record, and give in
her own words:—

“On that memorable 16th of August, my father was from home, my mother
ill in bed, when the household were startled by the entrance of
soldiers with drawn swords, or sabres, which they swept under sofas
or any place where fugitives might hide; the men were drunk. One
little girl ran into the sick room saying the soldiers were murdering
her sisters and brothers (the eldest of whom was a pupil of ‘Madame
Broadbent’.) The mob outside unpaved Oldham Street in an incredibly
short time to provide themselves with missiles wherewith to pelt their
pursuers. The blinds were drawn down, and all the children kept from
the windows lest any stones should be sent that way. The soldiers did
not go upstairs. Four volleys were fired at New Cross one down each
road.” And I may add that no one in Mr. W—— ’s house was sabred. What
the alarm was to the young mother (a second wife, the mother of my
informant), then in bed with her first baby, there is no telling. The
fright to the children of the first marriage was ineffaceable. The
eldest girl had seen the horrors in the street.

  June, 1882.      I. B.

[Illustration: ABEL HEYWOOD & SON MANCHESTER]



*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Manchester Man" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home